1 Digitized by tine Internet Archive in 2007 with funding from IVIicrosoft Corporation http://www.archive.org/details/familytouristvisOOgoodrich ®l)e Jamll^ Sourlst. A VISIT TO THE PRINCIPAL CITIES OF THE WESTERN CONTINENT: KMBRACINO AN ACCOUNT OF THEIR SITUATION, ORIGIN, PLAN, EXTENT, INHABITANTS, MANNERS, CUSTOMS, AND AMUSEMENTS, PUBLIC WORKS, INSTITUTIONS, EDIFICES, &,c. TOGETHER WITH SKETCHES OF HISTORICAL EVENTS. BY cTaI^goodrich,^ ^ q e^a "^^^ ''^ ' ILLUST-RA-TED WITH ENGRAVINGS. ^artfovir PUBLISHED BY CASE, TIFFANY AND BURNHAM. 1848. Entered according- to Act of Congress, in the year 1848, by CASK, TIFFANY AND CO., in the Clerk's office of the District Court of Connecticut. 7,0 Hj croh Libraiy INTRODUCTION. A distinguished senator in our American Congress, some years since, in the course of one of his speeches, when speaking of the commercial enterprise of our countrymen, related the following curious incident : " A ship which had been built at Pittsburg was freighted and cleared from that place for Leghorn. On her arrival at the place of her destina- tion, the master presented his papers to the proper officers, who would not credit them ; but said to him, ' Sir, your papers are forged. There is no such place as Pittsburg in the world ! Your vessel must be con- fiscated ! ' The trembling captain laid before the officer a map of the United States — directed him to the Gulf of Mexico — pointed out to him the mouth of the Mississippi — led him a thousand miles up to the mouth of the Ohio, and thence another thousand up to Pittsburg. ' There, sir, is the port whence my vessel cleared.' " The ignorance of the Leghorn officer of the customs was quite par- donable, since in relation to a new country, and to its far distant and quite inland ports of entry, he might not have had an opportunity to in- form himself But, whatever mortification he experienced, it must have been far less than that of a certain English nobleman, who, during his travels in Italy, was shown a church, which he so much admired for its elegance of structure, as to request permission to take a sketch of it. " Oh ! " said the gentleman, who accompanied him, and was showing him the building, — " You have no occasion to put yourself to that trouble ; the model was taken from a church in London, the very place where you reside." Surprised and confused, his lordship desired to know what edifice like it London could contain, which had escaped his observation. He was told that it was St. Stephen's, Walbrook, near the Royal Exchange. It is further added, that his lordship had no sooner arrived in London, than he went to take a view of that beautiful monu- ment of architecture, which is esteemed Sir Christopher Wren's mas- terpiece, before he saw any of his friends, or returned to his own home. The author has introduced these humble anecdotes by way of illus- trating the importance of a knowledge of the world, which may be VI INTRODUCTION. inferred from the first — and especially of one's own country, and what of improvements it contains, which is strikingly exhibited in the second. It is indeed true, that in older countries, where the arts have had longer time to ripen, and wealth to increase, the traveller will find greater and more numerous objects of curiosity, than in a country, which, like our own, has recently sprung into existence, and where as yet the wealth of the people is employed rather in expansion than in tasteful improvement. Yet, with a little more than two centuries gone over our heads, since the planting of the first colony in America, and while a good portion of that period has been spent in clearing our forests, and providing the means of subsistence, advances have been made in literature, in the arts, in architecture, &c., creditable to the taste, genius, and enterprise of our countrymen. We have, indeed, no cities, which can compare with several in the eastern hemisphere — no monuments like theirs — no palaces, nor baronial castles — nor a hundred other objects of taste and curiosity. But, in the settlements of a wilderness, stretching hundreds and even thousands of miles, on every side — in the erection of towns and cities — in the manufacture of articles of taste and fancy — in the variety and expansion of commerce — in the patronage given to the fine arts — in the elegance and even grandeur of some of our public edifices, we have exceeded all anticipations, and are without a parallel, consider- ing the infancy of our country, in the history of nations. For centuries after the invasion, London, that world in miniature, bore no comparison to New York, Philadelphia, Baltimore, or Boston. Westminster Abbey was the labor of half a century, and was com- pleted at the distance of more than one thousand years from the founda- tion of the city in which it stands. St. Paul's — that monument of taste and wealth — was finished less than one hundred years ago. The marvel then is, not that America has achieved so little, but that she has accomplished so much. Foreigners, who have travelled through our country, have been wont to indulge in illiberal criticisms, comparing our cities, our public buildings, our specimens of the fine arts, &c., with those which they have seen beyond the waters, in countries which have been settled for centuries, and where princes and noblemen have lavished their millions upon these and similar objects, gathered from unwarrantable and oppressive taxation. But how absurd the comparison ! When America shall have attained a similar age — when her forests shall have been felled — when her wealth shall have increased, and it is rapidly rolling up — when her enterprise and genius shall become concentrated, and be applied to works of taste and mag- nificence, we shall doubtless see in her works, objects as grand, and monuments as splendid and enduring, as are now the boast of countries INTRODUCTION. y'n which were grown to manhood, when she first came on to the stage. The amateur may find as much to admire, as he now does in London, in Paris, in Rome, or was once admired in Athens, in Thebes, or Tadmor of the Desert. But already our country presents objects sufficient to command the admiration and gratify the taste and curiosity of her citizens. Were these better known, they would be more appreciated. Personal obser- vation is always m6re gratifying, and makes deeper and more lasting im- pressions, than verbal descriptions. But there are a multitude, who enjoy not only no opportunity for foreign travel, but have neither the means nor the time to examine the various objects of interest in their own land. They visit such as are in tlieir immediate neighborhood, and must depend upon written statements for the rest. Hence, who- ever furnishes a correct and candid description of objects at a distance, performs for this numerous class a valuable service. With this object in view, the author has prepared the present work. It is designed not for the traveller, who has had the advantage of a per- sonal visit to the places described, but for those who have not enjoyed, and are not likely to enjoy that privilege. The attempt, it is believed, is new, at least so far as to bring into a single volume, and independent of other subjects, a view of the cities of the American continent. It is offered only as an approximation to what is confessedly a desideratum among the books, which are found in the families of our country. The object of the work is two-fold — to furnish a book of rational enter- tainment — one which may pleasantly occupy for a few weeks the leisure hours and long evenings, when severer toils and more engrossing occupa- tions are necessarily remitted ; and secondly, and primarily, to present an opportunity to the younger classes of society, to become more ex- tensively acquainted with the chief places of the land, and the interest- ing objects which they contain. As was noticed in the prospectus — • cities are, in every country, and justly, objects of curiosity and attrac- tion. They are usually centres of wealth, influence and fashion. They are emporiums of trade and commerce — the theatres of pleasure and amusement — the seats and patrons of the fine arts — the workshops of articles of taste and fancy — the localities for rich and splendid speci- mens of architecture. Here, also, may be seen, in profitable contrast, society in its different materials, forms and conditions — the native and the foreigner — the wealthy and the poor — the industrious and the idle — the sober and the dissipated — the serious and the gay. From a view of mankind thus relatively situated, and yet differently circumstanced, important lessons regarding manners, morals, and duty, may be gather- ed. The more we know of our country — of her history — of her govern- ment — the genius of her inhabitants — their enterprise — the institutions, Vlll INTRODUCTION. which they have founded — the cities, which they have planted — the public works, which they have projected and accomplished, the greater will be our admiration, and the stronger our patriotic feeling. At the same time, such knowledge will furnish us with topics of useful and enlightened conversation. We shall also be better prepared to travel abroad, if that privilege and pleasure be our good fortune, and better qualified to estimate the value and correctness of the many works per- taining to our country, which issue from the press — the workmanship of foreigners, who have not in all cases been disposed to do America or Americans justice. CONTENTS. INTRODUCTION, NORTH AMERICA. CANADA.— Quebec. Anecdoteof Dean Swifl; Situation of Quebec; Origin; Appearance; Harbor; Public Edifices ; Mr. Duncan's visit to the Ursuline Convent ; Fortifications ; Re- duction by Wolf ; Death of Wolf; Reflections; Assault under Montgomery; his death ; Character. MONTREAL. Mode of travelling between Montreal and Quebec ; Situation of Montreal ; Ap- pearance ; Dress and Manners of the Citizens ; Merchants ; Edifices ; French Church ; Visit of Mr. Duncan to it ; Society ; Military Events j Anecdote of Ethan Allen. UNITED STATES. MASSACHUSETTS.— Boston. Settlement of Boston ; Situation ; The Mall ; State House ; Tremont House ; Dinner Scene ; Faneuil Hall ; Population ; Government ; Literary and Educational Institutions ; Harvard College ; Mount Auburn ; Characteristics of the Citizens j A Caricature ; Patriotism ; Revolutionary Incidents ; Destruction of Tea. CHARLESTOWN. Settlement ; Situation ; Public Works ; State Prison ; Battle of Bunker Hill ; Ceremonies at Laying the Corner Stone of Bunker Hill Monument ; Webster's Address on the occasion. MAINE.— Portland. Situation ; Harbor; Ports; Public Edifices; Character of the Inhabitants; Sav- age Depredations ; Attack of Captain Mowatt. NEW HAMPSHIRE.— Portsmouth. Situation ; Population ; Appearance ; Harbor ; Forts ; Public Buildings ; Bridges ; Settlement ; Story of a Hermit. VERMONT.— Vergennes. Settlement ; Situation ; Population ; Commodore McDonough's Flotilla. BURLINGTON. Delightful Situation ; Vermont University ; President Dwight's description of the surrounding scenery. CONNECTICUT.— Hartford. Original Settlers ; their Journey to Connecticut ; Distress of the Colonies ; Re- moval of Mr. Hooker ; Gloomy state of the Colony ; Invasion of the Pequot country ; Amusing extracts from the Hartford Colony Laws ; Situation of Hartford ; Descrip- tion ; State House ; Asylum for the Deaf and Dumb; Retreat for the Insane ; Wash- ington College ; Election Day. NEW HAVEN. First knowledge of the English of the place ; Arrival of Mr. Eaton and his Asso- ciates ; Situation of New Haven ; Description of the city ; Surrounding Scenery ; Adventures of Goffe and Whalley ; Col. Dixwell ; Cemetery ; Character of the cit- izens ; Public Edifices ; Yale College ; New Township ; Fair Haven ; Dragon Point ; Extracts from the early Code of Laws ; Attack of the British, 1779 ; SuflTerings of President Daggett. MIDDLETOWN. Origin of the Settlement ; Account of Sowheag, an Indian Sachem ; Beautiftil situation of the city ; Wesleyan University ; Upper Middletown. NORWICH. First settlement of Norwich ; Situation of the city ; Scenery ; Water privileges ; Burying-ground of Uncas ; Origin of Sachem's Plain; Uncas and Miantonimon } Subsequent History of Uncas. iz CONTENTS. NEW LOxXDON. Settlement of New London ; Situation ; Description j Forts j Burning of New London by Arnold ; Anecdotes of the Rogerines. RHODE ISLAND.— Providence. Situation of Providence ; Public buildings ; Blackstone Canal ; Boston and Prov- idence Rail Road ; Character of the Citizens ; Roger Williams ; Birth ; Early His- tory ; Removal to America ; Settlement at Salem ; Expulsion from the Colony ; Founds Providence ; Family of Mr. Williams ; Visits England and procures a char- ier ; Difficulties with the Indians ; Death of Mr. Williams ; Character. NEW YORK.— New York. Discovery of New York by Verrazzano, 1524 ; By Hudson, 1609 ; Incidents of his voyage ; Settlement by the Dutc^ ; Notices of the first Dutch settlers ; Houses ; Cleanliness ; Curious domestic operations ; Parties ; Manners ; Festivals of the Dutch ; Dress; Furniture ; New York in lt)40 ; In subsequent years ; Population ; Situation of the city j Ai>proach to it ; Harbor ; Broadway ; City Hall : Park ; Bat- tery ; Churches ; Literary and other Institutions ; Masonic Hall ; New Custom House ; Schools ; Papers ; Health of the city ; Temperature ; Languages ; Cooper's account of the Market; Fruits; Style of Living; Domestic comfort; Des'iription of a house in Broadway l)elonging to a gentleman of fortune ; Carriages ; Military events ; Retreat through Long Island ; Evacuation of the city ; Residence of the British officers. Brooklyw.— Local advantages ; Rapid Growth ; Literary and Soi- entific Institutions ; Navy Yard ; Greenwood Cemetery ; Harbor ; Atlantic Dock. ALBANY. Situation ; Original settlement ; Dutch architecture ; Change effected in its in- habitants ; Plan of the city ; Capitol and other edifices ; Commercial advantages of Albany ; Opening of the Erie Canal. HUDSON. Situation of Hudson ; Present state ; Whale fishery ; Population. TROY. Situation ; Business portion of the city ; Public buildings ; Female Seminary ; Rensselaer School ; Character ; Commerce ; Flour manufacture. SCHENECTADY. Origin of the name ; Situation of the city ; Architecture ; Union College ; Canal- ing operations; Early History ; Indian massacre of 1C90. UTICA. Situation of the city ; Hugh White, the first settler; Thrilling incident respecting his family ; Progress of Utica ; Population ; Prospects. ROCHESTER. Recent settlement ; Historical facts relating to its settlement ; Adventure of Enoa Stone ; Religious festival of the Senecas ; state of Rochester in 1814 ; Military tac- tics of an American officer ; Commencement of its prosperity ; Character of its set- tlers ; Ecclesiastical History ; Literary establishments ; Business style of Archi- tecture ; Water power of the Genesee ; Canal trade of Rochester ; History of the flour trade. BUFFALO. Situation ; Beauty of the surrounding scenery ; Destroyed in 1814 ; Thrift; Des- cription of the city ; Black Rock ; Lines of communication ; Seneca Reservation ; Red Jacket; Oratory of this chieftain ; Anecdotes. NEW JERSEY.— Trenton. Settlement ; Kalm's description of Trenton in 1748 ; Situation : Present state ; Capture of one thousand Hessians, by Washington in 1776 ; Consequences of this victory. Pennsylvania—Philadelphia. Philadelphia prior to the Revolution ; Character of the inhabitants by different travellers ; Philadelphia and New York compared ; Commercial advantages ; First impressions ; Penn's Purchase ; Regularity of the city ; Market street ; other streets ; Public buildmgs ; Old State House ; Bank of Pennsylvania; Bank of the United States ; Churches ; Jewish synagogues ; Charitable and Literary institutions ; Girard College ; Fair Mount Water Works ; Peale's Museum ; Academy of Fine Arts ; Li- braries ; Philadelphia press ; Pennsylvania University ; American Philosophical So- ciety ; Character by Mr. Hodgson ; Earlv History ; Arrival of Penn ; Conference with the Indians ; The treaty Elm tree ; Penn's early residence ; Shippen's house ; First Church; Frankl^'s account of the early inhabitants ; Customs before the Rev- olution ; Wedding entertainments ; Diet ; Dress ; Various reminiscences. MARYLAND.— Baltimore. Rapid growth of Baltimore; Effect of the late war upon Baltimore: Speculations of 1818; Situation and plan of the city ; Merchants Exchange ; Catholic Cathedral ; CONTENTS. XI Socinian Chapel ; Washington Monument ; Battle Monument; Trade of Baltimore j Flour Mills ; Attack of the British, in 1814. DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA— Washington. Situation of Washington ; Anecdote of (Jen. Washington ; Cession of the District by Maryland and Virginia ; Removal of the government in 1800; Progress of the city prior to 1814 ; Effect of burning the Capitol ; Plan of tlie city ; Description of the Capitol; Senate Chamber ; Representatives' Hall; Rotunda; Paintings; Library; Supreme Court ; President's House ; Dinnerparties; Offices; State of Society ; Lit- erary taste ; Amusements; Invasion of Washington; Destruction of the Wational edifices; Mount Vernon ; Tomb of Washington ; Visit of Lafayette ; Last hours of Washington ; Character of Washington, by Lord Brougham. GEORGETOWN. Situation ; Population ; Society ; Public Institutions ; Convent of Visitation. ALEXANDRIA. Situation; Harbor; Commerce. VIRGINIA.— Richmond. Situation ; General description ; Burning of the Theatre in 1811. NORTH CAROLINA— Raleigh. Origin of its name ; Situation ; Brief description. SOUTH CAROLINA.— Charleston. Situation; Account of Charleston, by Capt. B. Hall; Remarks, by F. Hall; Un- healthiness ; Extract from the Duke of Saxe Weimar's travels : Rice Mill ; Popula- tion ; Character; Manners; Attack on Charleston, 1776; Gallant defence of Fort Moultrie ; Heroic Achievement of Sergeant Jasper. GEORGIA.— Savannah. Situation ; Plan of the city ; Business ; Commencement of Savannah by Gen. Ogle- thorpe ; Mary Musgrove and Thomas Bosomworth ; Difficulties produced by them j Revolutionary incidents; Siege of Savannah ; Enterprise of six Americans. FLORIDA.— St. Augustine. Settlement ; Situation ; Plan of the city ; Fort Mason ; Population ; Character; Schools ; Resort for invalids ; Yellow Fever ; Cultivation of the Orange ; Patgo ; Pozey dance. LOUISIANA.— New Orleans. Imposing view of New Orleans ; Situation ; Extent; Style of Buildings ; Plan ; Cathedral ; Churches ; Charitable Institutions ; Population ; Character of Citizens ; Health; Water; Commerce; Market; Influence; Police; Balize ; Breaches in the Levee ; Battle of New Orleans. KENTUCKY.— Lexington. Settlements ; Appearance of the city ; Transylvania University; Public edifices. LOUISVILLE. Commercial importance of Louisville ; Public buildings ; Inhabitants; Canal. OHIO.— Cincinnati. Situation ; Rapid Settlement; Admirable positiort of Cincinnati ; General plan of the city ; Public buildings ; Manufactures ; Commerce ; Population j Schools ; Pork establishments. MISSOURI.- St. Louis. Situation ;. Recent settlement ; Rapid advancement ; Future prospects. MEXICO. VERA CRUZ. Introductory remarks ; Approach to Vera Cruz ; Castle of St. Juan d'UlIoa ; Re- cent destruction of it by the French ; Port of Vera Cruz ; Description of the city ; Unhealthiness ; Society ; Population. PUEBLA. Situation ; Population ; Description ; Religious edifices ; Carriages ; Market ; Manufactures. CHOLULA. Situation ; Population ; Manufactures ; Celebrated temple. MEXICO. Situation ; Invasion of Cortes, 1519 ; Armament ; Conduct at Vera Cruz ; At- tempted interview with Monte/uma ; Resistance to this proposal ; Character of Montezuma ; Indecision of the Emperor ; Cunning of Cortes ; Progress of the In- vaders ; Conference between Montezuma and Cortes ; Description of the City by Cortes ; Access to it ; Temples ; Montezuma II. ; Splendor of his Court ; Sacri- fices ; Gladiatorial Sacrifice ; Games ; Fliers ; Powers of Hercules ; Measures of Cortes to extend his power ; Alontezuma seized ; Execution of Q,ualpopoca ; Artful expedient of Cortes to secure the command of the lake ; Critical situation of Cortes j Attack upon the inhabitants ; Retreat of Cortes and death of Montezuma ; Re-ap- pearance of Cortes ; Death of Guatimozin ; Capture of the city ; Modern Mexico ; Situation ; Humboldt's estimate of Mexico ; Plaza Major ; Cathedral ; Palace ; Botanical Garden j Churches ; Palace of the Inquisition 5 Hospital of Jesus; Present state of the arts ; University ; Intelligence of the people 5 Almeda or Promenade ; Pasco Nuevo j Police ; Population. GUANAXUATO. Situation ; Description j Population ; Gold and Silver mines ; Inhabitants. GUATEMALA Guatemala. Conquest of Guatemala ; Situation ; Old Guatemala ; Calamities of the old city ; Earthquakes; Epidemics ; Destruction ; Founding of the new City ; Scenery; Ap- pearance ; Plaza, or Market place ; Aqueducts ; Houses ; Smoking ; Domestic oc- cupations ; Costumes ; Marriage customs ; Funerals ; State of society ; Wretched character of the Police. SOUTH AMERICA. BRAZIL. — St. SEBAsriAif, or Rio de Janeiro. Situation ; First Settlement : Harbor ; Style of Architecture ; Nuisances ; Des- cription of the City ; Churches; Cathedral; Royal Palace ; Aqueduct; Manners; Ladies ; Shopkeepers ; Superstitious observances ; Barbers ; Post-office ; Ad- ministration of justice ; Instance of Assassination ; Police ; Executions ; Com- merce ; Manufactures ; Exports ; Coffee ; Sugar ; Populatioa. BAHIA. Situation ; Trade ; General description ; Late improvements ; Society ; Dress ; Amusements. COLOMBIA.— Bogota. Situation ; Appearance ; Public buildings ; Principal streets ; Plaza ; Sale of dif- ferent commodities ; Environs ; General routine ; Priests ; Population ; Climate ; Cataract of Tequendama. CARACCAS. Lay Guayra, the portof Caraccas ; Road to Caraccas ; Mr. Semple's Journey; Situation of Caraccas; Description; Public Edifices; Population; Awful convul- sion of 1812; Extent of the Desolation. NEW VALENCIA. Situation ; Advantageous Position ; Population ; Character ; Description. PUERTO CABELLO. Importance ; Situation ; Harbor ; Unhealthiness ; Bay of Burburata. CARTHAGENA. Bay and Port; Situation of the City ; Description; Strength; Population; Trades; Women of Color ; History ; Climate. BOLIVIA.— CHuquisACA. Situation ; Population ; Climate ; Public Buildings. POTOSI. Situation ; Population ; Elevation ; Mines ; Mint ; Climate ; Market ; Singular custom ; La Paz ; Oropeza ; Oruro. PERU.— Lima. Situation; Callao the Port of Lima; Road; Appearance of Lima; Inhabitants; Great Square ; Cathedral ; Parish Churches ; University ; Colleges ; Inquisition : Adventure of Mr. Stevenson; Pantheon; Luxury and Dissipation; Abandoned character of the Priests ; Houses ; Streets ; Climate ; Earthquakes ; Dress. cusco Situation ; Houses ; Population ; Antiquity. „.. . „ ARECtUIPA. Situation ; Population ; General remarks. „.. . ^ TRUXILLO. Situation J Extent ; Streets ; Dress and Customs. BUENOS AYRES.-Bdewos Atres. ii.,„w™®iir 1*".^*'«^' Population; Houses; Inhabitants; Ganchos ; Ox wagons: Fruits ; Market ; Plaza ; Shops ; Appearance ; Dress ; Churches. CHILE.— Santiago. Situation ; Representations of travellers j Plaza j Palace j Cathedral : Consulado: Mint ; Approach from Mendoza. ' ' LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. Falls of Niagara, — Frontispiece. page. View of Quebec, from the Harbor, .... - xvi. View of Montreal, from the St. Lawrence, - - - - 34 Place d'Arms, Montreal, --41 View of Boston and Bunker Hill, from Chelsea, - - - 49 Park street church and Trinity church, Boston, - - - 55 Bowdoin Square church, Tremont House, Faneuil Hall, Hospital, and King's Chapel, Boston, - - - - 56 View of Boston, from Dorchester Heights, - - - - 69 Washington's Head-quarters at Cambridge, - - - - 73 Portrait of General Stark, ------- 77 Portrait of General Howe, and of General Burgoyne, - - 80 View of Bunker Hill Monument, ------ 83 Retreat for the Insane at Hartford, - - - - - - 102 Wadsworth Atheneum, Hartford, - - - - - 116 View of Yale College and Park, New Haven, - - - 124 Portrait of Sowheag, the Great Sachem, - - - - 145 View of New London, ---- 162 First Baptist Church, Providence, ----- 173 View of New York, from Weehawken, - - - - 190 Portrait of Verrazzeno, -------- 195 View of New York, from the Harbor, - - - . 211 View of the Park and City Hall, New York, - - - 215 Custom House, New York, ------ 219 Trinity Church, New York, 222 View of the City of Albany, 239 View of the City of Utica, 251 View of the Genesse Falls, at Rochester, - - - - 267 Washington crossing the Delaware at Trenton, - - 284 View of Philadelphia, from Camden, ----- 289 Portrait of William Penn, 294 XIV LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PAGE. Artist's Fund Hall, Philadelphia, 297 Portrait of Stephen Girard, 301 Girard College, 306 Suspension Bridge over the Schuylkill River, at Philadelphia, 309 Franklin entering- Philadelphia. Franklin founding the Philadelphia Library, 314 United States Mint, Philadelphia, ----- 317 Washington Monument, Baltimore, - - - - - 339 Bombardment of Fort McHenry, _ . - . - 345 Full length Portrait of General Washington, - - 350 Capitol at Washington, _...... 355 President's House at Washington, . - - - . 362 View of Mount Vernon, .-_.... 374 View of Fort Washington, 379 View of the Old Tomb of Washington, - - - - 383 View of the New Tomb of Washington, .... 383 Portrait of Count D'Estaing, 418 Gen. Jackson relieving the wounded after the Battle of N. O. 445 View of the Mammoth Cave, Kentucky, .... 449 View of Vera Cruz, 464 View of Puebla de los Angelos, - ... - 470 View of Jalapa, --.---... 476 Pyramid of Cholula, -.----.. 479 View of the City of Mexico, ----.. 482 Portrait of Cortez, 486 View of the Great Square in the city of Mexico, - 493 Common Sacrifice, - 499 Gladiatorial Sacrifice, ---._.. 502 Mexican Feats of Activity— The Fliers, - - - - 505 Mexican Feats of Activity— The Dancers, - - - 508 Montezuma chained by order of Cortez. Retreat of Cortez, 512 Portrait of Sandoval, 516 View of the Interior of a Mexican House, ... 529 Group on the Stone of Sacrifices, 524 View of Chapultepec, the fortress which commands the city of Mexico, 532 Portrait of Alvarado, ----..- 638 View of Rio Janeiro, ----.-.. 552 Arrieros, or Carriers, ----..-_ 574 Portrait of Pizarro, - - - . . .. . qqq THE FAMILY TOURIST NORTH AMERICA. CANADA.— QUEBEC. It is somewhere related of the eccentric Dean Swift, that in one of his pedestrian journeys to Holyhead, he stopped at the sign of the Crown, in a place called Church Stratton, and ordered dinner. But, not loving to digest a good meal alone, he inquired of" mine host," who was a good humored and obliging man, whether there was not some agreeable per- son in the town, whom he could invite to share a good din- ner with him. The landlord, on casting about, suggested the curate, Mr. Jones, " who," he said, *' was a very com- panionable man, and would have no objection," he dare say, " to spend a few hours, with a gentleman of his (the Dean's) appearance." The Dean being quite pleased with the recommendation, desired the landlord to wait upon Mr. Jones, with his com- pliments, and say that a traveller would be glad to be favor- ed with his company, at the Crown, if it was agreeable. It happened to be the lecture day of the curate ; but he, thinking that his duty to the stranger and his people might both be performed, accepted the invitation ; and at the hour named, sat down to partake of the hospitality of his new friend, whose name continued still unknown to him. On the arrival of three o'clock, the curate felt obliged to excuse himself, to attend divine service at the church. Upon this intimation, the Dean replied, that he would do himself 2 18 FAMILY TOURIST. QUEBEC. the pleasure to attend also, and hoped to see his clerical friend again, after service. When the two gentlemen found themselves once more at the Crown, the Dean began to compliment Mr. Jones, on the delivery of a very appropriate sermon ; and remarked *' that it must have cost him some time and attention, to compose such a discourse." The curate replied, that his duty was rather laborious, as he also served another parish church, at some distance, and therefore he could pay less attention than he could wish to the composition of his sermons. " Well," said the Dean, ** you have a fine talent at deliv- ery^ and it is well you have ; — my sermon, which you preach- ed this afternoon, cost me a great deal of labor, but you spoke it admirably." The curate's countenance fell. " However, my good friend," continued the Dean, — ** don't be alarmed — you have so good a talent at delivery, that I hereby declare, you have done more honor to my ser- mon, than I could have done myself; and now, by way of compromising matters between us, you must accept this half gtiinea." It will readily occur to our readers, that the author of the following work, is in circumstances, not altogether dissimi- lar to those of the curate. For, not having had the advan- tage of ^personal visit to a moiety of the places, which he proposes to describe, he will have to depend upon the pub- lished accounts of travellers, who have been more fortunate. But while he avoids the sin into which the curate fell, in at- tempting to conceal his plagiarism, he hopes to merit some- what of the praise bestowed by the comic Dean, by making his descriptions appear better in this volume, than they do even in the works of the actual travellers themselves. This he will attempt, by enlargement, in case of deficiency, and abridgment, in case of prolixity. And while for the *' hon- or" thus done to several authors, he might, perhaps, in courtesy, expect from them a" half guinea," he will be con- tent to receive it from any, who will do him the honor, to purchase the volume. Without further detention, by way of exordium, he begs leave to introduce his travelling companions to the ancient and celebrated capital of the Canadas — Quebec. FAMILY TOURIST. 19 QUEBEC. This city is situated in the lower Province of British America, on the north-west side of the river St. Lawrence, 180 miles below Montreal ; 400 miles from the sea ; 700 west-by-north from Halifax ; and 740 from Washington. The city was founded on the third of July, 1608, by Sam- uel de Champlain, geographer to the king. He commenced building on Cape Diamond. In 1629, it was taken by the English ; but was esteemed of so little value, that it was re- stored to the French in 1632. It continued in the hands of private adventurers, or trading companies, till 1633 ; when it was made a royal government, and became a regular and important colony. It was again taken by the British in 1759, and with the whole country, was confirmed to them by treaty, in 1763. Since that time, it has been the capital of the British Provinces. Quebec occupies the extremity of a promontory, formed by the rivers St. Lawrence and St. Charles. The latter of which, coming down from the northern hills, flows for a time nearly at right angles to the former ; it then makes an abrupt bend towards the east, and gradually inclines down- wardj till the two streams unite before the rocky cape upon which Quebec stands. The city is thus surrounded with water on all but one side. The appearance of duebec, as you approach it coming down from Montreal, by steamboat, is very imposing. The banks, for some distance above Wolfe's cove — so called, from being the spot, whence General Wolfe and his army ascended the heights of Abraham — are covered, observes Mr. Duncan, with brush-wood, and on the beach below white houses are scattered, at short intervals. The fortifi- cations of the city come gradually into prospect ; first, are seen two of the Martello towers, which like gigantic senti- nels keep watch over the celebrated plains ; then, the re- doubts around the citadel, on the summit of Cape Diamond, slowly develop their strength; embrasures, cannon, and loop holes, successively presenting themselves. Over one battery appears the mast and yard of a telegraph ; and close to the brow of the steep rock, 345 feet above the waters of the river, is the flagstaff and banner of the citadel. At the very bottom of the steep, and apparently covering the very scanty portion of ground which is saved from the encroachment of the river, are the numerous buildings of the lower town of 20 FAMILY TOURIST. QUEBEC. Cluebec, with the wharfs, which have been projected into the stream, and vessels of various kinds crowding around them. On the right hand bank, and a little lower than the city, Point Levi, covered with buildings, and sloping up more gradually from the river, stretches out, so as considerably to contract the channel. Before you is the ample bay, four miles in length, with the island of Orleans for its back ground, while to the right and left and all around, are nu- merous merchantmen, and an occasional man-of-war ; some of them recently from the ports of Britain, and others wait- ing a wind, to waft them to its shores. The harbor is said to be one of the grandest imaginable, strongly resembling the Bay of Naples. It is capable of ac- commodating one hundred sail of the line. The tide rises about 17 feet in common tides, and 23 in spring tides. The common depth of the water is 28 fathoms. Above the city, the St. Lawrence is 12 miles wide ; but here it contracts it- self suddenly to the width of one mile. From this circum- stance, according to some authorities, the city derives its name Qiiebeio or Quebec, signifying in the Algonquin lan- guage, contraction. On disembarking at the wharfs, it is sometimes necessary to ascend by a sloping plank 40 or 50 feet long. To a traveller from the United States every thing around him, on entering this city, wears a new and foreign aspect. " Buildings of wood and even of brick," says Professor Sil- liman, " are almost entirely unknown. Stone, either rough from the quarry, or covered with white cement, or hewn ac- cording to the taste and condition of the proprietor, is al- most the only material for building; roofs, in many in- stances, and generally on the better sort of buildings, glitter- ing with tin plate, with which they are neatly covered ; and turrets and steeples, pouring a flood of light from the same substance : these are among the first things that strike the eyes of a stranger, entering the city of auebec." On looking round upon the inhabitants, " he sees a new population, and, to a great extent, a completely foreign peo- ple, with French faces and French costume ; the French language salutes his ear, as the common tongue of the streets and shops : in short, he perceives that even in the very capital, there is only a sprinkling of English popula- tion; It IS still a French city ; and the cathedral, the exten- FAMILY TOURIST. 21 QUEBEC. sive college of the Jesuits, now used for barracks, and most of the public buildings and private houses are French. He sees troops mingled, here and there, with the citizens ; he perceives the British uniform, and the German, in the British service, which remind him that the country has mas- ters different from the mass of its population ; and although the military are, obviously, not subjects of terror to the citi- zens, the first impression borders on melancholy, when we see these memorials of an empire fallen, and of an empire risen in its stead. Sixty years have done little towards ob- literating the Gallic features of the country. Trumpets and bugles, and French horns now startle us with a sudden burst of martial music, and we can hardly believe that we are not arrived in a fortified town of Europe." *' For an American city," observes the same traveller, " Quebec is certainly a very peculiar place. " A military town — containing about twenty [now thirty] thousand inhabitants — most compactly and permanently built — stone its sole material — environed, as to its most im- portant parts, by walls and gates — and defended by numer- ous heavy cannon — garrisoned by troops, having the arms, the costume, the music, the discipline of Europe — foreign in language, feature, and origin, from most of those whom they are sent to defend — founded upon a rock, and in its highest parts, overlooking a great extent of country — between three and four hundred miles from the ocean — in the midst of a great continent — and yet displaying fleets of foreign mer- chantmen, in its fine capacious bay — and shewing all the bustle of a crowded sea-port — its streets narrow — populous and winding up and down almost mountainous declivities — situated in the latitude of the finest parts of Europe — exhib- itinor in its environs, the beauties of an European capital — and yet in winter smarting with the cold of Siberia — gov- erned by a people, of different language and habits, from the mass of the population — opposed in religion, and yet leaving that population without taxes, and in the full enjoyment of every privilege, civil and religious ; such are some of the most prominent features, which strike a stranger in the city ofauebec."* The streets of the city are very narrow, and crowded with * Silliman's Tour. 22 FAMILY TOURIST. QU£B£C. high stone houses ; numerous cars drive furiously along be- tween the granaries and the wharfs, the carmen standing in their vehicles, and scolding in loud and angry French, when their progress is stopped at a narrow pass. The foot path is in general very dirty, from the almost constant filtration of water from the rock above ; and the jolting of comers and goers so constant and annoying, that none but those who have business to detain them, are likely to spend much time in the lower town. To men in trade, however, this is the nucleus of Quebec ; the Exchange, the Custom House, the banking offices, with the counting houses, stores, and granaries, of the principal merchants, are all collected in close juxtaposition, into a few narrow streets, or lanes, which encircle the bottom of the rocky precipice, and intervene between it and the river. The greater part of the ground, upon which the lower town stands, has been gained by encroachment upon the channel of the St. Lawrence, and the same process is still going for- ward to extend the habitable limits. The approach from the lower to the upper town, is by Mountain street, as it is most appropriately named, lying in a kind of natural cleft in the brow of the precipice. This street, after crossing for a time the face of the hill, like a sheep walk, makes an angular turn, and goes right up the acclivity, where the ascent is least precipitous. The upper town is the seat of government, and the principal residence of the military. The peculiar situatioi^ occasions great ir- regularity, and unevenness in the streets. These are gener- ally well paved. The breadth of the principal one is thirty- two feet ; that of others only from twenty-four to twenty- seven feet. Among the principal buildings, says Lieutenant Hall, the Government house, or Castle of St. Louis, may take prece- dence. It occupies the site of an old French fortress, which covered four acres, and formed nearly a parallelogram. In 1808, seven thousand pounds were appropriated Ifor its re- pair, and embellishment, and an additional sum, at a subse- quent period. It is a thin blue building, which seems qgiv- ermg on the verge of the precipice, overlooking the lower town, and at least two hundred and fifty feet above it. Its front resembles that of a respectable gentleman's house in FAMILY TOURIST. 23 QUEBEC. England ; the interior contains comfortable family apart- ments. For occasions of public festivity, there is another building, on the opposite side of the court-yard, much re- sembling a decayed gaol. The furniture is inherited and paid for by each successive governor. The grand entrance to the Chatteau is flanked, on one side, by this grim moul- dering pile, and on the other, by stables, with their appro- priate dung-hills. There is a small garden on the bank of the river, commanding, as does the Chatteau itself, an inter- esting view of the opposite shore of the St. Lawrence. The public buildings, besides the Castle of St. Louis, are the Hotel Dieu, the Convent of Ursulines, the Monastery of the Jesuits, now used for barracks, the Cathedrals, Catholic and Protestant, the Scotch Church, the lower town Church, the Court House, the Seminary, the new Gaol, and the ar- tillery barracks : there are also a I^lace D'Armes, a Parade, and an Esplanade. The Court House is a modern stone building, one hun- dred and thirty-six feet by forty-four, with a handsome and regular front. The Protestant Cathedral is the handsomest modern build- ing in the city. It is built of stone, and is one hundred and thirty-six feet long, by seventy-five broad. It occupies ground nearly as high as any in the place, and is seen at a great distance. The Catholic Cathedral is likewise built of stone ; is two hundred and sixteen feet long, and one hundred and eight broad. It is full of pictures and images, and in it are still displayed, with no inconsiderable degree of splendor, the en- ticing ceremonies of the Romish worship. There are several charitable Catholic institutions in duebec : the principal of these is the ' Hotel Dieu,' founded in 1637, by the Duchess D'Aiguillon, (sister to Cardinal Richelieu,) for the poor sick. The establishment consists of a superior and thirty-six nuns. The principal building is three hundred and eighty-three feet long, by fifty broad. This establishment is highly commended for the humanity, comfort, cleanliness and good arrangement, which prevail in it. The Ursuline Convent, founded in 1639, for the education of female children, stands within the city. It is a square whose side is one hundred and twelve feet. Mr. Duncan gives the following account of a visit, which 24 FAMILY TOURIST. QUEBEC. he made to this convent in 1819, permission having been obtained by a friend for that purpose. " On ringing the bell for admittance, three nuns made their appearance, to whom we handed the order for our admittance. They told us, however, that the Pere D — was that moment in the chapel, hearing confession, and that they should be obliged to detain us without, till he returned. " In a few minutes his reverence made his appearance, having entered the convent by a private passage ; the door was then unlocked, and we were admitted. The Mere Su- perieure was waiting to receive us ; a jolly, fresh looking woman, rather above the ordinary height, of a dignified car- riage, and apparently about thirty-five, or forty years of age. We had no sooner changed bows with the ladies, than the usual question was put to me by the Mere Superieure, ' Parlez vous Franpais, Monsieur ? ' Finding, however, that I was rather lame at this, she frankly waived ceremony, and addressed me in English, which she spoke so well, that I could not keep from suspecting that she was of an English family. " We were conducted first into the room, in which the nuns hear the service of the chapel ; a plain apartment, with an altar and a few pictures. From it we were taken into a kind of parlor, where all the religieuses, except those who were engaged in the school-rooms, were waiting to receive us. They were ranged in a line opposite the door, and im- mediately on our entering, bowed and smiled most graciously, and without the slightest appearance of formality or demure- ness. At one end of the row were four interesting young creatures wearing white veils ; these were in their noviciate, and Pere D — informed us that they wore the white veil two years, before assuming the vows and the black one. Beside them were three, who had been invested with the black veil only a few weeks before ; had I visited Quebec a little sooner, I might have witnessed the ceremony, for it is always public. I was told that these three were only from eighteen to twenty-four years of age; they seemed not at alfdull, but laughed and talked as good humoredly as any. The four novices seemed to be the only demure individuals among the whole ; they bowed to us like the rest, but relaxed n°ot a muscle of their countenance. " The dress of the Ursulines is dismal in the extreme. A long black robe of bombasin with very wide sleeves ; a FAMILY TOURIST. 25 QUEBEC. black veil tied round the forehead, and thrown back over the shoulder; a piece of stiff starched linen covering the breast, and tied down by strings passing under the arms; the forehead hid by a piece of linen, which covers the eyebrows, and a corresponding bandage brought down under the chin, so as to conceal the ears and part of both cheeks : — all that is elegant and graceful in the human figure is thus com- pletely concealed ; and the poor creatures are in shape and color not very unlike so many walking coffins. Some of them wore a leathern belt at the waist, with a rosary, and cross hanging from it. The dress of the novices differs in nothing from that of the others, excepting the color of the veil : which, by the way, is not made use of to conceal the features, but is in all cases thrown back over the shoulders. The aspect of the nuns was more interesting than that of the Soeurs Gris at Montreal. Some of the young ones might, I dare say, have been thought pretty, had they worn a less ghastly dress; a few of the others had something of the grandmother aspect, but some, and the Mere Superieure in particular, had pleasing features, and lady-like deportment. "About halfa dozen of the nuns accompanied us from room to room, each of whom showed the utmost inclination to enter into conversation with us. We saw three school rooms, all full of neatly dressed girls at their tasks, with two nuns in each as teachers ; two of these were devoted to children of the poorer classes, who are educated at a very small annual sum ; the other was for the daughters of those who could afford to pay more liberally. Whenever we en- tered, the whole rose from their seats and courtesied, con- tinuing to stand still, till we left the room. In passing from one room to another we were conducted through a pretty extensive garden ; the wall which surrounds it is not high, and were the sisters disposed to make off, it would present no serious obstacle. " From the schools, we were conducted to the kitchen, and dining hall. The kitchen has a pump well within it, and the chimney is of ample size, somewhat resembling those of an old baronial castle. The dining hall is floored with bricks of an octagon shape, and covered with a kind of red varnish, which they told us was cow's blood. Long tables of deal surround the hall, with a drawer for each individual, containing a knife, fork, and spoon ; all exceedingly clean and neat. Two of the nuns, in succession, wait upon the 26 FAMILY TOURIST. QUEBEC. Others. Passing through a gallery, which led I believe to sleeping apartments, I remarked over each of the doors an inscription in French; over one of them, * Pour un moment de travail, une eternite de rcpos.^ Before taking leave, some little ornaments of nedtly wrought bark-work were exhibited to us, of which I purchased one or two. '* We had been about an hour within, when a bell rang, which Pere D— gave us to understand was thd signal for our departure. The nuns conducted us to the door, which I attempted to open, but found it locked ; the Superieure, before producing the key, joked us very good humoredly at the unusual predicament, in which we found ourselves. The parting was as courteous and polite, as could well be j we did not indeed shake hands, bu^ no ladies could have pro- nounced a more affable and unceremonious ^ Bon jouTf Messieurs ! Bon jour. ^ "* duebec may be considered the " Gibraltar " of America, being better fortified by nature and art, than any other town on the American continent. These fortifications, Mr. Dun- can thus describes : *' On the south and east, the precipice of rock, on which the city stands, is in most placjes perfectly inaccessible, while the more practicable points admit of ea.sy and effectual de- fence. On the north, the banks of the St. Charles are low, shallow, and muddy ; effectually. securing the town from the approach of ships of war, or the erection of hostile works ; both of which, besides, would, in this, situation, be under the fire of the batteries along the brow of the rock. The only vulnerable point is on the west, adjoining to the Plains, of Abraham. " The citadel, upon the highest part of Cape Diamond, may be said to be the nucleus of the works, which have been erected to protect this side of duebec. No strangers, unless by very rare and special permission from the highest authori- ties, nor in general any but the military, are permitted to enter the citadel. I understand, however, that tjiere is really nothing extraordinary to be seen. Its defences are of the strongest kind, its guns of the largest calibre ; and magazines are embraced within its circuit, which might enable the gar- rison to make a final stand, even were the whole ranore of * Duncan's Travels. FAMILY TOURIST. 27 qUEBEC. the outer works reduced by an enemy. The highest point within the citadel is Brock's battery, which was erected during the last war, and commands, it is said, all the works on this side of the town. From the citadel, which is immedi- ately over the St. Lawrence, enormous walls cross the plain, extending down towards the St. Charles. These walls have all the additional aid of outer-works, ditch, glacis, and cov- ered way. Strong bastions project at intervals; and in whatever direction you look, heavy cannon converge, so as to meet the assailant at every turn, both with a direct and cross fire. There are two gates on this side, St. John's and St. Louis's; but every approach to them is fortified with such jealous care, that one cannot conceive a possibility of their ever being entered, but by consent of the garrison. The wall at each gate is said to be about fifty feet in thickness. Within the walls, and between the two gates, is a fine sloping bank, or esplanade of considerable extent. Other bat- teries and lines of defence are continued round the brow of the rock, on both sides, towards the lower town ; but, ex- cepting in the neighborhood of the Prescott gate, there ap- pears to be comparatively little occasion for them. Between this gate and the St. Charles, is the grand battery, command- ing the bay and a greater part of the harbor. "Upon the whole, Quebec may be regarded as pretty nearly impregnable. The walls are so high that escalade is hopeless ; so thick, that a breach seems impracticable ; and while Britain retains its naval superiority in the river, block- ade is out of the question. The length and severity of the winter, also, act as a powerful auxiliary, for field operations could scarcely then be carried on. I have heard it indeed said, that, in the winter nights, the sentinels on the ramparts are relieved every fifteen minutes, so overpowering is the intensity of the cold." Q-uebec has been the theatre, at different times, of several interesting and important military operations. In 1759, while Canada was yet in possession of the French, an attempt was made by the English under General Wolfe, for its reduction. The place was at that time strong by na- ture, and fortified by art. An attempt to reduce it must have appeared chimerical to any one, but to Mr. Pitt, then prime minister of England. He indeed well knew the dan- ger of the enterprise ; but, at the same time, he knew the 28 FAMILY TOURIST. qUEBEC. qualifications of Wolfe, as leader of the arduous expedition. The assistants of Wolfe, Monckton, Tovvnshend, and Mur- ray were, like himself, young, ardent, and emulous of mili- tary glory. Early in the season, he sailed from Halifax with 8000 troops ; and about the last of June landed the whole army, on the island of Orleans, a few miles below Quebec. From this position, a near and distinct view could be taken of the obstacles to be surmounted, and even the bold and sanguine mind of Wolfe perceived more to fear, than to hope for, in the enterprise. His attention was first drawn to Point Levi, on the bank of the river, opposite Quebec, and from that position he ♦ cannonaded the town. Some injury was done to the houses, but his cannon were too far distant to make any impression upon the works of the enemy. He resolved to quit ti)is post, and to land below Montmorency, and, passing that river, to attack the French General in his intrenchments. He suc- ceeded in landing his troops, and with a portion of his arrny crossed the Montmorency. A partial engagement took place, in which the French obtained the advantage. Relinquishing this plan, he then determined, in concert with the Admiral, to destroy the French shipping and magazines. Two at- tempts were unsiiccessfcd ; a third was more fortunate; yet, but little was effected. Deeply impressed with the disasters at Montmorency, his extreme chagrin affected his spirits, preyed upon his delicate frame, and at length brought him to a sick bed. Before he had sufficiently recovered, he pro- ceeded to put into execution a plan, which he had matured on that sick bed. This was to proceed up the river, gain the heights of Abraham, and draw Montcalm to a general engagement. The difficulties attending this enterprise were numerous. The current was rapid, the shore shelving, the only landing place so narrow that it might easily be missed in the dark, and the steep above such as troops, even when unopposed, could not ascend without difficulty. Yet the plan, though bold and hazardous, was well adapted to the desperate situa- tion of affairs, and was determined on. **On the twelfth of September," observes Professor Silli- man, " one hour after midnight. General Wolfe, with his ar- my, leaving the ships, embarked in boats, and silently dropped down with the current, intending to land a league above Cape Diamond, and thus to gain the heights of Abraham. FAMILY TOURIST. 29 QUEBEC. But owing to the rapidity of the current, they fell below their intended place, and disembarked at what is now called Wolfe's Cove, a mile, or a mile and a half, above the city. This operation was a most critical one — they had to navigate in silence, down a most rapid stream — to hit upon the right place for landing, which, in the dark, might be easily mis- taken — the shore was shelving, and scarcely practicable, even without opposition. Doubtless, it was this combination of circumstances, which lulled the vigilance of the wary and observing Montcalm : he thought such an enterprise abso- lutely impracticable, and therefore had stationed only senti- nels and picket guards along this precipitous shore." No one, who did not possess the resolution and daring spirit of Wolfe, would have attempted so hazardous an ad- venture. On reaching the shore, Wolfe leaped from the boat, but observing the forbidding appearance of the preci- pice full of rugged projections, he whispered to an officer, who stood by, "I don't believe there is any possibility of get- ting up, but you must do your endeavor." Fired with the zeal which animated their commander, the troops began pull- ing themselves up by means of the boughs, stumps of trees, and projections of rocks. It was an hour before the dawn of day. By daylight they were formed and in perfect prepar- ation for battle. Montcalm, at first could not believe that the English had ascended the heights. When convinced of the fact, he com- prehended the full advantage they had gained. He saw that a battle was inevitable, and prepared for it, with promptness and courage. Leaving his camp at Montmorency, he ad- vanced towards the English army, which was formed in or- der of battle to receive him. The French advanced briskly. The English reserved their fire, until the enemy were near, and then gave it with decisive effect. Early in the engage- ment, Wolfe was wounded in the wrist ; but preserving his composure, he continued to encourage his troops. Soon af- ter, he received a shot in the groin. This painful wound he also concealed, placed himself at the head of the grenadiers, and was leading them to charge, when he received a third and mortal wound. Undismayed by the fall of their General, the English continued their exertions under Monckton, who in a short time, was himself wounded, and the command de- volved upon Townshend. About the same time Montcalm received a mortal wound, and the second in command also FAMILY TOURIST. QUEBEC. fell. The left wing and centre of the French gave way. Part were driven into Quebec, and part over the river St. Charles, On receiving his mortal wound, Wolfe was conveyed into the rear, where, careless about himself, he discovered in the agonies of death, the most anxious solicitude concerning the fate of the day. From extreme faintness, he had reclined his head on the arm of an officer, but was soon aroused by the cry of ** They fly, they fly ! " " Who fly ? " exclaimed the dying hero. " The French," answered his attendant. " Then," said he, ** I die contented ; " and immediately ex- pired. Montcalm survived long enough to write a letter with his own hand to the English General, recommending the French prisoners to his humanity. When informed that his wound was mortal, he expressed his satisfaction, that he should not live to see the fall of Quebec. Five days after the battle, the city surrendered. All the incidents of the battle were distinctly seen from the walls of Quebec. It was a thrilling scene. More than a thousand French in an hour or two fell on this field of car- nage, either killed, or wounded. The killed and wounded of the English were about half of this number. What melancholy reflections are excited by such horrors of war! What bitterness of spirit — what deadly revenge, in the bosoms of contending armies! While we admire the military enthusiasm and intrepidity of generals and soldiers, in such a scene as this, who does not mourn over such needless waste of life? Who does not feel his heart sink, at the ex- ultation of the dying hero over the death of his foes, in the moment that he was ascending to the tribunal of God ? Hap- py that day for the world, when the confused noise of the battle of the warrior will be heard no more, and garments shall no more be seen rolled in blood. No undue censure is designed to be cast upon Wolfe, Montcalm, or the soldiers under their command ; but only to pour forth that regret, which the heart of tenderness feels in the view of the need- less death in the field of battle of those, who, by their talents and influence were pre-eminently fitted for the advancement of the best interests of men, and the diffusion of the peacea- ble religion of Christ. In the early part of the Revolutionary war of the United FAMILY TOURIST. gj QUEBEC. States with Great Britain, Q,ue,bec was again the scene of military operations. General Richard Montgomery, who had fought with Wdfe in the battle of Quebec in 1759, had, af- ter that event, taken iip his residence in the colony of New York; and, on the breaking. out of the war, had espoused the American cause. In 1775, he \yas appointed a general in the Northern army ; and, on the indisposition of General Schuyler, took the chief coitimand. Soon after this, he re- duced several forts, and took possession of Montreal. On re- ceiving the submission of this latter place, he pushed on to- wards Quebec. In the mean time. Colonel Arnold had been detached from the camp before. Boston, at the head of 1,000 men, with or- ders to march on Quebec, by way of the river Kennebec. Through an unexplored route of 300 miles — through swamps and woods, over mountains and precipices, and amid hardships and trials of a most uncommon character, did this general, and his resolute troops work their way ; and, at the expiration of thirty-one days, encamped on the southern banks of the St. Lawrence, opposite Quebec. The sudden and unexpected appearance of such a hostile force threw the. inhabitants of the city into great alarm; and could Arnold have crossed the river immediately, it would probably have fallen into his hands. Boats, however, were not in readiness, and several days were consumed, in pre- paring a sufficient number. At length, he made the passage — ascended the heights of Abrahaijfi, at the spot where Wolfe and his enthusiastic trdops had ascended before him. The inhabitants and garrison of Quebec had had time to recover their courage, and to put the city in a state of defence. To Arnold's summons to surrender, the only reply was a firing at his- flags. Being in no condition to undertake a siege, he withdrew his troops twenty mil^s up the river, and awaited the arrival of Montgomery. On the arrival of the latter — their united forces not ex- ceeding a thousand men — a descent was again made upon the city. But their artillery made no impression upon the fortifi- cations, and a whole month was spent without any success. In this state, it was determined to make an assault. " The American camp was on the plains of Abraham. Four points of attack were agreed on — twQ feints against the walls of the upper town, one at St. John's gate, and the other near a cit- adel, while two real assaults were to be directed against two 32 FAMILY TOURIST. qCEBEC. Other points, both in the lower town, but situated on opposite sides. " General Arnold led a party from the plains of Abraham, around by the river Charles, and assaulted the lower town, on that side. In the mean time, General Montgoujery ap- proached under Cape Diamond. " The pass at the foot of Cape Diamond was probably, then, much narrower and more difficult than at present. The attempt was made at five o'clock, on the morning of December 31, 1775, in the midst of a Canadian winter, and of a violent snow-storm, and of darkness. The path, narrow and difficult at best, was then so much obstructed by enor- mous masses of ice, piled on each other, as to render the way almost impassable. Montgomery's party were therefore obliged to proceed in a narrow file, till they reached a pick- eted block-house, which formed the first barrier. The Gen- eral assisted with his own hands, in cutting down and re- moving the pickets, and the Canadian guards, stationed for its defence, having thrown away their arms, fled, after a harmless random fire. The next barrier was much more form- idable ; it was a small battery, whose cannon were loaded with grape shot, and as General Montgomery, with Captains Cheesman and Macpherson, the latter of whom was his aid, and others of the bravest of his party, were pressing fdrward towards this barrier — a discharge of grape shot killed the General, and most of those near his person, and terminated the assault on that side of the town. It is said that this sec- ond barrier had also been abandoned, but that one or two persons returning to it, seized a slow match, and applied it to the gun, when the advancing party were not more than for- ty yards from it. This occurrence has been sometimes dif- ferently related. Some American gentlemen who were at Quebec about sixteen years since, saw a man, who asserted that he was the person, who touched off the cannon, and what is very remarkable, he was a New Englander. He related that the barrier was abandoned, and the party who had been stationed at it were in full flight ; but as it occurred to him, that there was a loaded cannon, he turned and discharged it at random, and then ran."* On the fall of Montgomery, signals were made to Arnold's party, by means of rockets, that all was lost. On the re- Silliman's Tour to Quebec. • ^ FAMILY TOURIST. 35 MONTREAL. turn of light, the body of General Montgomery was found, and near him one of his aids, with several other distinguished officers, besides privates, either killed or wounded. The death of Montgomery was deeply lamented, both in Europe and America. All enmity to him seemed to expire with his life, and the respect to his private character pre- vailed over all other considerations ; his dead body received every possible mark of distinction from the victors, and was interred in Quebec, with all the military honors due to a brave soldier. Congress directed a monument to be erected to his memory, expressive of their sense of his high patriot- ism, and heroic con*duct. This monument stands in front of St. Paul's Church in the city of New York. In 1818, at the expense of that State, his remains were removed to that city, and now repose near the monument. MONTREAL. From duebec to Montreal, the distance is 180 miles. The customary mode of travelling between these two cities was until within a few years by means of Calashes,* along the bank of the river, where there was a regular establish- ment of post houses, under government regulation. The usual mode of conveyance now is by means of steamboats, which will probably, as they carry goods as well as passen- gers, soon supersede almost entirely the arrival of square rigged vessels at Montreal. The fare up the river, it is believ- ed, is usually somewhat higher than the fare down the river ; * " The Calash is not unlike an American chaise or gig, but is built much stouter, and with or without a top ; the horse is much farther from the body of the carriage, and this allows room for the driver, whose seat rests on the front or foot board of that part of the vehicle in which we ride ; this foot board, after sloping in the usual manner, then rises per- pendicularly, to such a height as to sustain the seat ; high sides are also furnished to the part where the feet rest in a common chaise, and thus children and baggage are secured from falling out. The calash carries two grown persons on the seat within, besides the driver, who is often a man ; his seat, and the board which supports it, fall, by means of hinges, when the passengers are to get in, and the board and seat are then hooked up again to their place when the driver mounts." — Tour he- tween Hartford and Quebec. 36 FAMILY TOURIST. MONTREAL. the difference is occasioned by the increased length of time, which it usually requires to stem the current. Montreal is built upon an island of the same name, about 32 miles in length. The site of the town was originally fixed upon by Jaques Cartier, who in 1G35, or '36, first sail- ed thus far up the St. Lawrence. It was then occupied by an Indian village. The city was begun in 1640, when a few houses were built. The place was originally called Ville Marie. There seems however, says Mr. Silliman, to have been one error in locating the future city. It was meant to be at the head of navigation ; it is literally so ; and ships can go up to the very city, although it is not natural to do it with vessels of more than a hundred and fifty tons. Vessels drawing fifteen feet of water, can lie at Market gate, high up in the city ; the general depth of water in the harbor is from three to four and a half fathoms. Unfortunately, however, the rapid of St. Mary, at the extreme end of the town, or rather, near one of its suburbs, is so powerful an obstacle, that nothing but a very strong wind will force a vessel through, when not impelled by any other power. The city and its suburbs, according to Mr. Duncan, ex- tend for nearly two miles, along the northern, or rather the western bank of the St. Lawrence ; for the course of the river takes a bend here, and runs very nearly from south to north. From the opposite bank, the town has a showy ap- pearance, and in summer the circumjacent scenery is ex- ceedingly beautiful. Behind and to the left of the city, rises the mountain, from which it originally took its name ; not a conical eminence, but a swelling semicircular ridge, with its concave surface towards the stream, and placed like a rampart behind a city, to shield it in winter from the un- kindly blast. A dense forest covers the greater part of the hill, except where space has been cleared for a few neatly built mansion houses, whose bright tin roofs glitter in the sunbeams. Behind one of the most remote of these, a mon- umental column rises from among the trees. Between the bottom of the eminence and the spires of the city, a thin blue smoke ascends from part of the suburbs, which the sink- mg of the ground conceals from view. In front of its dark colored outline are the tall masts of merchantmen from the Thames, the Mersey, and the Clyde ; huge steamboats with double chimneys ; river craft of all sizes ; and enormous rafts of timber. In the middle of the stream reposes the FAMILY TOURIST. 37 MONTREAL. island of St. Helena, encircled by a group of smaller ones ; while the unceasing sound of a small rapid, which surrounds them, falls gently on the ear. To the right and left rolls the majestic flood of the St. Lawrence, about two miles in width, and although yet five hundred miles from the ocean, capable of floating on its surface vessels of six or seven hundred tons burden. The city, unfortunately, does not gain much upon you, by a nearer inspection. The streets are for the greater part most inconveniently narrow, and the foot walks in many places encumbered with cellar doors, and other projections. The dark colored limestone of which the houses are built, has a dull effect, and the massive iron shutters, folded back from almost every window and door, considerably increase the gloom. The bright tin which covers the spires and roofs, has decided utility to recommend it, but in a warm sunshine its reflection is painful to the eyes, and at all times it has an air of flaunting vulgarity. Blue slate harmonizes much more agreeably with the azure of the sky, but it will not stand, as I have been told, the intense cold which prevails in winter. The tin is put on in rows, not parallel, but obliquely to the eaves of the house, the nails which fasten it are carefully overlapped, and no where is the slightest degree of rust to be seen. Between the older part of the city and the mountain, some wider streets have been laid out, which will greatly improve the general features of Montreal ; and I have been astonished to observe on my second visit, the great number of buildings which have started up, in various directions, since the pe- riod of my first visit. The town is obviously increasing with rapidity, and a number of very splendid mansions have lately been erected on the slope of the mountain, which would be regarded as magnificent residences, even by the wealthy mer- chants* of the mother country. The population of Montreal, continues the same author, notwithstanding the mixture of British merchants, has still an aspect decidedly French, and that language assails your ear in every quarter. The dress of the lower orders is some- what peculiar. The women and children have a kind of quaint formality, in the shape of their clothes ; the men, in place of a hat, wear a red or blue nightcap, of a thick tex- ture, with a party-colored worsted sash around their waist. FAMILY TOURIST. MONTREAL. and shoes fashioned like the Indian moccasins, but of thick- er leather. They are great smokers, and seldom to be seen without a small black pipe in their mouths, not unlike the Scotch cutty. The politeness of the common people is quite characteristic of their descent, and a couple of carmen can- not address each other on the street without pulling off their caps, and " Bon jour, Monsieur:' The Romish priests, who are seen gliding quietly along, are habited in a close black robe, buttoned up in front, with a small scull-cap under an ordinary hat, and the lappet of a small black band, with white edges, depending below the chin. The students of the Sem- inary wear a long blue surtout, with seams of white cloth, and a sash of colored worsted round the waist, gathered into a knot in front. Besides the varieties of costume to which I have alluded, a few Indians are almost always in the streets, from the Caugh- nawaga village. Some of them have a squalid and dirty ap- pearance, but others, and more particularly the females, are very decently attired : I have indeed seen some of them with an ample mantle of fine blue cloth, over garments of India silk. They are fond of silver ornaments, and have generally a broad ring round their hats, and a large disk perforated with holes, hanging on their breast. I saw a group the other day sitting near the old market, one of whom had an in- fant suspended at her back, strapped down like an Indian mummy to a piece of board. This singular cradle has a pro- jection to defend the child's head, and is adorned with col- ored cloth and beads. I have seen two or three children swathed in this way, none of whom seemed at all impatient of the confinement. Of the merchants of Montreal, I believe the greater pro- portion are Scotchmen. A few Englishmen mingle with them, and there are also a considerable number of Ameri- cans, from the New England States, who are distinguished by characteristic shrewdness and perseverance, which have made the natives of that part of the Union so noted, through- out the rest of the country. So far as I have been able to discover, the utmost harmony prevails between them and those, who are by birth subjects of our sovereign. I dined at a gentleman's house who had thus become voluntarily subject to the laws of our native country ; he said that he FAMILY TOURIST. 39 MONTREAL. could not discover that his liberty had been at all abridged by the change.* Montreal possesses a few public buildings, civil, military, and ecclesiastical ; the neatest of which, for none of them can be called elegant, are the new Court House and the Gaol. Behind the Court House is the Champ de Mars; a very level piece of ground of considerable extent, which is a favorite promenade in the summer evenings, and the principal scene of military displays. Opposite to the Gaol, is a monument to the memory of Lord Nelson, consisting of a Doric column, springing from a square pedestal, and surmounted with a statue of the Admiral. Upon the four sides of the pedestal are bas- so-relievo representations of his principal achievements, sur- rounded with inscriptions and allegorical figures. The col- umn is of stone, the statue and bas-reliefs of composition. It stands at the top of a pretty steep street, at right angles to the river. His lordship looks towards the river, because the best view of the monument is obtained from the bottom of the declivity ; but it unfortunately happens that the principal street of the city passes behind him, and he has consequently turned his back upon it, and all it contains. The Episcopal Church, a recent erection, was intended to be a splendid one, with a towering spire ; but the where- withal was exhausted ere th^ spire grew up ; and for the present, a covering of boards serves to indicate where it is intended to be. The Hotel Dieu, founded in 1644, is three hundred and twenty-four feet in front, by four hundred and sixty-eight deep ; it is attended by thirty-six nuns, who administer to the sick and diseased of both sexes. The Convent of La Congregation de Notre Dame, forms a range of buildings, two hundred and thirty-four feet in front, by four hundred and thirty-three : the object of this institution is female instruction. The General Hospital, or Convent of the Grey Sisters, was founded in 1750 : it occupies a space along the little river St. Pierre, of six hundred and seventy-eight feet, and is a refuge for the infirm poor and invalids. The Cathedral of Notre Dame is one hundred and forty- four feet by ninety-four ; this church we thought in some respects more splendid in the interior, but less grand, than Duncan's Travels. 40 FAMILY TOURIST. MONTREAL. that at duebec. It contains, among other things, a gigantic wooden image of the Saviour on the cross. The Cathedral stands completely in the street of Notre Dame, across the Place D'Arms, and entirely obstructs the view up and down the street. This church is, on the outside, rude and un- sightly. The Seminary of St. Sulspice, occupies three sides of a square, and is one hundred and thirty-two feet by ninety, with spacious gardens. It was founded about 1657. The new College, or Petit Seminaire, is in the Recollet suburbs ; it is two hundred and ten feet, by forty-five, with a wing at each end of one hundred and eighty-six feet by for- ty-five ; it is an appendage of the other seminary, and de- signed to extend its usefulness, by enlarging its accommoda- tioilfs. There is near the mountain of Montreal, another append- age of the seminary. It appears to be about a mile from the town — it is a considerable stone building, surrounded by a massy wall, which encloses extensive gardens, &,c. This place was formerly called Chateau desSigneurs de Montreal ; but now it has the appellation of La Maison des Pretres. It is a place of recreation, resorted to, once a week, by both the superiors and pupils of the seminary. The principal French Church, according to Mr. Duncan, is open throughout the whole week, from an early hour till late in the evening ; and a number of Canadians may at all times be seen kneeling and offering prayers before the altars, of which there are four or five. Around the sides of the church are several confessionals, where you see others upon their knees, whispering through a grating, behind which the priest is seated. " The external appearance of this church is exceedingly plain. The roof and spire are covered with tin ; and a cipher formed by the letters A and M, appears on various places, which is to be interpreted * Ave Maria.' The inte- rior is gaudy and glittering in the extreme, and around the walls are several pictures, a few of which are apparently of considerable merit. The church is dedicated to the Virgin Mary, of whom a pretty large statue occupies a recess, im- mediately above the principal altar. Encircling this altar are four fluted Corinthian columns, supporting a semicircu- lar frieze and cornice, from which springs a scroll work, terminated by a large French crown ; the whole glowing in MONTREAL. bright green and gold. Upon the altar are as usual a cruci- fix, large candlesticks, and boquets of artificial flowers ; be- fore it, suspended from the roof, is a small oil lamp, which is kept perpetually burning. On both sides of the elevated platform, on which the altar stands, are seats for some of the higher orders of clergy. On the left side, considerably ele- vated, is a huge crucifix of barbarous workmanship. *' I have frequently stepped into this church to see what was going forward. One day I learned that two new bells were to be placed in the steeple, and that, preparatory to this, they were to be baptized ! This was a sight not to be missed, and I accordingly took care to be in church, at the hour appointed. The bells were suspended near the centre of the church, from a temporary wooden erection, and near them were a table and some chairs. Soon after we had assembled, a door near the upper end of the church was thrown open, and forth issued a procession of priests, pre- ceded by two boys in white robes, carrying a pair of enor- mous candles, in candlesticks of corresponding dimensions, and two behind carrying a little silver vessel of oil, and water in a silver vase. The priests were variously attired, some in black, others in white, and a few in gorgeous robes of silk and gold. '* The boys placed the candlesticks on the table near the bells, and the priests bestowed themselves in the chairs, around the table, or on the seats, which surrounded the prin- cipal altar ; prayers were then chanted, after which an old ecclesiastic in white ascended the pulpit, and addressed the congregation, in a pretty long French oration. My knowl- edge of the language was too limited to admit of my fully un- derstanding the old gentleman's address, but I was informed by those who did, that it was intended to impress the minds of his auditors with the solemnity of the approaching cere- mony ; and I doubt not that he thought we much needed some such admonition, for the aspect of the congregation was by no means very devout. There was a great crowd present, and with many, as with myself, curiosity seemed to be the most active principle, for they scrambled upon the tops of the pews, and pushed one another so tumultuously, that the old priest twice stopped his address to rebuke us, and on one occasion clapped his hands very angrily, and threatened to suspend the ceremony. I must in justice add, that a great number of the auditors were not Canadians. 44 FAMILY TOURIST. MONTREAL. " Descending from the rostrum, he was invested with a robe of gaudier colors, and having pronounced a solemn ben- ediction upon the water in the vase, he dipped a brush in it and made the sign of the cross upon each bell, inside and out, accompanying it with the solemn words, * In nomine Patris, et Filii, et Spiritus Sancte ! ' Other two then set to work, and completed \vhat he had begun, brushing the bells all over, and then with snow-white towels wiping them dry. Some oil' was then consecrated, with which the sign of the cross was made on a variety of places on each bell, and then carefully wiped dry with a little cotton. A silver cen- ser with live coals was next produced, into which some in- cense was thrown ; and, after being waved three times in the air, it was held under each bell, till they were quite filled with the odorous fumes. " Two old gentlemen anci their venerable spouses now came forward, and one pair was stationed at each bell. These were the godfathers and godmothers of the new mem- bers of the holy church ; and after having answered some questions to the satisfaction of the priests, they had the honor of bestowing names on their godchildren. This, it seems, is an honor which is much coveted, and is only conceded to those who are able and willing to pay handsomely for the distinction. The oldest priest now took hold of the clapper, and tolled each bell three times, which was immediately re- peated by each of the sponsors. The old couples now pro- duced presents for their bantlings ; first a large roll of linen for each bell, which was swathed round it by the ofiiciating .priests ; then rolls of crimson silk, one of which was rich- ly figured, succeeded by laces of fringes; and the whole was bound on by a splendid allowance of white silk riband. The ceremony was now wound up by a short prayer or two, chanted by the priests, when the large candlesticks were again elevated, and the whole fraternity retired as they had entered." M'Culloch regards the Roman Catholic cathedral, opened in 1829, as " superior to any other church in British America. It is of Gothic architecture, 225 feet in length by 134 feet in breadth. It is faced with stone, and roofed with tin, and has six towers, of which the three belonging to the main front are 220 feet in height. On the roof is a promenade, 76 feet in length by 20 in breadth, elevated 120 feet. The principal window is 64 feet in height by 32 in breadth. The interior FAMILY TOURIST. 45 AfONTREAL. is capable of accommodating between 10,000 and 12,000 per- sons, who may disperse by numerous outlets in five or six minutes. It comprises seven convenient chapels and nine spacious aisles." Montreal is the centre of the commerce between Canada and the United States, carried on by Lake Champlain and the Hudson ; and not only is it the resort of all the adjacent coun- try, but most of the business done in Quebec is carried on by branches from the Montreal houses. In 1838, 98 ships, of the aggregate burden of 22,289 tons, entered, and 99 ships, burden 21,901 tons, left the port; and the amount has been considerably augmented since that time. Formerly this city was the head-quarters of the fur-trade, but its interest in it has greatly declined. It has, however, iron foundries, distilleries, breweries, soap, candle, and tobacco manufactories ; several ship-building establishments, &;c. ; and various articles of hardware, linseed oil, floor-cloth, &c., are also made there. As to the society of Montreal and the style of living which prevails, strangers are very likely to differ somewhat in their opinions. If you wish to enjoy good eating, danc- ing, music, and gayety, you will find abundance of all. If literary society is your choice, you will discover but little; and if religious, still less. I was particularly struck with the extent to which card playing and the dice box abound; they seem indeed to be almost the only resource in an even- ing party, if it is not professedly a dancing one. That the citizens of Montreal are hospitable and kind in their atten- tion to a stranger, I bear my willing and most grateful testi- mony ; but unless the traveller is prepared to enjoy such ex- pedients for recreation, he must lay his account with being occasionally somewhat singular in company.* During the war of the Revolution several attempts were made upon different points in Canada, by the Americans. In November, 1775, Colonel Allen and Major Brown under- took an expedition against Montreal. Allen found boats ready for him at Longueville, and crossed the river in the night, below Montreal. Here Brown was to have joined * Duncan's Travels. 46 FAMILY TOURIST. MONTREAL. him with his troops, but missed his way, and Allen was left, with a small force, in the neighborhood of the city. It was just sunrise. The murmur of the city was heard at a few miles distance, and by and by the roll of the Eng- lish drums came upon the ear. The Americans now saw that they were discovered. Before long, a column of British infantry came marching down the bank of the river. There was an almost breathless silence in Allen's small band, as they came up. Even Allen himself stood fast, and gazed at them. " To the boats ! to the boats ! " cried a dozen of his sol- diers; •* there's a thousand of them." "Silence! every man of ye," roared Allen, brandishing a huge horse pistol, " the first man that turns his back upon the red coats, shall smell gunpowder." They were satisfied with this arrange- ment, on the whole, examined their rifles, and stood ready for the onset. '* Stand your ground, boys ! " shouted Allen. A party of British soldiers were moving towards them from the main body, at double quick time. ** Let them come ! " cried a tall, fine looking hunter at his side ; " let them come ! " He brought his rifle to his eye as he spoke. '* Fire ! " shouted the British officer, and instantly the hunter dropped dead at the feet of Allen. His hardy fol- lowers shrunk back. They were sprinkled with the blood of the poor hunter. " F'ire ! fire I " shouted Allen, with a voice of thunder. They fired, and a hot skirmish com- menced. Several of the English fell, and several of the Americans ; others fled. Some defended themselves behind rocks and trees. Allen was at last left alone, surrounded, and compelled to surrender. He brushed a few tears away for the fate of his friend,. the young hunter, and marched on with the English. He was kept a prisoner more than two years, and then was exchanged for some English officer, whom the Ameri- cans had taken. The irons put upon him were so fastened about him, and so heavy, that, for a long time, he could lie down only on his back. A chest was his seat by day, and his bed by night. He was sent to England, to be tried as a prisoner of state, not as a fair and open enemy, but as a rebel. At this time, all the Americans were called rebels, and the English used FAMILY TOURIST. 47 MONTREAL. to speak of hanging great numbers of them, when the war was over. Allen was a man of very large frame, and prodigious strength. He possessed great courage, and was much in- clined to daring enterprise. His reputation, it seems, had gone before him to England ; and he was, therefore, kept in very close confinement. The people were as much afraid of him, as if he had been a whale, or a sea serpent. They sometimes used to come and see him in his prison ; but they were very shy, and if he so much as turned round, they would run away like a flock of startled sheep. UNITED STATES MASSACHUSETTS. BOSTON. Boston, the largest city in the New England States, and the capital of Massachusetts, may boast of what may be called in America, antiquity. It is now more than two hun- dred years old, the first settlement of it by the English having been made in the year 1630. The place was called Shawmut by the Indians, and Trimonntain by the English settlers. The name Boston was given to it by Mr. Cotton, its first minister, who came from Boston, in England. For more than half a century after Governor Winthrop had laid the foundation of the city of the pilgrims, Philadelphia was a forest ; and New York was an insignificant village long after its rival had become a great commercial town. The latitude of Boston is 42° 22' 23" N. and longitude 70'' 58' 53" W. from London. It is situated 300 miles south- east of Montreal ; 300 north-east from Philadelphia, and 436 from Washington. The city is built on an irregular peninsula, nearly two miles in length, at the bottom of Massachusetts Bay, and united to the main land by an isthmus more than a mile in length. The harbor is safe and commodious, capable of allowing 500 vessels to ride at anchor ; yet the mouth is so narrow as scarcely to admit two ships abreast. The en- trance is defended by two forts. The town has outgrown the limits of its natural position ; and Charlestown upon an opposite peninsula, and South Boston upon the main land, may be regarded as integral parts of the city. " Circum- scribed, however, as they are," says Mr. Duncan, *' the cit J. FAMILY TOURIST. 51 izens have had the good taste to reserve a park of upwards of forty acres, upon which no buildings have been allowed to encroach. The Mall, as this is called, is surrounded with spreading elms, and is the finest within the limits of any considerable town in the United States." This obvious ornament has been strangely overlooked in the larger Amer- ican cities, notwithstanding the abundance of elbow-room, which all of them enjoy. The streets in the old town, with a few exceptions, are, according to Dr. Dwight, " narrow, crooked and disagreeable. The settlers appear to have built, where they wished, where a vote permitted, or where danger, or necessity forced them to build. The streets strike the eye of a traveller, as if intended to be mere passages from one neighborhood to another, — the result of casualty, not of contrivance," — ^just like a European city. Indeed, almost all the great cities in the world have been formed in a similar manner. London, Paris, Amsterdam, Moscow, Constantinople, &-c. are all principally built on wretched streets and with a deplorable confusion. " It is remarkable," says Dr. Dwight, " that the scheme of forming public squares, so beautiful, and in great towns so conducive to health, should have been almost entirely forgotten. Noth- ing is so cheerful, so delightful, or so susceptible of the com- bined elegancies of nature and art. On these open grounds, the inhabitants might always find sweet air, charming walks, fountains refreshing the atmosphere, trees excluding the sun, and, together with fine flowering shrubs, presenting to the eye, the most ornamental objects found in the country. Here, also, youth and little children might enjoy those sports, those voluntary indulgencies, which, in fresh air, are, pecu- liarly to them, the sources of health and the prolongation of life. Yet many large cities are utterly destitute of these ap- pendages ; and in no city are they so numerous, as the taste for beauty, and a regard for health, compel us to wish." "The people of New York and Philadelphia," says this learned traveller, *' to a great extent, live in hired houses, which have been erected by professional builders ; whereas, the citizens of Boston have very generally lived in houses of their own, which each individual has built according to his own taste or ability. Many of the modern houses in Boston, however, are superior to every other American city. Houses of stone are interspersed in great numbers through «K 52 FAMILY TOURIST. most parts of the town ; but in West Boston, and still more on Mount Vernon, (the modern name of Beacon Hill,) they appear to peculiar advantage. Previously to 177G, the lat- ter spot was almost absolutely a waste. In that year, it was purchased by three Boston gentlemen, by whom, at a great expense, the ground was levelled, its steep western declivity cut down, and a field of nearly thirty acres converted into one of the most beautiful building grounds in the world." In splendor of building and nobleness of situation, this West End of Boston is not '* within many degrees of a rival" on this side of the Atlantic. Boston struck Mr. Duncan, as having altogether more of the appearance of an English town than New York, Many of the buildings are of a fine white granite, and most of the others are of brick. The streets are very compactly built ; and although many of them are narrow and crooked, all ex- hibit a degree of ortJler and cleanliness, which will in vain be looked for in most other large towns. On a finely rising ground at the upper part of the Mall, stands the State House, a building of humbler pretensions, as to size and materials, than the New York City Hall, but in situation and architectural outline, greatly superior. It is nearly a square; in front is a lofty, projecting colonnade of the Corinthian order, with twelve columns, springing from a piazza of rusticated stone, but unhappily bearing only a balus- trade, over which rises a small attic story with a pediment; and overtopping all is a large circular dome, terminating with a small square lantern, from which a most commanding view is obtained of the surrounding country. In a niche erected for the purpose, on the lower floor, stands Chantry's statue of Washington, a fine specimen of sculpture : it cost $16,000. In front is Boston Bay, studded with nearly forty islands, with fortifications and a lighthouse ; the shores which surround its ample basin, advancing and receding with most capricious irregularity, and forming numerous capes and peninsulas, on one of the largest of which the city stands. The vast amphitheatre round the bay, exhibits a country richly variegated with hill and valley, immense for- ests and cultivated ground, and sprinkled with above twenty little towns of snowy whiteness, among which a dozen of spires may be counted. " The view from the dome of the FAMILY TOURIST. 53 State House," remarks a writer, " is said not to be exceeded by that from the Castle Hill of Edinburgh, or that of the Bay of Naples from the castle of St. Elmo." Beside the State House, already mentioned, the other pub- lic buildings of Boston are such as we might expect to find in a place abounding in wealth, and architectural taste and skill. " Descending from the State House," observes Mr. Good- rich, in his Universal Geography, "towards the mercantile part of the city, the Tremont House attracts our attention ; this is a spacious and splendid hotel, unsurpassed for ele- gance of structure, and the style of its accommodations. The front of the pile is Q,uincy granite, ornamented with a fine portico ; the wings are brick, with stone basements, and, with the front, form three sides of a quadrangle ; the num- ber of apartments contained in the whole is 180." A late English traveller, in describing the internal arrangement of this institution, remarks as follows : " Let the reader reflect, that here are two public tables daily, one for men resident in the house, together with many gentlemen of the city, who regularly dine here ; the other for ladies of families, who have not private apartments: of the latter there are a dozen, consisting of two or more chambers attached to each par- lor ; these are seldom unoccupied, and have also to be pro- vided for ; add to all this an occasional dinner or supper to large public parties, and he will then be enabled to appreci- ate the difficulties and to do justice to the system, which works with the regularity of a clock. A commodious and expensive Custom House has recently been finished by the United States government, and is now occupied for business. It was projected prior to 1840. It is sa'd to have cost one million of dollars. On the north end of the first floor of the building from its entrance, the easterly side is the office of the Assistant Treasurer — a branch of the Sub-Treasury. The vault for the reception of the public funds is very capacious and well secured. On the opposite side of the same projection are the offices of the Measurers and Markers. At the other end of the building are the rooms for the Inspectors, Weighers and Guagers. A wide stairway from each side of the entrance-hall leads to the office in the principal story, and the main hall or rotundo. On the north end are the offices of the Collector and Naval Officer ; at the opposite end are those of the Surveyor and Public Store- 54 FAMILY TOURIST. keeper. In the Hall the principal business of the collecting department, embracing all the clerkships, is transacted : there are some twenty desks, all filled. On either end, are the desks of the Deputy Collectors, in one corner is the Cashier, and on the opposite side is the office of the Registary. The Warehouse office is in another corner. The whole number connected with this Custom House is about 125. It is a fine building, and does great credit to the government. It is al- ready predicted, however, that it will in a few years be alto- gether too small for the accomplishment of the amount of business which it will be desirable to transact under its roof. Boston is rapidly increasing in wealth and population, and the communications with the north and west open a scene of prosperity which has seldom been witnessed by the sea-ports of the old world. Its enterprise is fast gaining upon that of the great commercial metropolis of the United States. At a short distance from the Tremont, stands an ancient edifice called the Stone Chaprl, with its square tower and massive colonnade, producing a noble cffiict by the simple dignity of its architecture. In an opposite direction, on the same street, and fronting the Mall, is St. PauVs Church, a granite edifice in the Doric style, with a fafade of free stone, comprising a portico of six pillars. This church is one of the finest in the United States; the simplicity of its exterior is peculiarly striking. The stone structure on Church Green, with its octagonal shape and tall spire, though of a fantastical design, has its admirers. The Park Street Church, at the head of the Mall, attracts attention, by the height of its steeple. The Old South, in the centre of a busy district, is beheld with interest, from its historical asso- ciations. The tower of the Brattle Street Church, still ex- hibits in its front, the cannon ball shot into it from the bat- teries of the besiegers, in 1775. Trinity Church, in Summer street, a massy structure of rough granite, with a lofty square tower, affords a grand and imposing specimen of mixed gothic architecture. The Church in Bowdoin street, a gothic edifice of rough stone, has the same effect, on a somewhat smaller scale. The largest building in the city is Faneuil Market, a granite structure, two stories in height, and 536 feet long. The centre has a dome, and at each end is a portico of four columns, each of an entire stone. This is the most elegant market in the United States, and probably in the world ; on PARK STREET CHURCH. TRINITY CHURCH. BOWDOIN SQUARE CHURCH. Tremont House. Fnneiiil FInll. Hospital. King's Chapel. FAMILY TOURIST. 57 either hand it fronts on a spacious street, one 65 and the other 102 feet in width, both showing a solid front of stone stores of uniform height and appearance. Old Faneuil Hnll stands west of this spot ; it is a lofty brick edifice, and the spacious galleries of its interior still witness the throngs and the oratory of popular meetings. Painting and repairs have a little modernized, the aspect of this venerable pile The Old State House, now the City Hall, is another relic of an- cient architecture, and the scene of many events in revolu- tionary history. The wharfs of Boston surpass those of any seaport of the United States, for size and convenience. Long Wharf, at tlie bottom of State street, is 1,650 feet long, and has a line of lofty brick stores nearly its whole extent. Central Wharf is 1,240 feet in length, 150 wide, and contains 54 stores in a single pile, with a spacious observatory in the centre, where telegraphic signals are received from the islands in the bay. India Wharf has a double row of stores, six stgries high ; all these wharfs have spacious docks, and wide and con- venient landings, carriage ways, &c. The Massachusetts General Hospital is a beautiful stone edifice, much commended for the convenience of its interior arrangements. The Houses of Industry and Correction, on the peninsula of South Boston, but within the city limits, are of stone, each 220 feet long, and of an uniform architecture. The new Court-house, constructed of hewn Quincy granite, is 176 feet long, 54 feet wqde, and 57 feet high ; and the north and south fronts are adorned with Grecian Doric porticoes, of four columns, which weigh 25 tons each. The interior has four court-rooms, each 50 by 40 feet, besides various public offices. An elegant Merchants' Exchange, with a fine reading- room, has been recently erected in State street ; and besides accommodations for the post office, and for several insurance and brokers' offices, affords many conveniences for the mer- cantile community. Within a few years, the business, wealth and population of Boston have been greatly augmented by reason of the several Railroads which enter it at various poin^, especially the Great Eastern and Western Railroads. The population of Boston in 1845 was 120,000, and has since been rapidly increasing. 58 FAMILY TOURIST. Until 1821, Boston retained the denomination of a town, and continued to be governed by a body of selectmen, ac- cording to the ancient New England custom. Since that period, it has had a city government, consisting of a Mayor, eight Aldermen, and a Common Council of forty-eight mem- bers, all chosen annually in January.* Boston is honorably pre-eminent in the number of its lit- erary and educational institutions. The public schools are maintained by a tax ; and as every person has a right to send his children to these establishments, the poor obtain educa- tion almost gratis. The rich mostly prefer sending their children to private academies. The public schools are un- der the inspection of a committee of gentlemen, annually chosen, whose duty it is to visit them once in three months. *• The Bostonians are very proud, and perhaps justly so," re- marks Captain Basil Hall, "of this system of public instruc- tion." Boston is rich in public libraries, among which that of the Athenaium, a literary institution incorporated in 1817, claims pre-eminence. In works on American history, the col- lection is said to be unrivalled. A museum is attached to it. The other literary societies of Boston are the American Academy of Arts and Sciences ; the American Antiquarian Society ; the Massachusetts Medical Society ; the Massa- chusetts Historical Society ; and the Massachusetts Agri- cultural Society. Its charitable associations are not less numerous. Among these are a Bible Society for Massachu- setts; several Missionary Societies; an Institution for the relief of the widows and children of deceased ministers; a Humane Society for the relief of distressed seamen ; and a Female Asylum. Harvard College, although situated in Cambridge, three miles from Boston, is so naturally associated with the capi- tal, that we shall speak of it in this place. It is the most an- cient, and most amply endowed collegiate institution in the Union. The foundation of it was laid in the year 1636, by the appropriation ofc£400 for the purpose of a public school, by the General Court of the infant colony. In 1638, the Rev. John Harvard, of Charlestown, bequeathed to it one half of his property, amounting to nearly .£800. The institu- * Goodrich's Universal Geography. FAMILY TOURIST. 59 tion was now dignified with the name of Harvard College ; and the town, which had hitherto been called Newtown, was named Cambridge, in honor of that seat of science in Eng- land, at which a great number of the principal colonists had received their education. Thus, remarks Dr. Dwight, " with- in ten years after the littJe flock, which commenced the set- tlement of Massachusetts, landed at Salem, and within eighteen years after the first foot was set on the shore of Plymouth, a college was endowed by them and established." In 1650, the first charter was granted by a General Court, constituting the President and FelJows of the College a cor- porate body. This charter was confirmed by the Constitution of the State, when the style of " the University in Cam- bridge," wasfirst legally given. The professorships of divinity and of mathematics and natural philosophy were founded by Mr. Thomas Hollis, a merchant of London, 1722 and 1726; that of Hebrew, by the Hon. Thomas Hancock, an eminent merchant of Boston, in 1765. Other professorships have been added, from time to time, by subsequent benefactors. They now amount to upwards of twenty, including the Med- ical Department, which is an integral part of the Institution ; although, for the greater convenience of medical students, it occupies buildings in Boston. The University now com- prises five colleges, and a new hall, (erected in 1814, at the expense of nearly .£17,000,) containing the chapel, lecture rooms, dining rooms, and kitchen : this hall, which is of fine white granite, is reckoned the handsomest building in Massachusetts. The building stands in an enclosed plain, fourteen acres in extent, sheltered on three sides by forest trees, and in the immediate vicinity of an extensive common. The library, containing upwards of 40,000 volumes, is the best in the United States. The philosophical apparatus is also valuable. The museum has been enriched by a collec- tion of mineralogical specimens, principally presented by Dr. Letsom of London, and the Paris Committee of Public Safety. There if? also a valuable collection of anatomical wax models, the workmanship of Italian artists. The academical course is completed in four years. " The literary and scientific reputation of Harvard Uni- versity," says Mr. Duncan, " stands very high; and except Yale College, none in this country can contest with it the 60 AMILY TOURIST. pre-eminence." Its means of usefulness have recently been materially augmented by the establishment of additional pro- fessorships, for which liberal provision has been made. Mount Auburn Cemetery also belongs to Boston, being a place of burial for such of the inhabitants of the capital as are dis- posed by purchase to become interested in it. It is on the western line of Cambridge, stretching into Watertown, and nearly four and a half miles westerly of norlii of the city. It was consecrated as a place of repose for the dead, with appropriate ceremonies, September 24th, 1831. • Tlie lot originally comprised seventy-two acres, but by an after purchase was increased to one hundred and ten acres. The entrance on the north front of the cemetery is through a massive gate- way, taken from an Egyptian model, and chiseled in a very superior manner from Quincy granite, and cost ten thousand dollars. The whole length of the north line has an imposing cast-iron fence, erected at a cost of fif- teen thousand dollars. , The highest mound in the cemetery is one hundred and twenty-five feet above the level of the river Charles, which meanders along its south-eastern boundary; on this mound it is the design to erect a tower sixty feet high, which will afford an interesting position for an extended view of the surrounding scenery : — it being then at an elevation of one hundred and eighty-five feet. The land is excellent, clothed with a fine growth of trees, and beautifully undulated with a constant succession of hill and dale, aflTording quiet retreats and pleasant look-outs. The paths are laid out in involving lines, which constitutes one of its most pleasing arrangements. It is one of the nfK>st inter- esting spots of public utility and beauty about the city, for the stranger to look on, or the reflecting mind of man to dwell upon. Here repose the remains not only of many of the eminent citizens of Boston and vicinity, but of distinguished strangers, who have fallen in their midst. Among the latter may be mentioned the name of one familiar to all — the cele- brated phrenologist Dr. Spurzheim, over whose dust the liberal and philanthropic hand has erected a chaste, yet beau- tiful and enduring monument. The first person interred in this ground was the amiable Hannah Adams. A neat monument has been erected to her memory, on which is the following inscription : 5*^ FAMILY TOURIST. 61 TO HANNAH ADAMS, HISTORIAN OF THE JEWS, * AND REVIEWER OF THE CHRISTIAN SECTS, THIS MONUMENT IS ERECTED -^ BY HER FEMALE FRIENDS. FIRST TENANT OF MOUNT AUBURN. SHE DIED DEC, 15, 1831. • AGED 76. " The enterprising spirit by which the Bostonians, and the New Engl anders generally, are distinguished, has character- ized them from the very foundation of the colony ; and it formed one topic of eloquent panegyric in the splendid ora- tion of Burke, on moving his famous Resolutions of Concil- iation with the Colonies."* ** Look," said he, ** at the man- ner in which the people of New England have of late carried on the whale fishery. Whilst we follow them among the tumbling mountains of ice, and behold them penetrating into the deepest frozen recesses of Hudson's Bay and Davis's Straits, — whilst we are looking for them beneath the arctic circle, we hear that they have pierced into the opposite re- gion of polar cold ; that they are at the antipodes, and en- gaged under the frozen serpent of the South. Falkland island, which seemed too remote and romantic for the grasp of national ambition, is but a stage and resting-place, in the progress of their victorious industry. Nor is the equinoctial heat more discouraging to them, than the accumulated winter of both the poles. We know that whilst some of them draw the line and strike the harpoon, on the coast of Africa, others run the longitude, and pursue the gigantic game along the coast of Brazil. No sea, but what is vexed by their fisheries. No climate, that is not witness to their toils. Neither the perseverance of Holland, nor the activity of France, nor the dexterous and firm sagacity of English en- terprise, ever carried this most perilous mode of hard indus- try to the extent, to which it has been pushed by this recent Dwight's Travels. 62 FAMILY TOURIST. people ; a people who are still, as it were, but in the gristle, and not yet hardened into the bone of manhood."* It is curious enough to compare with this splendid en- comium upon the adventurous spirit of mercantile enterprise, the caricature of the New Englander drawn by an American writer, in which the same general lineaments are, neverthe- less, preserved. *' These Yankees are certainly a very strange race of people. You will see them with their eel skins upon their hair, to save tlte expense of barbers, and their ear-rings in their ears, to improve their sight — to see how to cheat you better, I suppose. They would sooner die than part with one of these ornaments — unless you pay them well for it. At the same time, they live upon nothing. A rasher of pork is a feast for them, even on holidays. Their favorite drink is switchel, or molasses and water, which, they tell you, is better than burgundy or champagne. They are, however, better taught than fed, and make the finest, boldest sailors in the world. They can sail to the North Pole in an egg shell, if the ice does not break it. Indeed, they are seamen by birth, and box the compass in their cradles. You know our genteel laziness unfits us (Virginians) for the drudgery of commerce; so we leave it all to the Yankees. The crafting part of them come to us at all seasons in their sloops and schooners, bringing a miscellaneous cargo of all sorts o^ no- tions — not metaphysical, but material — such as cheese, but- ter, potatoes, cranberries, onions, beets, coffins ; — you smile, but it is a fact, that, understanding some years ago that the yellow fever was raging with great violence, some of them very charitably risked their own lives, to bring us a large quantity of ready-made coffins, of all sizes, in nests, one within another, to supply customers at a moment's warning ; an insult we have hardly forgiven them yet. You will see them sailing up into all our bays, rivers, and creeks ; wherever the water runs. As the winter comes on, they creep into some little harbor, where they anchor their vessels, and open store on board, retailing out their articles of every kind, to the poor countrymen, who come to buy. Towards the spring, they sail away with a load of planks or shingles, which they often get very cheap. Indeed, the whole race of Yankee * Burke's Speeches, vol. 1, p. 284. FAMILY TOURIST 63 seamen are certainly the most enterprising people in the world. They are in all quarters of the globe, where a penny is to be made. In short, they love money a little better than their own lives. What is worst, they are not always very nice about the means of making it, but are ready to break the laws like cobwebs, whenever it suits their interest."* " This," remarks Lieutenant Hall, ** is a caricature — in- tentionally a caricature ; but we have introduced it for the purpose of showing what pleasant things have been said of the Yankees. Still the Virginian satire is not without its justice, in respect to some, whose birthplace was the land of the puritan fathers. To be correctly judged of, the New Englanders should be seen at home.^' " I feel a pride and pleasure," says Mr. Carey, in his Olive Branch, *' in doing justice to the yeomanry of the Eastern States : they will not suffer in a comparison with the same class of men in any part of the world. They are upright, sober, orderly, and regular ; shrewd, intelligent, and well informed ; and I believe there is not a greater degree of native urbanity among the yeomanry of any other country, under the canopy of heaven." These traits of character, so highly and justly commended by Mr. Carey, are applicable to the citizens of Boston. Perhaps no people on the globe are more attached to their country, are more jealous of its honor, or more watchful in respect to its constitution, and institutions, than the people of Boston. They were among the first in their resistance to British tyranny, and foremost in all the great measures which led to the triumph of American liberty. As early as 1760, an attempt was made by the British government to enforce an act, by which duties were laid on foreign sugar and mo- lasses. This act being considered oppressive, had, in some instances, been supposed to be evaded. " Writs of assist- ance," or search warrants, were therefore offered to the cus- tom house officers, with a view to search for those articles, supposed to be secreted. This measure roused the people, and for the purpose of opposing the issuing of these writs, they employed two eminent lawyers, Oxenbridge Thatcher, and James Otis, to appear before the court in their behalf. John Adams said, " That on this occasion, Otis was a flame of fire ! — every one of the immense audience, who heard him * Letters from Virginia. 64 FAMILY TOURIST. in his defence of American rights, went away ready to take arms against writs of assistance. Then and there was tlie first scene of opposition to the arbitrary claim of Great Brit- ain ; then and there American independence was born." In 1765, Lord Grenville introduced into the British par- liament his famous project for taxing America, to commence with duties, on stamps. This excited throughout the colo- nies a burst of indignant feeling; but in no place greater heart-burnings than in Boston. Measures were pursued by the patriotic populace, which were considered unwarrantable by the more reflecting ; but they evinced the spirit and character of the people of those djiys. The stamp act was expected to go ir>to operation on the 1st of November; b"t in August preceding, the excited feeling of the inhabitants broke out into open violence. " After burning the elFigy of Mr. Oliver, the proposed distributor of stamps, the populace assembled at his house, broke his windows, and destroyed his furniture. Mr. Oliver then formally pledged liimself to have no concern in the execution of the obnoxious statute. The houses of an ofiicer of the court of admiralty, and of one of the custom house officers, were entered, and their effects purloined. But the greatest damage was done in the mansion house of Lieutenant Governor Hutchinson, whose loss in furniture, plate, fixtures, and money, was very con- siderable, and was a chief item in the claims whicii Great Britain afterwards made against Massachusetts, for remuner- ating those who suffered, in attempting to enforce this act of its legislature." On the arrival of the 1st of November, "the great, the important day," its dawn was ushered in by the tolling of the bells of the city, as for a funeral. Many of the shops and stores were .shut. Effigies of the men who supported the act, Jf^ere paraded about the streets, and carried to a gallows ' erected on Boston neck, where, after being suspended for some time, they were cut down and torn to pieces, amid the shouts and acclamations of thousands. In 1768, " non-importation agreements" were entered into by several of the colonies, in regard to articles on which du- ties had been laid. Tea being one, the East India Company soon found a large quantity accumulated in their warehouses. This they found it necessary to sell, to save themselves from bankruptcy; and, accordingly, large shipments were made to America, with the hope that the people of the colonies, in FAMILY TOURIST. 65 spite of all private associations, and patriotic agreements, would purchase an article, which, from long habit and ex- tensive use, had become almost a necessary of life. Long before the ships arrived, however, with the tea, ar- rangements were made to avert the threatened mischief That which arrived in Philadelphia and New York, was sent back to England in the same ships that brought it. In Charleston it was landed, and was ruined in damp ware- houses. In Boston another fate awaited it. Two of the vessels with the tea arrived on Saturday, No- vember 27th. On Monday following, a meeting of citizens was called, and a vote passed with acclamations, " that the tea shall not be landed, that no duty shall be paid, and that it shall be sent back in the same bottoms." At the same time, resolutions were passed, calling on the consignees^ among whom were two sons of Governor Hutchinson, to de- cline the charge of it. A guard of twenty-five men were ap- pointed to protect it, and prevent its being landed ; and then the meeting was adjourned to the next day, to hear the an- swer of the consignees. That answer was, that they would not send it back, but would store it. A proclamation from the governor, ordering the people to disperse, was read by the sheriff, which was received with one universal hiss. Votes were again passed, prohibiting the tea to be landed. " On the fifteenth of December, another meeting was held at the Old South Church, when Mr. Rotch, the owner of the largest parcel of tea, attended ; and after much difficulty, he was persuaded to apply to the custom house for a clearance, and the meeting adjourned, to hear the result, till the next morning. Ten gentlemen accompanied him to the custom house, and the clearance was refused, in a peremptory man- ner. A vote of the meeting was then passed, ordering him to protest against this refusal, and a deputation was sent with him to Governor Hutchinson, who was at his country seat on Milton Hill, seven miles from Boston, to entreat him to grant a pass, that the vessel might leave the harbor. " In the mean time, various speeches were made in the meeting, to keep the people together, which were said to amount to six or seven thousand persons. Mr. John Rowe, an eminent merchant and patriotic citizen, who was, doubt- less, in the secret of the measures that were to be taken in the last resort, hinted in the form of an inquiry, ' Who 5 66 FAMILY TOURIST. knows how tea will mix with salt water ? ' which was re- ceived with applause. At length, about sundown, the depu- tation returned from the governor, with the refusal to grant the pass. A few minutes after, a band of eighteen or twenty young men, who had been prepared for the event, went by the meeting-house, giving a shout. It was echoed by some withiii ; others exclaimed, * the Mohawks are come ! ' The assembly broke up, and a part of it followed this body of young men to Griffin's wharf, (now called Liverpool wharf,) on the south side of the town. " Three different parties, composed of trustworthy per- sons, many of whom in after life were among the most re- spectable citizens of the town, had been prepared, in con- formity to the resolves of the political leaders, to act as cir- cumstances should require. One or two of these parties wore a kind of Indian disguise. They were seventy or eighty in all ; and, when every attempt had failed to have the tea returned, and the final refusal of the governor to inter- fere was received, it was immediately made known to them, and they proceeded at once to throw the obnoxious mer- chandise into the water. This was done with as much good order and regularity, as if the tea had been discharged in the ordinary way. The chests were hoisted upon the decks, broken open, and their contents emptied over the side of the ship into the channel. A large crowd of people was col- lected, who were quiet spectators of the operation, which was completed in the course of the evening ; and after the work was finished, the actors and spectators calmly retired to their several homes. "Of all the tea, which was three hundred and forty-two chests, the whole quantity saved is contained in a small vial still in existence. One of the operators, on his return home, found his shoes filled with it ; this he put into a bottle, and sealed up. Not a pound of the tea was purloined. One of the persons engaged in the business, who wished to preserve too large a specimen, was observed by some of his com- panions to have the pockets of his coat a little distended. This was treated as an accident, which was remedied, how- ever, in a good natured way, without resistance, by the appli- cation of a knife across the waist of the coat, which left a garment, that has, in later times, been called a spencer, and the part separated was thrown overboard, to accompany its kindred tea. The most scrupulous care was taken, that nono FAMILY TOURIST. 69 CHARLESTOWH. of it should be secreted. The shores of the harbor, at high water mark, were lined with it the next day, as with other worthless weeds. A chest, containing a few pounds, floated into a creek in Dorchester, where it was discovered, brought into town, and publicly committed to the flames." CHARLESTOWN. Charlestown is an appendage, or suburb of Boston ; yet it was founded a year earlier than the latter. In 1629, the inhabitants of Salem, being dissatisfied with the location, to the number of 100, removed under the direction of Mr. Graves, to Mishaumn, to which by consent they gave the name of Charlestown. Mr. Graves laid out the town in two acre lots, one of which he assigned to each inhabitant; and afterwards he built a good house for the accommodation of those who were soon to come over to New England.* The more compact part of the town is built on a peninsula, the centre of which is occupied by Bunker Hill. The houses stand on the eastern and southern slope of the hill, and along its base. The main street is a mile in length, and there is a spacious and handsome square in the southern part. It is a pleasant but irregular town, and the views of the city, with the harbor and the neighboring country, which are exhibited from the elevated parts, are exceedingly beautiful. There are several public works at Charlestown, of interest, among which may be mentioned the United States Navy Yard. It occupies 60 acres of ground, and comprises a marine hospital, warehouse, arsenal, powder magazine, and a superintendent's house, all of brick, with two large wooden houses to shelter frigates and sloops of war, on the stocks. The dry dock is the finest in the United States. It cost rising half a million of dollars. On the western side of the peninsula, at the water's edge, stands the Massachusetts State Prison. It has been recently rebuilt on the Auburn plan, with 300 cells, and reorganized at an expense of $86,000. The Massachusetts Insane Hos- * Holmes. 70 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLESTOWN. pital stands upon a beautiful eminence in the western part of Charlestown, without the peninsula, and consists of several piles of buildings. Charlestown is memorable for the battle of Bunker Hill, so called, which was fought June 17, 1775. It was the first regular battle fought in the Revo\utionary war, and served to give an impulse to the Americans in their struggle, which they did not forget, till victory crowned their arms, in the final battle of Yorktown. Bunker and Breed's Hill, are two eminences in Charles- town. "On the Kith of June, Colonel Prescott received orders to fortify Bunker's Hill ; but on viewing that emi- nence, he saw at once, that it was an ineligible spot; and he looked along to the right, and found that a spur of that hill, which was now called Breed's Hill, was the most proper situation, in every respect, for a battle ground. Consider- ing that they were within the limits of their orders, Prescott and Colonel Gridley, the engineers, began a redoubt on the right of Breed's Hill. It was about one hundred and forty feet square, with two open passages for ingress and egress. On the left of the redoubt, running north-easterly, was a breastwork of sods, not much over four feet high ; but not, as has been stated, extending to Mystic river ; it did not extend one quarter of the way to it. The line from this breastwork was made of two post and rail fences, placed about four feet apart, in parallel lines, and between them was trode the newly mown grass, making quite as good a screen for the militia, as the redoubt or the breastwork. General Ward, who commanded the American army, con- cluding from the firing from Copp's Hill, in Boston, at the early dawn of the morning of the 17th, that the British would make a struggle to get possession of the works, offered to relieve Prescott and his men; but they unanimously declined the offer, but earnestly insisted on reinforcements. These were reluctantly given, as the commander in chief thought that an attack on his camp was contemplated ; and in such case, his camp at Cambridge, indifferently fortified as it was, would be a better place for a general action, than Bunker's Hill. *' Early in the morning, from the battery on Copp's Hill, one of the men in or near the redoubt was shot, and was in- stantly buried on the spot ; but although the roar of the — . —^ ♦. 1 wK^K^^^^w/M 1 ^SHBlwKB ^^^^^ ^ ^^v n ^^ ■n mH^^^Mi^^m '■''*^il F pjj— li ■i iillf^^jtf^les^' Mi UM ■i xJKtr^ ..msl AB. «■ ic' '■' J HI 1 f'M^^B '■-■ ***^m^^^^ n t , '^1 , ^ - j|^:vi^^ ■HI 3 ig ii llw ' 'c2^ ■■ ■"'^ _ .'ill ■■— ■'■:- ■ § cr^ ^i- — ■ /111 ; JB ■U^r^ '''' '"'^^^^^ 'i»^ ■ "**^fJB I^RrllP •>--. — ^'^ ; 1 ^•#'-''^^§^'^^^ Wi « V ■ v^-«^^t>>.^-- ±!M\ ^1:1 M» I1P»= 1 /y 1 wM ;^^.#^- %.:?*3i \\ bnB [T|TotlH Ml lir'\ • • vr.^ ,M' .., '^-^ M- i ^^^^^H rL\ '■/} ' '' HI if" "J^il-' ^^^'^"•y^l. P^^^^^^^^^^ Vn ' >'•..'■( ■'^•'■Vw'HtF*^'''*' . '"^^^^k n ^^^Tl W^ f ^@l IL.» t ^H^l 'flw^' "'^'^'^^S^i*'' ■'^' '•'■'i'«'iij<» ,^^ " >'i'jB^^ 1 ilw. <^Bm L-^ ■^1 i:\ mm liSe^K£^!&HMlP ■M^^ |B>^!^-'^^i^^^H^^ i« S|t II^^S^^ ■ " '^^i^ . :1l pil ^M 1 HI III .w}'5®^^_''(v^^^>.' , ^^^^^OTitv* ' "'^PP^I^ ^'^ *^^^^S^k ^■S'A ^^^11 III '4^w^^>-vr.^ • ■ '^J^s^"^^* ,I!^5*^^i^^l^^1''^Hsfc vJ^ ' ^ ~ ' ''^H IH ''':''r-'*'^"'^>''\.i -t:^ »! ^fji^ III- ' •■ ^^^^^^^ • - I FAMILY TOURIST. 73 CHARLESTOWN. cannon from Copp's Hill was incessant, no further damage was done by their shots ; and in aid of this battery, the Lively, a man-of-war, was brought to bear, and in fact she began the cannonade. '* General Gage, wishing to drive the provincials from the hill, sent Major General Howe and Brigadier General Pigot, with ten companies of grenadiers, and ten of light infantry, with some artillery, to perform this service. These generals, reconnoitering the American forces, on their arrival at Nor- ton's Point, thought best to wait the reinforcement from Boston. For these, Howe waited from about noon till three o'clock, P. M. before the battle was commenced. The British began a slow march up the hill in two lines, stopping at times to give the artillery a chance to play. But the angle of elevation was such, that it did but little execution. The provincials wasted no ammunition ; they had but a scanty supply. They were ordered to put four buck shots to a bullet, and to reserve their fire until the enemy were at blank point shot distance. At this moment they poured in upon the approaching foe a most destructive volley. The effect was not more destructive than appalling. The British soldiery expecting nothing but random shots from undisci- plined militia, were astonished at such deadly fires, and their line was broken in confusion. Some companies had not twenty soldiers fit for duty, when they were about to rally. The British officers had the greatest difficulty to bring their troops into line again. At length, they came up a second time towards the works, but with some wavering, and in less than fifteen minutes, their line broke in still greater confu- sion than before. Clinton saw this from Boston, and hasten- ed over to assist Howe. Both the generals addressed the soldiers ; called to mind their former wreaths of glory, and the everlasting disgrace of being beaten by raw militia. Howe swore to them, that he would never survive the dis- grace, if they were conquered that day. By this time, Charlestown, consisting of four hundred houses, was in a blaze. This Clinton had done to terrify the neighboring army. On the third attack, they were under the necessity of resorting to skill, not daring to put it on the score of bravery a third time. Pigot, with a considerable force, took a circuitous route around the south side of the hill, and came upon the south-western angle of the redoubt, and in- stantly scaled the slight works. Pitcairn was with him, and 74 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLKSTOWN. was shot through the body as he was about to leap into the redoubt. Pigot, being a short man, was lifted by his soldiers on to the sods, and jumped into the area without harm. The provincials were now attacked on the east and on the west; their ammunition was exhausted, and they had but few or no bayonets ; and after beating their assailants awhile with the buls of their guns, Prescott ordered a retreat. Those at the breast work and in the redoubt retreated, and those at the rail fence followed, over Charlestown neck northward. " Until the commencement of the retreat, but few of the Americans had been killed. Their unwillingness to leave the ground at the proper time, was the cause of the considerable number of killed and wounded. Captain Knowlton, having a fine company near Mystic river, moved up in good order, and covered the retreat of the Americans. The battle was ended between five and six o'clock. The wind during the fight, was brisk and westerly, and drove the smoke directly in the face of the enemy ; but as the smoke rose over the heads of the British, the Americans, as it were, looking under the cloud, saw where to fire. Prescott was during the fight in the redoubt ; the other portion of the Massachusetts Snilitia at the breastworks. The New Hampshire troops, under Stark, Dearborn, and others, were at the rail fence. They were marching from their native State towards Cam- bridge, and went on to the battle ground by their own im- pulses, not having received any orders from the commander in chief. '* The British had between three and four thousand in the fight. They acknowledged ten hundred and fifty-four killed and wounded, with a great proportion of officers. Their number was most unquestionably larger; for they brought between three and four hundred of the slain, and buried them in the corner of the new burying ground at the bottom of the common in Boston. The others were buried on Breed's Hill, where they fell. *'The Americans had fifteen hundred in the fight, but perhaps there were a few more at times, for volunteers came on to the ground, expended their powder, and retreated, when they could do no more service to the cause. The provincials had one hundred ahd thirty-nine killed, and three hundred and fourteen wounded and missing. The officers who fell on the American side were, Colonel Gardner of GENERAL HOWK GENERAL BURGOYNE. FAMILY TOURIST. 79 CHARLESTOWN. Cambridge, Lieutenant Colonel Parker of Chelmsford, and Majors Moore and M'Crary, — all men of distinction and value, and heroes in the cause, — with Major Joseph Warren. " General Burgoyne was all the time, during the battle, seated in the belfry of the North Church of Boston, a most commanding position, to watch the movements of either party. His letter describing the scene was, at that period, considered as one of very graphic power, but is too general to give the historian much information. Warren assumed no command on that day. He had been commissioned as a major general by the Provincial Congress, but four days previous, and had not taken any command; nor had he, in fact, been sworn into office, except, as every one had an oath in heaven, to live free, or die. Warren was, at the moment of his fall, president of the Provincial Congress, and chairman of the committee of safety. He had put some one into the chair, and mounted his horse at Watertown, where the legislature was in session, to come and encourage his fellow citizens in the fight. When he entered the redoubt, Prescott offered him the command, but he declined it, say- ing, * I come to learn loar, under an experienced soldier^ not to take any command.^ He was the martyr of that day's glory. His death was felt as a calamity to the cause and to the nation. He was in the prime of life, being only thirty- five years of age, with a spirit as bold and dauntless, as was ever blazoned in legends, or recorded in history. He was a prudent, cautious, but fearless statesman; made to govern men, and to breathe into them a portion of his own heroic soul. His eloquence was of high order ; his voice was fine, and of great compass, and he modulated it at will. His ap- pearance had the air of a soldier, — graceful and command- ing, united to the manners of a finished gentleman. The British thought that his life was of the utmost importance to the American army; of so much importance, that they would no longer hold together after his fall. They sadly mistook the men they had to deal with. His blood was not shed in vain ; it cried from the ground for vengeance ; and his name became a watchword in the hour of peril and glory. The name of the humblest individual, who perished in that fight, will be remembered by the town, or parish from whence he came, and be generally enrolled on the books of the corpo- ration. Young, substantial yeomen, or industrious me- chanics, they were owners of the soil for which they fought. 80 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLESTOWN. The battle scene was imposing ; — the ground was in the im- mediate neighborhood of a city, whose inhabitants were watching the progress of events, anxious for their nearest friends ; — the roar of cannon from ships of war, and from floating and stationary batteries, followed, or commingled with incessant volleys of musketry — a well built and com- pact town, seen in one jnass of flames, — and all this but the commencement of troubles, — was a sight appalling to every American, and seemed to shake even the enemy, in both mind and body. The British troops, in considerable num- bers, occupied the hill that night, and enlarged the redoubt to nearly twice its original extent ; yet they did not venture to light their fires, but labored by the sinking, flickering lights, which shot up from the smouldering ruins of Charles- town. For the Americans, struggling for liberty, the event of this battle was most fortunate. Their troops had done enough for honor ; enough to produce an impression of their prowess on the minds of their enemies : enough to give them confidence in themselves ; and to show that they had learnt something in the way of preparing themselves to correct the errors of judgment in planning a fight. They suffered enough to feel their loss deeply, and yet not sufficiently in any way to weaken their forces. The wound received was too deep to be healed at once ; the sijrht was too awful to be soon forgotten."* A monument designed to perpetuate the memory of this event, most memorable, perhaps, in the struggle of the Americans for liberty, was commenced June 17th, 1825. It stands on the southern brow of the eminence, immediately overlooking the town, upon a commanding site. It is a plain obelisk of grey granite, and its height is 220 feet; the base is 30 feet square. The ceremony of laying the corner stone of this monu- ment was grand and imposing. The following account is given by Levasseur, the private secretary of the illustrious Fayette, the latter of whom was present on the sublime oc- casion. " The sun rose clear, on the fiftieth anniversary of Bun- ker's Hill ; and thousands of voices, joined with the cheer- ful sound of bells and the roar of artillery, saluted him with * Hinton's United States. » FAMILY TOURIST. 93 CHARLESTOWN. their patriotic shouts. At seven, A. M. passing through this crowd, which was excited by glorious recollections of the 17th of June, 1775, General Lafiiyette proceeded to the grand lodge of Massachusetts, where deputations from the grand lodges of Maine, New Hampshire, Rhode Island, Connecti- cut, Vermont, and New Jersey, were assembled, with the officers of the chapters of the Knights Templars, to receive and compliment him. " At ten o'clock, 2000 free masons, sixteen companies of volunteer infantry, a corps of mounted militia, with the dif- ferent corporations, and the civil and military authorities, proceeded to the State House, where the procession was formed under the inspection of General Lyman ; while the Grand Masters of the Masonic order went for General La- fayette, who had returned to the house of Mr. Lloyd, on leaving the lodge. ** At half-past ten, the procession began to move : it con- sisted of about 7,000 persons ; two hundred officers and soldiers of the revolution marched in front, and forty vet- erans, glorious relics of the battle of Bunker's Hill, followed them in eight open carriages. They were decorated with a broad riband, on which was this inscription : — * 17th June, 1775.' Some of them had on their shoulders the cartridge belts they had worn on that memorable day: and one of them who had been a drummer, still bore the drum with which he had several times rallied the American battalions, when broken by the English columns. Behind them march- ed a long line of persons formed of the numerous subscribers to the monument, six abreast, and 2,000 masons, clad in rich ornaments, and bearing the instruments and symbols of their order. Last came General Lafayette, in an elegant carriage, drawn by six beautiful white horses. Next behind him followed a long line of coaches, in which were his son, his secretary, the governor of Massachusetts and his staff; finally, a great number of persons of distinction, natives and strangers. This column proceeded, with the sound of music and ringing of bells, through the midst of 200,000 citizens, who had assembled from all the States of the Union ; while the General was at intervals saluted by artillery and general acclamations. He arrived at Bunker's Hill at half-past twelve, and the whole crowd was soon ranged in regular order on the hill, where the monument was to be erected, to 84 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLESTOWN. witness the national gratitude expressed to the first heroes of the revolution. " The humble pyramid erected in former times, over the remains of Warren and his companions, which wc had seen on our first visit to Bunker's Hill, had disappeared. From the largest piece of wood it contained, a cane had been formed, which was mounted with gold, and bore an inscrip- tion referring to its origin, and stating that it had been prc- jsented by the Masons of Charlestown to General Lafayette, who accepted it as a precious relic of the American revolu- tion. A large excavation which had been made at that place, showed that the new monunient was to be raised on the same spot. " A few moments after we had taken our places around that excavation, and silence had been obtained throughout the numerous crowd that surrounded, awaiting the ceremony in solemn silence, the Grand Master of the Grand Lodge of Massachusetts, accompanied by the principal dignitaries of the order, brother Lafayette, Mr. Webster, and the principal architect, proceeded to lay the first stone of the monument, with the forms prescribed by the Masonic order. In an iron chest were placed medals, pieces of money, and a silver plate, on which was engraved the order of ceremonies. This box was placed under the stone, on which the Grand Master poured wheat, oil, and wine ; while the Rev. Mr. Allen, the chaplain of the day, pronounced the benediction. The Ma- sonic command to finish the monument was then given, and a salute of artillery announced that this part of the ceremony was accomplished. " The procession then moved to a vast amphitheatre, formed on the north-eastern declivity of the hill. At the centre of its base was raised a covered platform, from which the orator of the day was to raise his voice, and address an audience of 15,000 persons assembled in the amphitheatre. All the revolutionary officers and soldiers, several of whom had come from great distances to witness this solemnity, were seated opposite the stage, the survivors of Bunker's Hill forming a little group in their front. At the head of that party was placed, in a large chair, the only surviving general of the revolution, Lafayette. Immediately behind were 2,000 ladies, brilliantly dressed, who seemed to form a guard of honor for those venerable old men, and to protect FAMlEhr TOURIST. 85 CHARLESTOWN. them from the tumultuous throng of the crowd. Beyond the ladies, more than 10,000 persons were seated on the nu- merous benches which were placed on the side of the hill, the top of which was crowned with upwards of 30,000 spec- tators, who, although beyond the reach of the orator's voice, stood motionless, and in the most profound silence. After the agitation which necessarily accompanies the movements of so large a crowd had been tranquilized, the melodious sound of a large choir of singers was heard, who were con- cealed behind the stage, and raised a patriotic and religious song, the deep melody of which agreeably prepared the minds of all for the impressions of eloquence. This music was succeeded by a prayer from Dr. Thaxter ; and when the venerable pastor, who had had the honor of fighting at ♦Bunker's Hill, presented himself before the assembly, with his white locks falling in long silver curls on his shoulders : when he raised towards heaven his hands enfeebled by age, and with a voice still strong, implored the benedictions of the Almighty on the proceedings of that day, the whole audi- ence seemed penetrated with inexpressible emotions. At length, the orator of the day, Mr. Webster, presented himself in his turn ; his tall stature, his athletic form, the noble expression of his countenance, and the fire of his eye, per- fectly harmonized with the solemnity of the scene. Mr. Webster, who had been for a long time rendered popular by the charms of his eloquence, was welcomed by the assembly with every expression of pleasure. The murmur of satisfac- tion with which he was saluted, ascended from the base of the hill to the summit, and prevented him for a few instants from beginning his discourse. " During his discourse, the orator was sometimes inter- rupted by bursts of applause from the audience, who could not repress the expression of their sympathetic feelings, when Mr. Webster addressed the revolutionary veterans, and Gen. Lafayette, and while they, uncovering their venerable heads, arose to receive the thanks which were offered them in the name of the people. A hymn sung in choir by the whole as- sembly, succeeded this speech, and terminated the second part of the ceremony. " At the signal given by a field piece, the procession form- ed anew, mounted the hill, and went to seat themselves at a banquet prepared on the summit. There, under an im- mense wooden covering, 4,000 persons took their places 4 86 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLESTOWN. without confusion. The tables were spread with so much art, that the voice of the president, and all those who offered toasts, or made speeches, were easily heard, not only by the company, but also by a great number of spectators, stationed without. The names of Warren, the orator of the day, and the guest of the nation, were proposed by turns during the repast. Before leaving the table, the General rose to return thanks to the members of the monument association, and expressed himself in these terms: •' I will now ask your attention, only to thank you in the name of my revolutionary companions in arms, as well as in my own name, gentlemen, for the testimonies of esteem and affection, I may say filial affection, with which we have been this day loaded. We offer you our best wishes for the pres- ervation of republican liberty and equality, self-government, and happy union between the States of the confederation ; objects for which we fought and bled, — for it is on them that the hopes of mankind now rest. Permit me to give you the following toast : * 3u"ker's Hill, and the Holy Resist- ance to oppression, which has freed the American hem- isphere ; — the anniversary toast at the jubilee of the next half century shall be : Europe Disenthralled ! ' This toast was received with transport ; and immediately after, the company returned to the city."* In the course of his brilliant oration, already alluded to, Mr. Webster, turning to the war-worn and scar-bearing sur- vivors of that day's battle, ranged in order before him, thus addressed them : " Venerable men ! You have come down to us, from a former generation. Heaven has generously lengthened out your lives, that you might behold this joyous day. You are now, where you stood, fifty years ago, this very hour, with your brothers, and your neighbors, shoulder to shoulder, in the strife for your country. Behold, how altered ! The same heavens are indeed over your heads : the same ocean rolls at your feet ; but all else, how changed. " You hear, now no roar of hostile cannon — you see no mixed volumes of smoke and flame, rising from burning Charlestown. The ground strewed with the dead and the dying ; the impetuous charge ; the steady and successful re- * Levasseur's Journal. FAMILY TOURIST. 87 CHARLESTOWN. pulse ; the loud call to repeated assaults ; the summoning of all that is manly to repeated resistance ; a thousand bosoms freely and fearlessly bared in an instant to whatever of terror there may be in war and death ; — all these you have wit- nessed, but you witness them no more. *' All is peace. The heights of yonder metropolis, its towers and roofs, which you then saw filled with wives and children and countrymen in distress and terror, and looking with unutterable emotions for the issue of the combat, have presented you to-day with a sight of its whole happy popu- lation come out to welcome and greet you with an universal jubilee. Yonder proud ships, by a felicity of position, ap- propriately lying at the foot of this mount, and seeming fondly to cling around it, are not means of annoyance to you, but your country's own means of distinction and de- fence. " All is- peace ; and God has granted you this sight af your country's happiness, ere you slumber in the grave for- ever. He has allowed you to behold and to partake the reward of your patriotic toils ; and he has allowed us, your sons and countrymen, to meet you here, and in the name of the present generation, in the name of your country, in the name of liberty, to thank you ! '' But, alas ! you are not all here ! Time and the sword have thinned your ranks. Prescott, Putnam, Stark, Brooks, Read, Pomeroy, Bridge ! our eyes seek for you in vain, amidst this broken band. You are gathered to your fathers, and live only in your country in her grateful remembrance, and your own bright example. But let us not too much grieve that you have met the common fate of men. You lived, at least, long enough to know that your work had been nobly and successfully accomplished. You lived to see your country's independence established, and to sheathe your swords from war. On the light of Liberty you saw arise the light of Peace, like * another morn, Risen on mid-noon ;' — and the sky, on which you closed your eyes, was cloudless ! ** But — ah I — Him ! the first great martyr in this great cause ! Him ! the premature victim of his own self-de- voting heart ! Him ! the head of our civil councils, and the 88 FAMILY TOURIST. CHARLESTOWN. destined leader of our military bands; whom nothing brought hither, but the unquenchable fire of his own spirit! Him! cut off by Providence, in the hour of overwhelming anxiety and thick gloom ; falling, ere he saw the star of his country rise; pouring out his generous biood, like water, before he knew whether it would fertilize a land of freedom or of bondage ! how shall I struggle with the emotions that stifle the utterance of thy name ! Our poor work may perish ; but thine shall endure ! Tliis monument may moulder away ; the solid ground it rests upon may sink down to a level with the sea ; but thy memory shall not fail ! Where- soever among men a heart shall be found, that beats to the transports of patriotism and liberty, its aspirations shall be to claim kindred with thy spirit ! " But the scene, amidst which we stand, does not permit us to confine our thoughts, or our sympathies, to those fear- less spirits, who hazarded or lost their lives, on this conse- crated spot. We have the happiness to rejoice here in the •presence of a most worthy representation of the survivors of the whde Revolutionary army. ** Veterans ! You are the remnant of many a well-fought field. You bring with you marks of honor from Trenton, and Monmouth, from Yorktown, Camden, Bennington, and Saratoga. Veterans of half a Century ! When in your youthful days, you put every thing at hazard in your coun- try's dause, good as that cause was, and sanguine as youth is, still your fondest hopes did not stretch onward to an hour like this ! At a period, to which you could not reasonably have expected to arrive; at a moment of national prosperity, such as you could never have foreseen ; you arc now met, here, to enjoy the fdlowship of old soldiers, and to receive the overflowings of an universal gratitude. " But your agitated countenances and your heaving breasts inform me, that even this is not an unmixed joy. I perceive that a tumult of contending feelings rushes upon you. The images of the dead, as well as the persons of the living, throng to your embraces. The scene overwhelms you, and I turn from it. May the Father of all mercies smile upon your declining years, and bless them ! And when you shall here have exchanged your embraces ; when you shall once more have pressed the hands, which have been so often extended to give succor in adversity, or grasped _ FAMILY TOURIST. 89 CHARLESTOWN. in the exultation of victory ; then look abroad into this lovely land, which your young valor, defended, and mark the happiness with which it is filled ; yea, look abroad into the whole earth, and see wliat a name you have contributed to give to your country, and wnat a praise you have added to freedom, and then rejoice in the sympathy and gratitude, which beam upon your last days from the improved condition of mankind."* To the foregoing account of the ceremonies observed on laying the corner-stone of this splendid obelisk, it may be added, that after long and vexatious delays, it was completed July 23d, 1842. It consists of 90 courses of hewn stone, 84 above the base and 6 below it. There are a number of win- dows in the structure, closed with iron shutters, besides nu- merous apertures. The ladies of Boston, by a fair and other donations, raised a large sum, which insured the completion of the monument. The entire cost of the structure was $119,800, of which the ladies raised at their fair $32,000. On the 17th of June, 1843, the anniversary of the battle, the completion of the monument was celebrated in a splendid manner, in the presence of the President of the United States, the heads of department, and an immense concourse of citi- zens, when an address was delivered on the occasion by Hon. Daniel Webster, late Secretary of State of the U. States. This monument is annually visited, as it should be, by thousands. Besides the associations which a view of it is calculated to kindle up in the soul, a view of the surrounding scenery from its top is among the most beautiful and sublime in the United States. Boston, its harbour and environs, with the more distant country, embracing mountain scenery, are spread out to the eye of the beholder in a prospect most en- chanting. Who that has stood on that height, and, looking down on the soil whence it rises, remembering that the blood of his sires was there freely shed to purchase liberty — the freedom of his country — does not almost wish to abide there ? At least, how refreshing to the patriot is the air there inhaled ! How delightful to his soul the prospect he then takes in! * Address at the laying of the Corner Stone of the Bunker Hill Monument. 9l> FAMILY TOURIST. LOWELL. Lowell is situated on the west side of the Merrirnac river, just above its confluence with the Concord river, and occupies the precise spot once called *' Wamesit," the famous capital or head-quarters of the Pawtucket tribe of Indians. The remains of the Indian ditch which once environed Wamesit, are still traceable, and are nearly coincident with the present boundaries of the city of Lowell. When first discovered by the whites, Wamesit contained a population of 3000 souls, but as early as 1G74 they had dwindled away before the tide of the approaching whites, to a mere handful. In 1725 they had wholly disappeared, and the place remained unnoticed and obscure, settled only by a sparse population of farmers. In 1792, an act of incorporation was obtained by Dudley A. Tyng and others for the purpose of constructing a canal around the Pawtucket Falls, in order to render more safe the descent of lumber-rafts. The canal was only a mile and a half long, with a descent of 32 feet by four locks; but being the first canal ever constructed in this country, is, as such, entitled to notice in our history. The first boat passed through the canal in 1797. In 1804 the Middlesex canal was completed, connecting the Merrirnac above the Falls, with the city of Boston ; and although these canals have subsequently become the source and fountain-head of the unexampled prosperity of Lowell, they were not originally designed to subserve manufacturing purposes, nor does the idea of applying this immense water- power to any other use than the transportation of merchan- dise, seems to have entered the mind of any one until some twenty-three years later. One humble cotton-mill, built of wood, at an expense of 2500 dollars, a saw and grist-mill, and a small powder-mill, were all that pertained to Lowell, as a manufacturing place, down to the year 1823. In 1822 the Merrimac Manufacturing Company were incor- porated, and commenced the erection of cotton mills, and in November, 1823, produced the first fabrics from their looms. The success of this company called the attention of capi- talists to the immense water privileges which could here be made available, and in 1825 the Hamilton Company was incor- porated, and commenced laying the foundation of their mills. The first stage-coach which ever run regularly to Lowell, FAMILY TOURIST. 91 commenced in 1822 ; and the first public worship, since the apostle Elliot preached there to the Indians, was in 1824. In 1825 the first church, a large stone edifice, was built by the Merrimac Company. The place was originally named by the whites East Chelmsford, and in 1820 contained but 200 inhabitants. In 1826, on the 1st of March, it was incorporated as a town, under its present name, with a population exceeding 2500. The first bank, " The Lowell Bank," was established 1828, with a capital of $100,000 ; and in the same year the Appleton Manufacturing Company and the Lowell Manufac- turing Company were established. In 1829 an Institution for Savings was chartered ; and in 1832 the Western or Suf- folk canal was constructed, at an expense of $70,000. The Suffolk, Tremont and Lawrence Manufacturing Companies were established in 1831, as also the Railroad Bank, with a capital of $800,000. The Middlesex Manufacturing Com- pany and a Bleaching Company went into operation about the same time ; and in 1835 another canal was constructed, the Boot Manufacturing Company established, and a Railroad opened to the city of Boston. Meantime, other buildings had been erected with a corres- ponding rapidity ; streets, blocks, and squares had sprung up, as if by magic ; churches, school-houses, and public edifices had been erected ; and an unparalleled increase of population and wealth had marked its course. The town contained, as stated, in 1820 but 200 inhabitants, and in 1826 about 2,500. In 1828 the population was 3,532; in 1832, 10,244 ; and in 1830 it was incorporated as a city, with a population of 17,633. The present population is over 30,000, one-third of which are operatives, viz : about 7,000 females and 3,000 males. There are 33 mills, (besides calico print-works, bleacheries, and divers other manufacturing and mechanical establish- ments,) from which are turned out weekly 1,459,100 yards of cloth — or 75,868,000 yards yearly. There are also manufactured annually 14,000,000 yards of calico. More than $1,500,000 are paid out annually for labor, a portion of which is invested by the operatives in the purchase of shares of the capital stock of the companies, thereby becoming themselves stockholders. There is probably no place in New England, or in the world, where the business of manufacturing is conducted with more regard to the great interests and rights of all concerned than at Lowell. MAINE. PORTLAND. This city is beautifully situated, on an elevated peninsula, in Casco Bay, 118 miles N. N. E. from Boston ; 542 from Washington ; and 258 S. of Quebec. The peninsula re- sembles the form of a saddle : the principal part of the houses being erected on the seat. The situation is hand- some : the harbor is a beautiful piece of water spreading on the south-east, and the cove, smaller, but scarcely less beau- tiful, on the north-west. This cove at the time of ebb be- comes a pond. A bridge, thrown over the outlet, connects Portland with the main land in this direction. The penin- sula is universally handsome. The site of the town is an easy, elegant arched slope. The principal streets run par- allel with the length of the peninsula, and are crossed by others nearly at right angles. Like those of most other towns in this country, they are destitute of that exact regu- larity, both in their position and direction, which would have rendered them entirely beautiful. The situation of Portland is probably as healthy as any in New England. The slope, on which it is built, furnishes every where a ready passage for all the water, and the hap- piest means of keeping the town perfectly clean. Nothing can stagnate here without pains-taking. The air cannot but be sweet. The wells furnish an ample supply of pure and fine water. Accordingly, the inhabitants enjoy as uninter- rupted health, as those of any place, of the same size, in the United States, The harbor is safe, capacious, and rarely frozen. It is sufficiently deep to admit ships of the line. The wharfs of no great length, reach to the channel. No American town is more entirely commercial ; and, of course, none is more sprightly. Lumber, fish, and ships, are the principal materi- FAMILY TOURIST. PORTLAND. als of their commerce.* Numerous islands are in the bay to the east, on two of which are forts, which defend the en- trance of the harbor ; Fort Preble on Bang's island, and Fort Scammel, a blockhouse, on House island. Fort Bur- rows stands under the observatory bluff, on the water's edge. Between 50,000 and 60,000 tons of shipping belong to this port, consisting of a large number of ships, brigs, schooners, sloops, and steamboats and other craft. Many of the private buildings of Portland are handsome, and some elegant. An appearance of neatness and good taste reigns throughout the place. The public buildings are in good style, and appropriate to the present state and pros- perity of the place. Among the finest public edifices are the Court House, and Custom House. The city contains sixteen churches. The people are distinguished for their love of order ; many of them are eminent for their piety. In their manners, they are pleasing, and quite hospitable in their feel- ings. " A traveller," observes a traveller, " cannot easily visit them without carrying away a very advantageous im- pression of their character." Education is well attended to, and there are numerous schools, some of which are of a high character. Portland was formerly called Falmouth. It was incor- porated as a town in 1786, and as a city in 1832. This place suffered considerably during the early Indian wars. In 1676, an attack was made on the inhabitants by a body of savages, who captured or destroyed thirty of their number, and com- pelled the remainder to flee for safety to a neighboring island.f In 1689, the savages renewed their attacks on this region ; but by the means of the enterprise of Colonel Church, who was sent to defend it, a large body of savages, aided by a party of French, was defeated. But the next spring, the In- dians appeared at Falmouth, and three forts in the town fell into their hands. One hundred of the inhabitants were made prisoners, and the town was destroyed. The slain remained unburied until the following year, when Colonel Church ap- peared, and consigned them to the grave. During the revolutionary war, Falmouth was the scene of * Dwight's Travels. t Hubbard. 94 FAMILY TOURIST. PORTLAND. an outrage, which fired the American people with indign.!- tion. Captain Mowat, the commander of a British sloop of war, had often come on shore at Portland, where he had always received marked attention from the inhabitants. But after the battles of Lexington and Breed's Hill, tlio regard of the Americans for the British had somewhat cooled ; and, on one occasion, when Mowat visited the town, he received some personal insult from several strangers, who happened to be in the place. This was regretted and reprobated by the principal inhabitants. Mowat resenting the insult, which consisted in a temporary arrest, immediately sailed for Boston, for the purpose of oIj- tairjing permi.ssion to destroy the place. Admiral Greaves consenting, Mowat, on the 18lh of November, 1775, ap- peared before the town, and by a messenger, informed the inhabitants of his design. A respectful remonstrance was sent to him, in which he was reminded of the former hospi- tality and politeness of the people towards him. But no other indulgence could be obtained, but a respite till the next morning. In this short interval, most of the inhabitants re- moved, and some of their effects were conveyed to a place of safety. In the morning, the British vessels opened their fire upon the town, and continued the work of devastation, till they had reduced all the public buildings (except the Congrega- tional church) and one hundred and thirty dwelling houses to ashes. One hundred and sixty families were thus driven to find an asylum from the winter, in a country thinly in- habited, and whose inhabitants were poorly able to furnish either subsistence, or even a shelter. The name of Mowat is inscribed on the pages of American history, and will de- scend down, while type, ink, and paper last, with the unen- viable reputation of a second Erostratus. Within a few years a railroad communication has been opened between Portland and Boston; and another, which will prove of vast importance, is in contemplation between Portland and Montreal. NEW HAMPSHIRE PORTSMOUTH. Portsmouth, although not incorporated as a city, is by far the most populous, and important town in New Hamp- shire. It is the only seaport in the State. It is built on a beautiful peninsula on the north side of Piscataqua river ; united with the main land by a narrow isthmus on the north- west, and by a bridge over a small inlet on the south. The surface of the peninsula is uneven and beautiful. As seen from the tower of the steeple, the opposite shore of Kittery, from which it is divided by the above river, the river itself, the harbor, the ocean, the points, the islands, the town, and the adjacent country, form an assemblage of beautiful objects not often surpassed. It lies about three miles from the ocean — 55 N. and E. from Boston ; 58 S. W. of Portland ; and 491 from Washington. The population exceeds 9,000, chiefly collected near the harbor on a hill adjoining. Like most other New England towns, the houses are chiefly of wood ; but it contains some elegant buildings. Being compactly built, it has suffered severely by several fires within a few years, the most recent and destructive of which took place in December, 1813, by which a large proportion of the buildings was destroyed. Their place, however, has been supplied, and the appearance * of the town improved. The harbor is one of the finest in the world, completely land-locked, never frozen, and accessible to the largest ships. Its tides are high and rapid. The channel, at low water, is 40 feet in depth. It is defended by Fort Constitution on Great Island ; Fort M'Clary opposite ; Fort Sullivan on Tre- pethen Island ; and Fort Washington on Pierce's Island. The two latter were garrisoned during the late war. Portsmouth contains seven churches, some of which may be said to be elegant ; a court house, gaol, six banks, mar- 96 FAMILY TOURIST. PORTSMOUTH. kets, an academy, athenseum, 280 stores, &.c. Two bridges were built to connect with Kittery, Maine, in 1822, across the Piscataqua, the channel of which is broad, and the cur- rent rapid at particular times of the tide. The long bridge is 1,750 feet in length, extended across water varying from 43 to 45 feet in depth at low tide, a distance of 900 feet, and crosses an island in the river. A water conipany was formed and commenced operations in 1799, which sup- plies all the streets with good water, brought a distance of three miles. On Great Island is a lighthouse. On Conti- nental Island, which is owned by the United States, is a navy yard belonging to government ; and on Badger's Island was constructed the first ship-of-the-line in America. It was built during the Revolution, and named the North America. Portsmouth was settled in 1G23, by a company of which Sir Ferdinando Gorges was an associate, and was incorpo- rated by Massachusetts in 1653, while New Hampshire was a colony. It is remarkable that during the long and bloody wars, by which most other parts of this State suffered, this place was entirely exempted. From the time that New Hampshire became a separate government, in 1680, to the American Revolution, the Legislature held its sessions in this town; but since that period they have met at Concord, Exeter, &.C. Some years since, there died in this place a hermit, at the advanced age of 82 years. He lived on a farm, sufficient in extent and fertility to have supported a large family ; but he had imbibed the idea, that he should live to spend the whole, exercising the greatest economy. For more than twenty years he dwelt entirely alone, in a hut, which scarcely any one would have deemed decent for a barn. He made his own garments, which were in a fashion peculiar to himself He tilled his land, milked his cows, and made his butter and cheese ; but subsisted principally on potatoes and milk. Owing no doubt to his abstemious and temperate mode of liv- ing, he exhibited at the age of eighty-two, a face freer from wrinkles than is generally seen in those of fifty. His mother lived to be more than an hundred years of age. "When she was one hundred and two, some people visited her on a certain day ; and while they were with her, the bell was heard to toll for a funeral. The old lady burst into tears, and said, *' When will the bell toll for me 7 It seems FAMILY TOURIST. 97 PORTSMODTH, that the bell will never toll for me ; I am afraid that I shall never die ! " Though repeatedly invited to repair to some of the neigh- bors, to spend the winter, where he might be comfortable, this hermit absolutely declined ; alleging that he had every thing he wanted. He would not suffer any one to spend a night in his house, or to take care of him in his last illness. For several weeks before his death, he was in a feeble state of health; but with those comfortable accommodations, which were abundantly in his power, he might have perhaps lived to the age of his mother. During an extreme cold night, in which the thermometer fell to four degrees below cipher, he became so chilled, that he was unable to rise in the morning, and soon expired. He had no shirt to his back, according to his usual custom, and his only covering for the night, besides an old tattered cloth garb, was a small ragged blanket ; and his bed was a parcel of straw. VERMONT. VERGENNES. This is the only incorporated city in the Slate of Vermont. The act of incorporation passed the legislature in 1788. Its settlement commenced in 1766, by emigrants from Mas- sachusetts and Connecticut. Its progress in trade and pop- ulation has probably not corresponded to the expectations of its inhabitants, at the time it was vested with city privi- leges. It lies on the Otter Creek, at the head of navigation, and embraces an area of 400 rods by 480. The creek here falls thirty feet, and affords many good mill sites, some of which are occupied. The largest vessels which navigate Lake Champlain are able to come within seven miles of Ver- gennes. The shores on either side are bold and often pic- turesque ; but the channel is very crooked. The surround- ing country is quite fertile, and considerable produce finds its way to market through this port. The place is advanta- geously situated for ship building. The population does not much exceed one thousand. In this port, Commodore Mc- Donough's flotilla, which so signally sustained the honor of America on Lake Champlain, in an engagement with a su- perior British force, was fitted out in 1814. But although Vermont cannot boast of cities of size, pop- ulation, and wealth, like many of her sister States, she has several finely situated, well built and thriving towns, of which perhaps the most distinguished is BURLINGTON. Burlington stands on a most beautiful harbor, on the east side of Lake Champlain, near the mouth of Onion river. It is on elevated ground, commanding a noble view of the lake and adjacent country. It carries on a considerable trade FAMILY TOURIST. 99 BURLINGTON. Almost all the vessels which navigate the lake are owned here. Many of the private houses are in beautiful taste, with large gardens. Here are the public buildings of the county, an academy, banks, &c. The population is about four thousand. The Vermont University is located at Burlington. It was incorporated ' in 1791, but did not go into operation till 1800 ; it has been liberally patronized by the State. It has libraries of more than 9,000 volumes, and a philosophical apparatus that is tolerably complete. The funds consist principally of lands, amounting to about 30,000 acres, and yielding, at present, an income of about 2,500 dollars. On the 27th of May, 1824, a large college edifice, erected in 1801, was unfortunately destroyed by fire ; but the library and part of the philosophical apparatus were saved. Since that time, three brick edifices have been erected, two of them containing rooms for students ; the other containing a chapel and other public rooms. " Splendor of landscape," remarks Dr. Dwight, " is the peculiar boast of Burlington. Lake Champlain, here six- teen miles wide, extends fifty miles northward, and forty southward, before it reaches Crown Point, and throughout a great part of this magnificent expansion is visible at Bur- lington. In its bosom are encircled many beautiful islands ; three of them, North and South Hero, and La Motte, suf- ficiently large to contain, the first and last, one township each, the other, two ; forming, together with the township of Alburgh, on the point between the bay of Misciscoui and the river St. John, the county of Grand Isle. A numerous train of these islands are here in full view. In the interior, among the other interesting objects, the range of the Green Mountains, with its train of lofty summits, commences in the south with the utmost stretch of the eye ; and limiting, on the east, one third of the horizon, declines far northward, until it becomes apparently blended with the surface. On the west, beyond the immense field of glass, formed by the waters of the lake, extends the opposite shore from its first appearance at the south, until it vanishes from the eye in the north-west, at the distance of forty miles. Twelve or fifteen miles from this shore ascends the first range of western mountains ; about fifteen or twenty miles further, the second 100 FAMILY TOURIST. BURLINGTON. range; and, at about the same distance, the third. The two former commence a few miles south of the head of Lake George; one on the eastern, and the other on the western side of this water. Where the third commences, I am ig- norant. The termination of ail these ranges is not far from the latitude of Plattsburg. The prospect of these mountains is superlatively noble. The rise of the first range from the lake, the ascent of the second far above it, and the still loftier elevation of the third, diffuse a magnificence over the whole, which mocks description. Three of the summits, hitherto without a name, are peculiarly distinguished for their sublimity. Among tho.se of the Green Mountains there are two, in the fullest view from this spot, superior even lo these. One of them, named the Camel's Rump, the Camel's Back, and the Camel ; the other the Mountain of Mansfield. The latter of these, was by the following expedient proved, not long since, to be higher than the former. A hunter, who had ascended to its highest point, put into his piece a small ball ; and pointing it to the apex of the Camel, the ball rolled out. Both of them are, however, very lofty ; higher, as I believe, than Killington Peak, notwithstanding the deference with which I regard the estimates of Doctor Williams. The peculiar form of the Camel's Back invests this mountain with a sublimity entirely superior to any other in the State." • •Dwight'B Travels. ■ :>il""l III iilillii ill ii il teBJBiiaBi i^ CONNECTICUT HARTFORD. The original English settlers of Hartford were a distin- guished band of pilgrims, principally from the county of Essex, in England. In 1632, a considerable portion of them emigrated to America, and first settled at Mount WoUaston, now duincy, near Boston. But during the same year, they were ordered by the court to Newtown, since called Cam- bridge. In the course of the following year, they were join- ed by the Rev. Thomas Hooker, their former minister, in England, who, to escape '* fines and imprisonment," had been obliged to take refuge in Holland for three years. On landing at Boston, Mr. Hooker proceeded to Newtown, where, finding himself in the midst of a joyful and affection- ate people, he was filled with joy himself. He embraced them with open arms, saying, in the language of the apostle, " Now I live, if ye stand fast in the Lord." With Mr. Hooker came over the famous Mr. John Cotton, Mr. John Haynes, afterwards governor of Connecticut, Mr. Goff, and two hundred passengers of importance to the colony. On the lith of October of this year, the eighth Church was gathered on the American soil, and the pastor, Mr. Hooker, and the teacher, Mr. Stone, were ordained with appropriate services. Accessions to the little colony at Newtown continuing to be made, as also to those who had settled at Dorchester and Watertown, it was deemed essential to the comfort of the three settlements to remove to some more commodious place. In the summer of 1634, six men were despatched from *' the towns in the Bay," to examine the lands on the ''Quonchta- cuty' as the river was called by the Indians, or the "fresh river" as denominated by the English. The report of these '* spies," of the commodiousness of the place, and the fruit- fulness of the soil, was so favorable, that a resolution was 104 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. adopted by the people of the above towns, " forthwith to begin several plantations there." v On making application to the court for liberty to remove, an unexpected opposition arose, because they had it in view to plant a colony in Connecticut, independent of that of Massachusetts. The debate in the court was long and spirit- ed ; and the application, for that session, rejected. This caused considerable excitement, not only in the general court, but in the colony, to allay which, Mr. Cotton was re- quested to preach on the subject. The ne.xt May, 1635, the people of Newtown renewed their application to the court, for liberty to remove ; which, after some delay,, was granted, upon consideration that they should continue under the jurisdiction of Massachusetts. Matters being thus arranged, " on the 15th of October, about sixty men, women, and children, with their horses, cattle, and swine, commenced their journey from Massachu- setts, through the wilderness, to the Connecticut river. After a tedious and difficult journey, through swamps and rivers, over mountains and rough grounds, which were passed with great difficulty and fatigue, they arrived safely at the places of their respective destination. They were so long on their journey, and so much time aud pains were spent in passing the river, and in getting over their cattle, that after all their exertions, winter came upon them before they were prepared. This was an occasion of great distress and damage to the plantations. *' The winter set in this year much sooner than usual, and the weather was stormy and severe. By the 15th of Novem- ber, Connecticut river was frozen over, and the snow was so deep, and the season so tempestuous, that a considerable number of the cattle, which had been driven on from Massa- chusetts, could not be brought across the river. The people had so little time to prepare their huts and houses, and to erect sheds and shelters for their cattle, that the sufferings of man and beast were extreme. Indeed, the hardships and distresses of the first planters of Connecticut scarcely admit of description. To carry much provision, or much furni- ture, through a pathless wilderness, was impracticable. Their principal provisions and household furniture were, therefore, put on board several small vessels, which, by reason of delays and the tempestuousness of the season, were either cast away, or did not arrive. Several vessels were wrecked /• . FAMILY TOURIST. i05 HARTFORD. on the coast of New England, by the violence of the storms. Two shallops, laden with goods, from Boston to Connecticut, in October, were cast away on Brown's island, near the Gurnet's nose ; and the men with every thing on board, were lost. A vessel with six of the Connecticut people on board, which sailed from the river for Boston, early in November, was, about the middle of the month, cast away in Manamet Bay. The men got on shore, and after wandering ten days in deep snow and a severe season, without meeting any hu- man being, arrived, nearly spent with cold and fatigue, at New Plymouth. *' By the last of November, or beginning of December, provisions generally failed in the settlements on the river, and fa!nine and death looked the inhabitants sternly in the face. Some of them, driven by hunger, attempted their way, in this severe season, through the wilderness, from Connec- ticut to Massachusetts. Of thirteen in one company, who made this attempt, one, in passing the rivers, fell through the ice, and was drowned. The other twelve were ten days on their journey, and would all have perished, had it not been for the assistance of the Indians. '* Indeed such was the distress in general, that by the 3d and 4th of December, a considerable part of the new settlers were obliged to abandon their habitations. Seventy persons, men, women, and children, were necessitated, in the extrem- ity of winter, to go down to the mouth of the river, to meet their provisions, as the only expedient to preserve their lives. Not meeting with the vessels which they expected, they all went on board the Rebecca, a vessel of about sixty tons. This, two days before, was frozen in, twenty miles up the river ; but by the falling of a small rain and the influence of the tide, the ice became so broken and was so far removed, that she was enabled to get out. She ran, however, upon the bar, and the people were forced to unlade her to get her off. She was reladed, and in five days reached Boston. Had it not been for these providential circumstances, the people must have perished with famine. " The people who kept their stations on the river suffered in an extreme degree. After all the help they were able to obtain, by hunting, and from the Indians, they were obliged to subsist on acorns, malt and grains. " Numbers of the cattle, which could not be got over the river before winter, lived through without any thing but what 106 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. they found in the woOds .ind meadows. They wintered as well or better than those which were brought over, and for which all the provision was made, and pains taken, of which the owners were capable. However, a great number of cattle perished. The Dorchester, or Windsor people, lost in this single article about two hundred pounds sterling. Their other losses were very considerable. ** It is difficult to describe, or even to conceive, the ap- prehensions and distresses of a people, in the circumstances of our venerable ancestors, during this doleful winter. All the horrors of a dreary wilderness spread themselves around them. They were compassed with numerous, fierce, and cruel tribes of wild and savage men, who could have swal- lowed up parents and children, at pleasure, in their feeble and distressed condition. They had neither bread for them- selves nor children, neither habitations nor clothing con- venient for them. Whatever emergency might happen, they were cut off, both by land and water, from any succor or re- treat. What self denial, firmness, and magnanimity are necessary for such enterprises ! How distressful, in the be- ginning, was the condition of those now fair and opulent towns on Connecticut river ! " For a few years after the settlements on the river com- menced, they bore the same name with the towns in Massa- chusetts, whence the first settlers came. " The Connecticut planters, at first settled under the gen- eral government of Massachusetts, but they held courts of their own, which consisted of two principal men from each town ; and, on great and extraordinary occasions, these were joined with committees, as they were called, consisting of three men from each town. These courts had power to transact all the common affairs of the colony, and with their committees, had the power of making war and peace, and treaties of alliance and friendship with the natives within the colony. *' The first court in Connecticut was holden at Newtown, April 26th, 1G3G. It con.sisted of Roger Ludlow, Esquire, Mr. John Steel, Mr. William Swain, Mr. William Phelps, Mr. William Westwood, and Mr. Andrew Ward. Mr. Lud- low had been one of the magistrates of Massachusetts in 1630, and in 1631 had been chosen lieutenant governor of that colony. At this court it was ordered that the inhabit- ants should not sell guns nor ammunition to the Indians. FAMILY TOURIST. 107 HARTFORD. Various other affairs were also transacted relative to the good order, settlement, and defence of these infant towns. " Several of the principal gentlemen interested in the set- tlement of Connecticut, Mr. John Haynes, who at this time was governor of Massachusetts, Mr, Henry Wolcott, Mr. Wells, the ministers of the churches, and others, had not yet removed into the colony. As soon as the spring ad- vanced, and the travelling would admit, the hardy men be- gan to return from Massachusetts to their habitations on the river. No sooner were buds, leaves, and grass so grown, that cattle could live in the woods, and obstructions removed from the river, so that vessels could go up with provisions and furniture, than the people began to return, in large companies, to Connecticut. Many, who had not removed the last year, prepared, with all convenient despatch, for a jour- ney to the new settlements upon the river. " About the beginning of June, Mr. Hooker, Mr. Stone, and about one hundred men, women, and children, took their departure from Cambridge, and travelled more than a hun- dred miles, through a hideous and trackless wilderness, to Hartford. They had no guide but their compass ; and made their way over mountains, through swamps, thickets, and rivers, which were not passable but with great difficulty. They had no cover but the heavens, nor any lodgings but those which simple nature afforded them. They drove with them a hundred and sixty head of cattle, and by the way, subsisted on the milk of their cows. Mrs. Hooker was borne through the wilderness upon a litter. The people generally carried their packs, arms, and some utensils. They were nearly a fortnight on their journey. ** This adventure was the more remarkable, as many of this company were persons of figure, who had lived, in Eng- land, in honor, affluence, and delicacy, and were strangers to fatigue and danger."* Such is a brief account of the original settlement of the English, at Hartford, Windsor, and Wethersfield. Weth- ersfield, however, is the oldest town in the State, a few huts having been erected there in 1634, in which a small number of individuals contrived to winter. The Indian name of Hartford was Suckiaug. The Sa- chem of the place was Sunckquasson, who gave a deed, about the year 1636, to Samuel Stone and William Goodwin, who * Trumbull's History of Connecticut. *T 108 FAMILY TOURIST. IIAnXFORD. appear to have acted in behalf of the first settlers. In 1670, the soil was again purchased of the Indians, the evidence of the first purchase being considered imperfect. Hartford retained the natne of Newtown till February, 1G37, when, by order of the court, it was changed to the former name, in lionor of Mr. Stonc^ who was born at Hartford in England. *' For a time, the aflfairs of^he people of the three settle- ments, Hartford, Windsor, and Wethersficld, wore a most gloomy aspect. They had sustained great losses in cattle and goods in the preceding years, and even this year they were unfortunate with respect to their cattle. They had no hay, but what they cut from the spontaneous productions of an uncultivated country. To make good English meadow was a work of time. The wild, coarse grass, which the people cut, was often mowed too late, and but poorly made. They did not always cut a sufficient quantity of this poor hay. They had no corn or provender with which they could feed them ; and amidst the multiplicity of affairs, which, at their first settlement, demanded their attention, they could not provide such shelters for them as were necessary, during the long and severe winters of this northern climate. From an union of these circumstances, some of their cattle were lost, and those which lived through winter were uncommonly poor, and many of the cows lost their young. Notwith- standing all the exertions the people had made the preceding summer, they had not been able, in the multiplicity of their afl'airs, and under the inconveniences, to raise a sufficiency of provision. Their provisions were not only very coarse, but very dear and scanty. The people were not only inex- perienced in the husbandry of the country, but they had but few oxen or ploughs. They performed almost the whole cul- ture of the earth with their hoes. This rendered it both exceedingly slow and laborious. " The inhabitants of Hartford, as also those of the infant settlements in their vicinity, were regarded with jealousy by the Indians in their immediate neighborhood, and even at a distance. " They waylaid the white man in his path through the woods. They seized upon him while at work in the field. They cut him down with their tomahawks at the door of his own house. The question was to be settled, whether our forefathers should abandon the country, or meet and con- quer this terrible foe. They determined on the latter. On FAMILY TOURIST. 109 HARTFORD. the first of May, just eighteen months after the settlement was begun, and when there were only eight hundred souls in the colony, the Court met, and resolved upon an offensive war against the Pequots, the powerful tribe inhabiting the country around New Loudon and Stonington, and which were evident- ly plotting the destruction of the colony. On the 10th, ninety men were drafted from the three settlements, and ready for the expedition. Embarked on board three little floats that were to convey them down the river, they received the exhor- tation and blessing of their venerated pastor, Mr. Hooker. ' Your cause,' said he, ' is the cause of heaven ; the enemy have blasphemed your God, and slain his servants; you are only the ministers of his justice. March, then, with Chris- tian courage in the strength of the Lord ; march with faith in his divine promises ; and soon your swords shall find your enemies, soon they shall fall like leaves of the forest under your feet.' So it proved. " Mr. Stone went as Chaplain. On the fifteenth, they were at the mouth of the river, whence they sent back twen- ty of their number to guard their own defenceless homes. On the morning of the 28th, the little army, consisting of seventy-seven Englishmen, and a party of Narragansett and Mohegan Indians was before the fort of the Pequots at Mystic. The day was near dawning. A dog bays the ahrm. It is too late. The Englishmen's musketry and broadswords are upon them, and their last hour has come. The brave Captain Mason, with a party of his equally brave men, rushes in at the east end of the fort, and carries the battle into the huts of the savages, just roused from sleep. The conflict is terrible, and, for a moment, the victory hangs in suspense ; till Mason, seizing a firebrand, cries, * we must burn them,' and throws it among the mats of their cabins. Instantly they are in flames. The assailants retire and surround the fort, and the fire finishes the work. In one short hour the battle is over; six hundred Indians are slain, and the power of the most formidable foe of the English is annihilated. Our men left the scene of action just as the sun had risen ; embarked on board their vessels, which, just at that crisis, entered the Pequot harbor to receive them ; and, in three days, were at their homes, with only two of their number killed, and about twenty wourtded."* * Dr. Havpes's Centennial Address. 110 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. The early records of Hartford contain many laws and reg- ulations passed in their general town meeting, which in the wisdom of the fathers were deemed important for the welfare of their little community ; but which to us, at the present •day, would appear almost puerile, especially, if due allow- ance is not made for their primitive manners and peculiar circumstances. A few extracts from these records follow : 16J35. — It is ordered, that there shall be a guard of . . . men, to attend with their arms fixed, and two shot of powder and shot, at least .... every public meeting for religious use, with two sergeants to oversee the same, and to keep <)ut one of them sentinel and the said guard to be freed from boarding, and to have seals provided near the meeting bouse door, and the sergeants repair to the magistrates for a warrant for the due execution thereof It is ordered, that every inhabitant which hath not free- dom from the whole to be absent, shall make his personal appearance at every general meeting of the whole town, having sufficient warning; aud whosoever fails to appear at the time and place appointed, shall pay sixpence for every such default ; but if he shall have lawful excuse, it shall be repaid him again ; or whosoever departs away from the meet- ing before it be ended, without liberty from the whole, shall pay the likewise. It is ordered, that whosoever borrows the town chain, shall pay two pence a day, for every day they keep the same, and pay for mending, if it be broken in their use. It is ordered, that there shall be a set meeting of all the townsmen together the first Thursday of every month, by nine o'clock in the forenoon, so that if any inhabitant have any business with them, he may repair unto them ; and whosoever of them do not meet at the time and place set, to forfeit two shillings and sixpence for every default. The 17th September, 1640— /< is ordered, that Woodward shall spend his time about killing of wolves, and for his encouragement he shall have four shillings and six- pence for his board, in case he kill not a wolf, or a deer in the week ; but if he kill a wolf or a deer, he is to pay for his board himself; and if he kill .... to have it for two pence a pound. This order is made for a month before he begins. It is further ordered, that if any person hath lost any thing that he desireth should be cried in a public meet- t^. FAMILY TOURIST. H] HARTFORD. ing, he shall pay for crying of it two pence to Thomas Woodford, to be paid before it be cried ; and the crier shall have a book of the things that he crieth. At a general Town Meeting in April, 1643 — -It was or- dered, That Mr. Andrews should teach the children in the school one year next ensuing, from the 25th of March, 1643, and that he shall have for his pains ,£16 ; and therefore the townsmen shall go and inquire who will engage themselves to send their children ; and all that do so shall pay for one quarter at the least, and for more if they do send them, after the proportion of twenty shillings the year; and if they go any weeks more than an even quarter,- they shall pay six- pence a week ; and if any would send their children, and are not able to pay for their teaching, they shall give notice of it to the townsmen, and they shall pay it at the town's charge ; and Mr. Andrews shall keep the account between the children's schooling and himself, and send notice of the times of payment and demand it ; and if his wages doth not come in so, then the townsmen must collect and pay it ; or if the en- gagements come not to sixteen pounds, then they shall pay what is wanting, at the town's charges. At a general Town Meeting, October 30th, 1643 — It was ordered, That if any boy shall be taken playing, or misbe- having himself, in the time of public services, whether in the meeting house or about the walls by two witnesses, for the first time shall be examined and punished at the pres- ent, publicly, before the assembly depart ; and if any shall be the second time taken faulty, on witness, shall be account- ed Further, it is ordered, if the parents or master shall desire to correct his boy, he shall have liberty the first time to do the same. It was further ordered, in the same general meeting that there should be a bell rung by the watch every morning, an hour before daybreak, and that they are appointed by the constables for that purpose ; shall begin at the bridge, and so ring the bell all the way forth and back from Master Moody's (Wyllys Hill) to John Pratt's and that they shall be in every house, one up, and .... some lights within one quarter of an hour after the end of the bell ringing .... if they can .... the bell is rung before the time appointed, then to be up with lights as before mentioned, half an hour before daybreak, and for defajilt herein is to forfeit oneshil- ^f 112 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. ling and sixpence, to be to him that finds him faulty, and sixpence to the town.* , Hartford was not incorporated as a city, till 1784, nearly a century and a half from its settlement. It lies upon the bank of Connecticut river, 50 miles from its mouth. It is *110 N. E. from New York, and 100 W. S. W. from Boston. Its lat. is 41° 45' N., and long. 4° 15' E. from Washington. The limits of the city extend somewhat more than a mile upon the river, and about three fourths of a mile in breadth. The position of the city is quite pleasant. The prospect from the State House, or any other considerable elevation, is delightful, especially in the latter part of the spring months, when the uncommonly fertile country around has put on its appropriate attire. Few scenes are more enchanting — the river, which at this season is considerably swollen, coming down from the north, and sweeping rapidly by the city — while the proud steamboat is seen laboring up against the current, or just swinging off from the dock, turns with the descending tide, and dashes like the war horse down the im- petuous flood. The city is rather irregularly laid out, and is divided at the south part by Mill, or Little river. Until within a few yeac5 the southern portion of the city has been neglected ; but several fine mansion houses have recently been erected in this quarter, which now promises to rival, if not excel, the other portions of the city. From the nature of the soil, the streets must always, in the spring season of the year, be liable to mud ; but they are annually improving. The first efficient effort to improve Main street, was made in 1790, or 1791, " when the town voted to cover it with stone, and an- nually appropriated a tax of four pence on the pound for that purpose for several years." A vast expense has been incurred to improve the streets, especially Main street, greatly to the credit of the authorities of the city. . The city is well built, and contains many elegant public and private edifices. The State House, in which are the public offices of the State, is surmounted with a cupola, and is a handsome and spacious building. It is *' fifty feet in width, fifty in height, and one hundred and thirty in length. * Historical Collections. FAMILY TOURIST. 1)3 HARTFORD. The first story is twenty feet high, of dark brown freestone, with circular breaks over each window. The second story is twenty, and the third ten feet high; and the division between them is marked by a band of freestone. From each front, finished with iron gates, projects an open arcade, six- teen feet wide and forty long. The one on the west sup- ports a second and third story, enclosed and finished, like the rest of the building. On the eastern one stands a Doric por- tico, thirty feet high, often columns, built of brick, and stuc- coed white. On the first floor of the south wing are four rooms, occupied as offices by the Treasurer and Comptrol- ler. The north contains the court room, of forty feet diam- eter. Within it is a row of Doric fluted columns, ten feet from the wall, supporting the floor of the Representatives' room, which is as large as the one below, and thirty feet high, including the second and third stories. Ionic pilasters are between each window, whose entablature and balustrade reach to the bottom of the attic windows, and on the south side of the room form the front of a gallery supported by fluted columns. The council chamber occupies the south wing on the same floor ; is of the same size, as the one last described; and diff*ers from it only in being without a gal- lery, and having in the place of pilasters Corinthian columns, whose capitals are without their appropriate leaves. A double flight of stairs from the west end of the area below, communicates to the hall, which is the entrance to the two large rooms. The hall is forty feet by twenty-five, and twen- ty high. At its east end are windows, opening from the floor to the portico ; and at the west are doors, communicating with the Secretary's office, and with the spiral stair case, which leads to the gallery, and to committee rooms in the third story, over the Hall and the Secretary's office."* With- in a few years, the appearance of this edifice has been great- ly improved. The City Hall, built for city purposes, is also spacious and elegant. It has two fronts, with porticos, supported each by six columns. The eflfect of this building, however, is in a great measure lost, from its confined position ; on a somewhat higher elevation, and with open grounds around it, it would produce great effect, and be much more ornamental to the city. * Dwight's Travels. 114 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. " The city has fourteen places of public worship : four for Conjjregationalists, two Episcopal, two Baptist, one Methodist, one Unitarian, one Universalist, one Roman Catholic, and two African ; several of these are very handsome, and the Epis- copal, a Gothic edifice, is much admired for its elegance. There are five banks, and a bank for savings ; three fire and marine insurance offices, an arsenal, museum, three mar- kets," &,c. In the immediate vicinity, are located the American Asy- lum for the Deaf and Dumb, the Retreat for the Insane, and Trinity College. The Asylum was founded by an association of gentlemen in Hartford, in 1815. " Their attention was called to this important charity, by a case of deafness in the family of one of their number. An interesting child of the late Dr. Cogs- well, who had lost her hearing at the age of two years, and her speech soon after, was, under Providence, the cause of its establishment. Her father, ever ready to syiif[)athize with the afflicted, and prompt to relieve human suflfering, embraced in his plans for the education of his own daughter, all who might be similarly unfortunate. The co-operation of the be- nevolent was easily secured, and measures were taken to ob- tain from Europe a knowledge of the difficult art, unknown in this country, of teaching written language through the medium of signs, to the deaf and dumb. For this purpose, the Rev. Thomas H. Gallaudet visited England and Scotland, and, applied at the institutions in those countries for instruc- lliori "ijBfrtheir system, but meeting with unexpected difficulties, he repaired to France, and obtained at the Royal Institution at Paris, those qualifications for an instructor of the deaf and dumb, which a selfish and mistaken policy had refused him in Great Britain. Accompanied by Mr. Samuel Clerc, him- self deaf and dumb, and for several years a successful teach- er under the Abbe Sicard, Mr. Gallaudet returned to this country in August, 1816. The Asylum had, in May preceding, been incorporated b>' the State Legislature. Some months were spent by Messrs. Gallaudet and Clerc, in ob- taining funds for the benefit of the Institution, and in the spring of 1817, the Asylum was opened for the reception of those for whom it was designed, and the course of in- struction commenced with seven pupils. •' In 1819, Congress granted the Institution a township •# ^ FAMILY TOURIST. in HARTFORD. of land in Alabama, the proceeds of which have been in- vested as a permanent fund. The principal building was erected in 1820, and the pupils removed to it in the spring of the following year. It is one hundred and thirty feet long, fifty feet wide, and, including the basement, four stories high. Other buildings have been subsequently erected, as the in- creasing number of pupils made it necessary; the principal of which is a dining hall and workshops for the male pupils. Attached to the Institution are eight or ten acres of land, which afford ample room for exercise and the cultivation of vegetables and fruits' for the pupils. *' VVadsworth Atheneum," named after Daniel Wadsworth, Esq., who gave the spot on which it stands, besides a large sum towards its erection, is an ornament to the city. It oc- cupies a commanding situation on Main street. The material used in its construction is light grey granite. The style of architecture is Gothic, of the castellated character. It is divided into three equal compartments, one of which is occu- pied as a library of the "Young Men's Institute," compre- hending at present about 10,000 volumes. Another room, appropriated to the Fine Arts, contains paintings in history, landscape, and portrait, with a department for sculpture. A third compartment accommodates the archives of the Connec- ticut Historical Society, which comprises 5,000 volumes, be- sides multitudes of pamphlets and manuscripts. " The Retreat for the Insane commenced its operations on the 15th of April, 1824. - The edifice is situated on a commanding eminence, at the distance of a mile and a quar- ter, in a south-westerly direction, from the State House, in Hartford. The elevation overlooks an ample range of fer- tile country, presenting on every side a most interesting land- scape, adorned with every beauty of rural scenery, that can be found in rich and cultivated fields, and meadows of un- rivalled verdure ; in extensive groves and picturesque groups of forest, fruit and ornamental trees ; and above all, in the charming diversity of level, sloping and undulating surfaces terminating by distant hills, and more distant mountains. "The city of Hartford is conspicuously seen on the left, and in different directions, five flourishing villages, rendered nearly continuous by numerous intervening farm houses. On the east, the prospect is enlivened by the passing and re- passing of carriacies and travellers, on the two principal 118 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. thoroughfares of the country, that extend along the front of the building, one at the distance of fifty or sixty rods, the other within three-fourths of a mile. Still farther eastward, but within a mile and a half, the prospect is frequently en- livened by the splendid show of passing steamboats, and the white sails of various water craft, plying up and down the Connecticut river, which is distinctly seen in many long windings. '* The edifice for the accommodation of the patients, and those who have the care of them, is constructed of unhewn freestone, covered with a smooth white water proof cement. Its style of architecture is perfectly plain and simple, and in- terests only by its symmetrical beauty, and perhaps by the idea it impresses of durability and strength, derived from the massy solidity of its materials — yet notwithsUinding these, its general aspect is remarkably airy and cheerful, from the am- plitude of its lights, and the brilliant whiteness of its exterior. The whole building is divided into commodious and spacious apartments, adapted to various descriptions of cases, accor- ding to their sex, nature and disease, habits of life and the wishes of their friends. The male and female apartments are entirely separated, and either sex is completely secluded from the view of the other. Rooms are provided in both male and female apartments, for the accommodation of the sick, where they are removed from any annoyance, and can continually receive the kind attentions of their immediate re- lations and friends. Attached to the buildings, are about seventeen acres of excellent land, the principal part of which is laid out in walks, ornamental grounds, and extensive gar- dens. With each wing and block of the building, is con- nected a court yard encompassed by high fences, and handsomely laid out, designed to afford the benefit of exer- cise, pastime, and fresh air to those who cannot safely be al- lowed to range abroad. *' Connected with the Institution, there are horses and carriages, which are appropriated exclusively to the benefit of the patients, and which aflford them much pleasant exer- cise and amusement. The male patients frequently employ themselves in the garden, and amuse themselves at the back- gammon board, draughts, and the like. The female pa- tients employ themselves in sewing, knitting, drawing, paint- ing, playing on the piano, and other amusements. The va- rious exercises and amusements are adapted to the age, sex, FAMILY TOURIST. l^p HARTFORD. and former habits of the patients ; and in all cases the two sexes are kept entirely separate. There is a library in the Retreat, composed of light and agreeable works, and several periodicals and newspapers are constantly taken, for the perusal of which the inmates manifest much fondness. [On the Sabbath, those that are in a proper condition, attend re- ligious service, conducted by the Rev. Mr. Gallaudet, at pres- ent, 1848, chaplain to the Institution.] Every thing con- nected with the Institution is designed to make it a pleasant and agreeable residence for all its ipmates.'** Trinity College was founded in 1826. It has three edi- fices of freestone ; two 148 feet long by 43 wide, and four stories high, containing 48 rooms ; the other 87 feet by 55, and three stories high, containing the chapel, library, miner- alogical cabinet, philosophical chamber, laboratory and re- citation rooms. There are 5,000 volumes in the college library, and 2,500 in the libraries of the diiferent societies. A complete philosophical apparatus, cabinet of minerals, and botanical garden and green house, belong to the institu- tion. The faculty consists of a president, six professors, and two tutors. Students about 60. Commencement first Thursday in August. t There are two fine bridges in the city — one across the Mill or Little river connecting the northern and southern por- tions of the city. This is built of freestone, and is 100 feet wide, supported by a single arch, seven feet in thickness at the base, and three feet three' inches at the centre ; the chord or span of which is 104 feet. The elevation from the bed of the river to the top of the arch is 30 feet. Another bridge across the Connecticut river, 1,000 feet long, and which cost over $100,000, unites the city with East Hartford. Hartford is advantageously situated for business. An ex- tensive and wealthy district surrounds it. Steamboats, in the open season, daily communicate between it and New York, and smaller steamboats, some for passengers and others for towing flat boats, ascend the river — the former to Springfield, and the latter as far as Wells's river, 220 miles above the city. The coasting trade is considerable ; the for- * American Magazine, vol. 1, 1835. 120 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. eign trade not extensive. The manufactures of the city ex- ceed $900,000 per annum. More than twice as many books are published here annually as are manufactured in any other place of equal population in the United States. The popula- tion within the limits of the city in September, .1835, was nine thousand and eight hundred. The State Assen^ly meets alternately at Hartford and New Haven on the ftrst Wednesday of May — the odd years at the former place. Anterior to the adoption of tiie Con- stitution in 1818, *' Election Day " was marked by various ceremonies, which rendered the day one of great gathering and high festivity. Most of these, however, have been gradually dispensed with. The clergy, who were formerly dined at the public e.xpense, have no longer that provision made for them. The Governor's Guards have met with a similar deprivation. The Election Sermon is heard no more, and for several years the members of the Assembly, who were wont to march in solemn and dignified procession to the house of God, have formed no procession at all. Several travellers have described the ceremonies of Elec- tion day, as they were observed in the ** olden time," til] the era spoken of above. We select the following from Ken- dall's Travels, 1808, as a substantially correct account of these days, which were wont to infuse animation into the man of threescore years and ten, and filled the stripling with joys, which he felt but once in a year. ** I reached Hartford," says this traveller, "at noon, on Wednesday, the 19th of May, 1807. The city is on the west bank of the Connecticut, fifty miles above its mouth. The governor, whose family residence is on the east side of the river, at some distance from Hartford, was expected to arrive in the evening. This gentleman, whose name is Jona- than Trumbull, is the son of the late governor Jonathan Trumbull; and though the election is annual, he has himself been three or four years in office, and will almost certainly so continue during the remainder of his life. It was known that the votes at this time were in his favor. ** The governor has volunteer companies of guards, both horse and foot. In the afternoon the horse were drawn up on the bank of the river, to receive him, and escort him to his lodgings. He came before sunset, and the fineness of the evening, the beauty of the river, the respectable appear- FAMILY TOURIST. 121 HARTFORD. ance of the governor, and of the troop, the dignity of the oc- casion, and the decorum observed, united to gratify the spec- tators. The color of the clothes of the troops was blue. The governor, though on horseback, was dressed in black, but he wore a cockade in a hat, wliich I did not like the less, because it was in the form rather of the old school than of the new. *' In the morning, the foot guards were paraded in front of the State House, where they afterwards remained under arms, while the troop of horae occupied the street which is on the south side of the building. The clothing of the foot was scarlet, with white waistcoats and pantaloons ; and their appearance and demeanor were military. - *' The day was fine, and the apartments and galleries of the State House afforded an agreeable place of meeting, in which the members of the Assembly and others awaited the coming of the governor. At about eleven o'clock, his ex- cellency entered the State House, and shortly after took his place at the head of a procession, which was made to a meet- ing house or church, at something less than half a mile dis- tant. The procession was on foot, and was composed of the person of the governor, together with the lieutenant gover- nor, assistants, high sheriffs, members of the lower house of the assembly, and, unless with accidental exceptions, all the clergy of the State. It was preceded by the foot guards, and followed by the horse ; and attended by gazers, that, consid- ering the size and population of the city, may be said to have been numerous. The church, which from its situation is called the South Meeting House, is a small one, and was re- sorted to on this occasion, only because that more ordinari- ly used was at this time rebuilding. The edifice is of wood, alike unornamcnted within and without ; and when filled, there was still presented to the eye nothing but what had the plainest appearance. The military remained in the street, with the ex- ception of a few officers, to whom no place of honor or dis- tinction was assigned ; neither the governor nor other magistrates were accompanied with any insignia of office ; the clergy had no canonical costume, and there were no fe- males in the church, except a few, (rather more than twenty in number,) who were stationed by themselves in a gallery op- posite the pulpit, in quality of singers. A decent order was the highest characteristic that presented itself " The pulpit, or, as it is here called, the desk, was filled 122 FAMILY TOURIST. HARTFORD. by three, if not four clergymen; a number by its form and dimensions it was able to accommodate. Of these, one opened the service with a prayer, another delivered a ser- mon, a third made a concluding prayer, and a fourth pro- nounced a benediction. Several hymns were sung ; and among others, an occasional one. The total number of singers was between forty and fifty. " The sermon, as will be supposed, touched upon mat- ters of government. When all was finished, the procession returned to the State House. The clergy who walked were about a hundred in number. •' It was in the two bodies of guards alone, that any suita- ble approach to magnificence discovered itself The gov- ernor was full dressed, in a suit of black ; but the lieutenant governor wore riding boots. All, however, was consistently plain, and in unison with itself, except the dress swords, which were worn by high sheriffs, along with their village habiliments, and of which the fashion and the materials were marvelously diversified. Arrived in front of the State House, the military formed on each side of the street; and as the governor passed them, presented arms. The sev- eral parts of the procession now separated, each to a dinner prepared for itself at an adjoining inn ; the governor, lieu- tenant governor, and assistants to their table, the clergy to a second, and the representatives to a third. The time of day was about two in the afternoon. ** Only a short time elapsed before business was resumed, or rather at length commenced. The General Assembly met in the council room, and the written votes being exam- ined and counted, the names of the public officers elected were formally declared. They were in every instance the same as those which had been successful the preceding year. ** This done, the lieutenant governor administered the oath to the governor elect, who, being sworn, proceeded to administer their respective oaths to the lieutenant governor and the rest ; and here terminated the affairs of the election day. Soon after six o'clock, the military fired three feu de joies, and were then dismissed. ** On the evening following that of election day, there is an annual ball at Hartford, called the election ball ; and on the succeeding Monday, a second, which is more select. The election day is a holiday throughout the State ; and even the whole remainder of the week is retrarded in a similar FAMILY TOURIST. 125 NEW HAVEN. light. Sei'vants and others are now indemnified for the loss of the festivals of Christmas, Easter, and Whitsuntide, which the principles of their Church deny them. Families ex- change visits, and treat their guests with slices of election cake ; and thus preserve some portion of the luxuries of tlie forgotten feast of the Epiphany. The whole day, like the morning, and like the evening which preceded it, was fine. In Hartford, the degree of bustle was sufficient to give an air of importance to the scene; a scene that, taken altogether, was not unfitted to leave on the mind a pleasing and respect- ful impression." NEW HAVEN. The first knowledge which the English appear to have ob- tained of the beautiful territory, on which New Haven stands, was in the year 1637, when, in the prosecution of the Pe- quot war, a party of English troops pursued Sassacus, the great sachem of that tribe, and his warriors, in their flight, as fur as Fairfield. It is not improbable that the spot had been j)reviously visited by the Dutch, from New York. No attempt, however, had been made by them to settle. It was .still in possession of an Indian tribe, called the Quinnipiacs, which name seems to have been given, not only to the terri- tory itself, but also to the river, now called Wallingford river, and which forms the eastern boundary of the township. On the 30th of March, 1638, a small colony, led by Mr. Davenport, Mr. Prudden, Mr. Samuel Eaton, and Theophi- lus Eaton, Esq. sailed from Boston, for Q,uinnipiac. After a fortnight's voyage, they reached their destined port. The first Sabbath aftes their arrival, the people assembled under a large spreading oak. Here they invoked the blessing of that God who had preserved them amid the perils of the deep, and here they listened to such directions and exhorta- tions as their pious minister, Mr. Davenport, thought pertin- ent to their state. In November following, Theophilus Eaton, Esq., Mr. Davenport, and the other English planters, entered into arti- cles of agreement with Momauguin, sole sachem of Q,uinni- 126 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW HAVEN. piac, by which the said sachem transferred the territory to the English, for which the latter agreed to protect the sacheni and his Indians, and gave twelve coats of English cloth, twelve alchemy spoons, twelve hatchets, twelve hoes, two dozen of knives, twelve porringers, and four cases of French knives and scissors. The New Haven colonies were, perhaps, the most wealthy company, which emigrated to New England. The tract of land selected for their residence was singularly level, and beautiful, and susceptible of being laid out in regular squares. The centre of the town was occupied by a large square, which was encompassed by nine others. The city lies at the head of a harbor, which sets up four miles from Long Island Sound. Its latitude is 40° 18' north ; longitude 72" 56' west. It is 76 miles from New York ; 34 from Hartford ; 134 from Boston ; and 301 from Wash- ington. " There is nothing in Britain," says Mr. Duncan, " that bears any resemblance to a New England town, and it is not easy to convey an idea of its singular neatness. The houses are generally of wood, painted white, and decorated with Venetian blinds, of a brilliant green. The solid framework of the walls is covered externally with thin planks, called by Americans, clapboards, which overlap each other from the eaves downwards, and serve effectually to exclude rain. The roofs are covered with shingles, which are thin slips of wood, put on like slates, and painted with a dark blue. The buildings are, in general, about two stories in height ; the door is dec- orated with a neat portico ; and very frequently a projecting piazza, most grateful in hot weather, with benches under it, e.xtends along the whole front of the house. Mouldings and minute decorations of various kinds are carried round the principal projections. A garden is not unfrequent behind, and a neat wooden railing in front, inclosing a grass plot and a few trees. Such houses would soon look rusty and weather-beaten were they in our climate ; but they enjoy here a purer atmosphere, and the smoke of coal fire is unknown. The painting is renewed once a year, which serves to preserve the wood for a long time. The churches, or meeting houses, as they are more generally called, are, in the smaller towns, al- so of wood, and with the addition of a steeple and a gilt weath- ercock, resemble very much the other buildings. In the FAMILY TOURIST. 127 NEW HAVEN. large towns they are of brick or stone, but retain generally the green Venetian blinds upon the windows. The streets are wide, and run off, at right angles to each other, from a large open square, covered with green turf, in the centre of the town ; the churches, townhouse, and an inn or two not unfrequently front this green. Gravel walks skirt many of the streets, and occasionally rows of limes or poplars. The agreeable succession of gardens, grass plots, trees, foot walks, and buildings, gives an air of rural quietness to the town ; and the open space which frequently intervenes be- tween one house and another, prevents much of the danger which would otherwise arise from fire. Every thing be- tokens an unusual share of homely simplicity and comfort, and the absence at once of great riches and of great poverty. •' New Haven possesses most of the distinctive peculiari- ties which I have now noticed, but combines with them much of what we usually consider inseparable from a town. The churches, and a great many of the dwelling houses, are of brick, a few even of stone,* and two or three of the streets are closely built. The numerous buildings of Yale College, all of brick, and constructed with a regularity and neatness, complete its claims to superiority. " The country round New Haven is very picturesque. Behind the town, at a distance of about two miles, is an am- phitheatre of rugged hills, not unlike some of our Scottish scenery ; in front is an inlet from Long Island Sound, afford- ing a safe and commodious harbor ; to the right and left, a richly cultivated country, relieved by patches of forest; and, in wide expanse before it, the blue waves of the sea rolling in magnificence. Two large precipices, called East and West Rock, 400 feet high, and about two miles apart, form * The original churches in New Haven are described by Dr. Dwight, as " barely decent structures ; " but in 1812, all the congregations voted that they would take down their churches, and build new ones. Accord- "^g^y> two of them commenced the work in 1813, and a third in 1814. These three are all placed on the western side of Temple street, which is 100 feet wide, facing an open square. " The Presbyterian churches are of Grecian architecture. The Episcopal church is a Gothic building, the only correct specimen, it is believed, in the United States. Few structures devoted to the same purpose, on this side the Atlantic, are equally handsome." In one of the Congregational or Presbyterian churches, Mr. Duncan says, an organ has been introduced, but with a special stipulation that no voluntary shall be allowed to break in upon the solemnity of worship. 128 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW HAVER. part of the semicircular range. They are prominent features in the landscape ; and events in the annals of our native country, with which they are associated, impart to them that traditional charm, which is so often wanting in American scenery. In the fastnesses of these rocks, some of the regi- cides of Charles I. found shelter from their pursuers, when the agents of his profligate son hunted them for their lives." Of the individuals referred to, President Dwight has communicated some highly interesting particulars. About three miles N. E. from Northampton, in the Connecticut valley, and 90 miles from due W. of Boston, is the little town of IJadloy. " In tiiis town," says the learned writer, '* re- sided for fifteen or sixteen years the celebrated regicides, Gojff and Whalhy. They came hither in the year 1(354, and lived in the house of the Rev. Mr. Russell, the minister. Whalley died in his house. Some years since, the house was pulled down by Mr. • ■^tiMfiA r^-^P Wm m II ' IIHIIII^^^Ha BRi ^ iII^BHmB^^^^^^HiI^wIBSI ^p, 1 1 BMHSWlPyBBHB|BB B "* "^ "^ LUrr sJH^^^^^HH^^Q ^pl; ^^•J :!i^ wnHM ^w ' ■ • •- • •>■ '-uHw,«gliaBHnalII»|i|llll|) I 1 wm. w ' NEW YORK NEW YORK. Before proceeding to a description of New York, the present commercial capital of the United States, we have divers historical matters, with which to entertain our fellow travellers, touching the discovery of the place, and the early settlement of the city, with sketches of the manners and customs of the primiiive settlers. " The first European feet that ever trod on any part of the territory, now included within the State of New York, were probably," says Dr. Miller,* *' Verrazzano^ and his crew, who appear to have visited the harbor of New York, in 1524. The description which this navigator gives of a harbor into which he put — of the islands which he saw in it — of the river which he ascended, corresponds with the harbor of New York, the islands Staten and Manhatten, and the river, afterwards called the Hudson. Dr. Belknap says the harbor which Verrazzano entered, " by his descrip- tion, must be that of New York.''' Others have considered the whole account as agreeing with the harbor of Neioport, in Rhode Island. f The weight of authority, however, lies * Miller's Historical Discourse, 1809. t Tliat noted historian, Diedrich Knickerbocker, has decided that Ver- razzano never made the above discovery, for the follov/ing potent rea- sons : 1st. *' Because, on strict examination, it will be found," says he, '' that the description given by him applies as well to the bay of New York as it does to mv nightcap." 2d. '^ Because he was a Florentine, and the Florentines having filched away the laurels from the brows of the immortal Columbus, and bestowed them on their officious townsman, Amerigo Vespuci, they may be suspected of an attempt to rob the illus- trious Hudson of the credit of his discovery." 3d. '• I award," says he, " my decision in favor of the pretensions of Hendrick Hudson, inas- much as his expedition sailed from Holland — being truly and absolutely a Dutch enterprise," — and as if in truth, like the Squire of the knight of La Mancha, he would '' heap proof upon the shoulders of demonstra- tion," he adds — '' though all the proofs in the world were introduced on the other side, I would set them at nought, as undeserving my atten- tion." — " Thus, therefore,'' he concludes, <' the title of Hendrick Hud- son to his renowned discovery is fully vindicated." 192 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. in favor of the former opinion. If so, the merit of the dis- covery is due to Verrazzano, and the date of that discovery is the spring of 1524. This navigator was a Florentine, in the service of Francis I. of France. At this time he was on a voyage of discovery. He first made the American coast, near Wilmington, North Carolina. From this point, he sailed south as far as Georgia, after which he directed his course north, and entered, as we have stated, the harbor of New York. In this harbor, according to his own account, he staid about fifteen days. He and his men frequently went on shore to obtain supplies, and to sec the country. He says expressly: "Sometimes our men stayed two or three daies on a little island neere the ship for divers necessaries." And again, " we were oftentimes within the land five or six leagues, which we found as pleasant as is possible to declare, very apt for any kind of husbandry, of come, wine, and oyle. We entered afterwards into the woods, which we found so great and thicke, that any army, were it never so great, might have hid itselfe therein; the trees whereof are okes, cipresse trees, and other sortes unknowen in Europe^ Verrazzano returned to France in July. He gave to the whole country, whose coast he had explored, the name of New France. It is distressing to add, that in a subsequent voyage, according to some authorities, Verrazzano was cut to pieces by the savages, who murdered him and others, who had gone ashore, in the sight of those wlio remained on board the ship, the latter being unable to rescue them. From this time nearly a century elapsed before the least addition was made to the knowledge of this part of the American Continent. In 1609, however, Henry Hudson arrived on the Ameri- can coast. Hudson was an Englishman. He had in years previous, under the patronage of some English merchants, made two voyages, with the hope of discovering a passage to India by the north ; but failing in his object, he had return- ed to England. Thence he proceeded to Holland, and en- gaged in the service of the Dutch East India Company. By the latter he was furnished with a small ship, called the Half' Moon, manned by twenty men, and with which he left Am- sterdam on the 4th, and the Texel on the 6th, of April, 1609. FAMILY TOURIST. I93 NEW YORK. An account of the voyage of Verrazzano had been pub- lished nine years before this of Hudson ; but there is no evi- dence of his having seen it. Hence he is entitled to the merit of an original discoverer. He appears to have first landed where Portland (Maine) now stands, and to have re- mained on shore six days. Thence pursuing a southerly course, he reached Chesapeake Bay, whence he again coast- ed northward, and on the 3d of Sept. anchored within Sand?/ Hook. '' The next day, the 4th of September, he sent a boat on shore for the purpose of fishing. The tradition is, that his men first landed on Coney island, which lies near to Long Island, and now makes a part of King's County. On the same day, the natives came on board of his ship, as she lay at anchor, conducting themselves with great apparent friend- liness, and discovering a strong disposition to barter the produce of their country for knives, beads, clothes, and other articles of a similar kind. The next day, the 5th of Sep- tember, Hudson again sent his boat on shore, for the pur- pose, as appears from the journal, of exploring and sound- ing the waters lying to the south, within Sandy Hook, and forming what is now called the Horse-Shoe. Here the boat's crew landed, and penetrated some distance into the woods, in what is now Monmouth county, in New Jersey. They were well received by the natives, who presented them very kindly with, what the journal calls, " green tobacco," and also with •' dried courants,"* which are represented as hav- ing been found in great plenty and of a very excellent quality. " On the 6th of September, Hudson sent a boat, manned with five hands, to explore what appeared to be the mouth of the river, at the distance of about four leagues from thfe ship. This was no doubt the strait between Long and Statcn islands, genei*ally called the Narrows. Here the writer of the journal observes, " a good depth of water was found," and, within, a large opening and a narrow river to the west, in which it is evident he refers to what is now call- ed the Kills, or the channels between Bergen Neck, and Statcn island. In exploring the bay, and the adjacent wa- ters, the boat's crew spent the whole day. On their way, in returning to the ship, towards night, they were attacked by * These were probably whortleberries, or some other wild berries, of similar kind, which the Indians were accustomed to dry. 13 194 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. the natives in two canoes; tlie one carrying fourteen men, the other twelve. A skirmish ensued, in which one o{ Hud- son's men, named John Colman, was killed, by an arrow, which struck Ijim in tlie throat, and two more wounded. — The next day, the remains o^ Colman was interred on a point of land not far from the ship, wliicli from that circumstance received the name of Caiman's Point ; and which was prob- ably the same that is now called Sajidi/ llooky* On the lllh of September, Hudson entered the river, which bears his name, from which time to the 22d, he con- tinued to ascend it. The ship reached a point somewhat above where the city of Hudson now stands. From this place, Hudson despatched a boat, which ascended as far as the present site of Albany. On the '23d, he began to de- scend the river, and on the 4th of October, he left it, and immediately stood out to sea, proceeding directly for Eu- rope, where he arrived on the 7th of November following. — Like his predecessor Verrazzano, ho also came to a misera- ble end. During a subsequent voyage, commenced in 1010, a spirit of mutiny appeared among his crew, a majority of whom took the command of the ship from Hudson, whom, with his son, and seven others, they put into a boat, and abandoned them to their fate. Ko further tidings were ever heard of them. By virtue of this discovery, both the Dutch and English gave the name of Hudson to the river. As a place of set- tlement, the former were soon attracted to the territory. — Owing, it is said, to the hostility of the Indians near the mouth of the river, a fort and trading house were first erect- ed, 1G14, near the spot where Albany now stands. To- wards the close of the same year, or in the course of the next, a small trading house and fort were erected on Man- hattanf island, and called New Amsterdam. This was the commencement of the city of New York. The city, as well as the State of New York, continued in possession of the Dutch, with the exception of a few years, until the peace of 1664, when it came under the British do- minion. During the period the Dutch possessed it, the style of architecture, dress, manners, customs, — all were of course * Miller's Historical Discourse, 1809. t This was the Indian name of the island. 196 FAMILY TOURIST. WEW YORK. Dutch. The following amusing notices of some of these subjects are given us by that amusing chronicler of the "old- en time," Diedrich Knickerbocker : " The houses of the higher classes," says he, " were gen- erally constructed of wood, excepting the gable end, which was of small black and yellow Dutch bricks, and always faced on the street, as our ancestors, like their descendants, were very much given to outward show, and were noted for putting the best leg foremost. The house was always fur- nished with abundance of large doors, and small windows on every floor: the date of its erection was curiouslv designated by iron figures on the front, and on the top of the roof was perched a fierce little weathercock, to let the family into the important secret, which way the wind blew. These, like the weathercocks on the tops of our stcej)lcs, pointed so ma- ny different ways, that every man could have a wind to his mind ; — the most staunch and loyal citizens, however, always went according to the weathercock on the top of the Gov- ernor's house, which was certainly the most correct, as he had a trusty servant employed every morning to climb up and set it to the right quarter. ** In those good days of simplicity and sunshine, a pas- sion for cleanliness was the leading principle in domestic economy, and the universal test of an able housewife — a character which formed the utmost ambition of our unen- lightened grandmothers. The front door was never opened except on marriages, fiinerals, new-year's days, the festival of St. Nicholas, or some such great occasion. It was orna- mented with a gorgeous brass knocker, curiously wrought, sometimes in the device of a dog, and sometimes of a lion's head, and was daily burnished with such religious zeal, that it was oft-times worn out by the very precautions taken for its preservation. The whole house was constantly in a state of inundation, under the discipline of mops and brooms and scrubbing-brushes; and the good housewives of those days were' a kind of amphibious animal, delighting exceedingly to be dabbling in water — insomuch that an historian of the day gravely tells us, that many of his townswomen grew to have webbed fingers like unto a duck ; and some of them, he had little doubt, could the matter be examined into, would be found to have the tails of mermaids — but this I look upon to be a mere sport of fancy, or, what is worse, a wilful mis- representation. FAMILY TOURIST. 197 NEW YORK. " The grand parlor was the sanctum sanctorum, where the passion for cleaning was indulged without control. In this sacred apartment, no one was permitted to enter, ex- cepting the mistress and her confidential maid, who visited it once a week, for the purpose of giving it a thorough clean- ing and putting things to rights — always taking the precau- tion of leaving their shoes at the door, and entering devoutly on their feet. After scrubbing the floor, sprinkling it with fine white sand, which was curiously stroked into angles, and curves, and rhomboids, with a broom — after washing the windows, rubbing and polishing the furniture, and putting a new bunch of evergreens in the fireplace — the window-shut- ters were again closed to keep out the flies, and the room carefully locked up, until the revolution of time brought round the weekly cleaning day. " As to the family, they always entered in at the gate, and most generally lived in the kitchen. To have seen a numer- ous household assembled around the fire, one would have imagined that he was transported back to those happy days of primeval simplicity, which float before our imagination like golden visions. The fire-places were of a truly patri- archal magnitude, where the whole family, old and young, master and servant, black and white, nay, even the cat and dog, enjoyed a community of privilege, and had each a right to a corner. Here the old burgher would sit in perfect si- lence, pufling his pipe, looking in the fire with half-shut eyes, and thinking of nothing for hours together ; the goede vrouw on the opposite side would employ herself diligently in spin- ning yarn or knitting stockings. The young folks would crowd round the hearth, listening with breathless attention to some old crone of a negro, who was the oracle of the family, and who, perched like a raven in a corner of the chimney, would croak forth for a long winter afternoon a string of incredible stories about New England witches — grisly ghosts, horses without heads — and hairbreadth es- capes, and bloody encounters among the Indians. " In those happy days a well regulated family always rose with the dawn, dined at eleven, and went to bed at sundown. Dinner was invariably a private meal, and the fat old burgh- ers showed incontestible symptoms of disapprobation and un- easiness at being surprised by a visit from a neighbor on such occasions. But though our worthy ancestors were thus sin- gularly averse to giving dinners, yet they kept up the social 198 FAMILY TOURIST. KEW yoiiK. bands of intimacy by occasional banquetirigs, called tea- parties. " These fashionable parties were generally confined to the higher classes, or noblesse, that is to say, such as kept their own cows, and drove their own wagons. The com- pany commonly assembled at three o'clock, and went away about six, unless it was in winter time, when the fashionable hours were a little earlier, that the ladies might get home before dark. The tea-table was crowned with a huge earth- en dish, well stored wiih slices of fat pork, fried brown, cut up into morsels, and swimming in gravy. The company being seated around the genial board, and each furnished with a fork, evinced their dexterity in launching at the fat- test pieces in this mighty dish — in much the same manner as sailors harpoon porpoises at sea, or our Indians spear sal- mon in the lakes. Sometimes the table was graced with immense apple-pies, or saucers full of preserved peaches and pears; but it was always sure to boast of an enormous dish of balls of sweetened dough, fried in hog's fat, and called doughnuts, or oly keoks — a delicious kind of cake, at pres- ent scarce known in the city, excepting in genuine Dutch families. " The tea was served out of a majestic delf teapot, orna- mented with paintings of fat little Dutch shepherds and shepherdesses tending pigs — with boats sailing in the air, and houses built in the clouds, and sundry other ingenious Dutch fantasies. The beaux distinguished themselves by their adroitness in replenishing this pot from a huge copper tea-kettle, which would have made the pigmy macaronies of these degenerate days sweat merely to look at it. To sweet- en the beverage, a lump of »ugar was laid beside each cup — and the company alternately nibbled and sipped with great decorum, until an improvement was introduced by a shrewd and economical old lady, which was to suspend a large lump directly over the tea-table, by a string from thej^eiling, so that it could be swung from mouth to mouth — an ingenious expedient, which is still kept up by some families in Albany ; but which prevails without exception in Communipiaw, Ber- gen, Flat Bush, and all our uncontaminated Dutch villages. " At these primitive tea-parties the utmost propriety and dignity of deportment prevailed. No flirting nor coquet- ting — no gambling of old ladies, nor hoyden chattering and romping of younger ones— no self-satisfied struttings of FAMILY TOURIST. 199 NEW YORK. wealthy gentlemen, with their brains in their pockets — nor amusing conceits, and monkey divertisements of smart young gentlemen with no brains at all. On the contrary, the young ladies seated themselves demurely in their rush- bottomed chairs, and knit their own woollen stockings; nor ever opened their lips, excepting to say, yah Mynlicr, or yah ya Vrouii\ to any question that was asked them ; behaving, in all things, like decent, well educated damsels. As to the gentlemen, each of them tranquilly smoked his pipe, and seemed lost in contemplation of the blue and white tiles with which the fire-places were decorated ; wherein sundry passages of Scripture were piously portrayed — Tobit and his dog figured to great advantage; Haman swung conspicuous- ly on his gibbet, and Jonah appeared most manfully bound- ing out of a whale, like Harlequin through a barrel of fire. ** The parties broke up without noise and without confu- sion. They were carried home by their own carriages, that is to say, by the vehicles nature had provided them, except- ing such of the wealthy as could afford to keep a wagon. — The gentlemen gallantly attended their fair ones to their res- pective abodes, and took leave of them with a hearty smack at the door : which, as it was an established piece of eti- quette, done in perfect simplicity and honesty of heart, occa- sioned no scandal at that time, nor should it at present — if our great-grandfathers approved of the custom, it would ar- gue a great want of reverence in their descendants to say a word against it."* Another writer, who has also garnered up a merry mass of facts in relation to the manners and customs of the Dutch in the " olden time," gives us the following description. ** The Dutch kept five festivals of peculiar notoriety, in the year : Kcrstydt, (Christmas) ; Nieuwjar, (New Year) ; a great day of cake, Paas, (the Passover) ; Pinxter, (i. e. Whitsuntide) ; and San Claas, (i. e. Saint Nicholas, or Christ-kinkle day). The negroes on Long Island on some of those days camq in great crowds to Brooklyn and held their field frolics." Nieuwjar or New Year's day is still ob- served with much good feeling and hospitality both at New York and Albany ; especially among the descendants of the primitive stock. ** It was the general practice of families in middle life to * History of New York, by Diedrich Knickerbocker. 200 FAMILY TOURIST. HEW YORK. spin, and make much of their domestic wear at home. — Short gowns and petticoats were tlie general in-door dresses. '* Young women who dressed fjay to go abroad to visit, or to church, never failed to take off that dress and put on their homemade, as soon as they got hojne ; even on Sunday even- ings, when they expected company, or even their beaux, it was their best recommendation to seem thus frugal and ready for any domestic avocation. The boys and young men of a family always changed their dress for a common dress in the same war. There was no cu^^tom of offering drink to their guests ; when punch was offered, it was in great bowls. '* Dutch dances were very common; the supper on such occasions was hot chocolate and bread. " The negroes used to dance in the markets, using tom- tons, horns, 6lc. for music. " None of the stores or tradesmen's shops then aimed at any rivalry as now. There were no glaring allurements at windows, no over-reaching signs, no big bulk windows; they were conteiit to sell things at honest profits, and to trust to an earned reputation for their share of business. " Many aged persons have spoken to me of the former delightful practice of families sitting out on their ' stoops' in the shades of the evening, and their saluting the passing friends, or talking across the narrow streets with neighbors. It was one of the grand links of union in the Knickerbocker social compact. It endeared, and made social neighbors ; made intercourse on easy terms ; it was only to say, come, sit down. It helped the young to easy introductions, and made courtships of readier attainment. " I give some facts to illustrate the above remarks, de- duced from the family B with which I am personally acquainted. It shows primitive Dutch manners. His grand- father died at the age of sixty-three, in 1782, holding the office of alderman eleven years, and once chosen mayor and declined. Such a man, in easy circumstances in life, fol- lowing the true Dutch ton, had all his family to breakfast, all the year round, at daylight. Before the breakfast he univer- sally smoked his pipe. His family always dined at twelve exactly, at that time the kettle was invariably set on the fire for tea, of Bohea, which was always as punctually furnished at three o'clock. Then the old people went abroad on pur- I FAMILY TOURIST. 201 NEW YORK. pose to visit relatives, chuuging the families each night in succession, over and over again all the year round. The regale at every such house was expected as matter of course to be chocolate supper, and soft waffles. " Afterwards, when green tea came in as a new luxury, loaf sugar also came with it; this was broken in large lumps and laid severally by each cup, and was nibbled or bitten as needed I " The family before referred to actually continued the practice till as late as seventeen years ago, with a steady de- termination in the patriarch to resist the modern innovation of dissolved sugar, while he lived. " While they occupied the stoops in the evening, you could see every here and there an old Knickerbocker with his long pipe, fuming away his cares, and ready on any oc- casion to offer another for the use of any passing friend who would sit down and join him. The ^deal picture has every lineament of contented comfort and cheerful repose. Some- thing much more composed and happy than the bustling anxiety of ' over business' in the moderns. " The cleanliness of Dutch housewifery was always ex- treme ; every thing had to submit to scrubbing and scouring ; dirt in no form could be endured by them : and dear as water was in the city, where it was generally sold, still it was in per- petual requisition. It was their honest pride to see a well furnished dresser, showing copper and pewter in shining splendor, as if for ornament, rather than for use. " It was common in families then to cleanse their own chimneys without the aid of hired sweeps ; and all trades- men, &/C. were accustomed to saw their own fuel. No man in middle circumstances of life ever scrupled to carry home his one cwt. of meal from the market ; it would have been Ids shame to have avoided it."* In respect to the apparel of those days, the author above cited observes : " Men wore three-square or cocked hats, and wigs; coals with large cuffs, big skirts lined and stiffen- ed with buckram. None ever saw a crown higher than the head. The coat of a beau had three or four large plaits in the skirts, wadding almost like a coverlet to keep them smooth ; cuffs very large, up to the elbows, open below and inclined down, with lead therein ; the capes were thin and * Watson's Historic Tales of olden time. 202 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW VORK. low, SO as readily to expose the close plaited neck-stock of fine linen cambric, and the large silver stock-buckle on the back of the neck ; shirts with hand ruffles, sleeves finely plaited, breeches close fitted, with silver, stone, or paste gem buckles; shoes or pumps with silver buckles of various sizes and patterns ; thread, worsted, and silk stockings ; the poorer class wore sheep and buckskin breeches close set to the limbs. Gold and silver sleeve buttons, set with stones or paste of various colors and kinds, adorned the wrists of the shirts of all classes. The very boys often wore wigs ; and their dresses in general were similar to those of the men. " The women wore caps, (a bare head was never seen,) stiff stays, hoops from six inches to two feet on each side; high heeled shoes of black stuff, with white silk or thread stockings ; and in the miry times of the winter they wore clogs, gala shoes, or gatterns. *• As soon as wigs were abandoned, and the natural hair was cherished, it became the mode to dress it by plaiting it, by queuing and clubbing, or by wearing it in a black silk sack or bag, adorned with a large black rose. *" In time, the powder with which wigs and the natural hair had been severally adorned, was run into disrepute (about 28 or 30 years ago) by the then strange innovation of ' Brutus heads ; ' not only then discarding the long cherished powder and perfume, and tortured frizzle-work, but also lit- erally becoming * round heads ' by cropping off all the pen- dent graces of ties, bobs, clubs, queus, &.c. The hardy beaux who first encountered public opinion by appearing abroad unpowdered and cropt, had many starers. The old men, for a time, obstinately persisted in adherence to the old regime ; but death thinned their ranks, and use and preva- lence of numbers at length gave countenance to modern usage. *' From various reminiscents, we glean that laced rufHes depending over the hand, was a mark of indispensable gen- tility. The coat and breeches were generally desirable of the same material — of * broadcloth ' for winter, and of silk camlet for summer. No kind of cotton fabrics were then in use, or known. Hose were, therefore, of thread or silk in summer, and fine worsted in winter ; shoes were square- toed, and were often * double channelled.' To these suc- ceeded sharp toes, as piked as possible. When wigs were universally worn, grey wigs were powdered ; and for that ^, FAMILY TOURIST. 203 NEW YORK. purpose sent in a wooden box frequently to the barber to be dressed on his blockhead. But ' brown wigs,' so called, were exempted from the white disguise. Coats of red cloth, even by boys, were considerably worn ; and plush breeches, and plush vests of various colors, Shining and smooth, were in common use. Everlasting, made of worsted, was a fabric of great use for breeches, and sometimes for vests. The vest had great depending pocket flaps, and the breeches were short above the stride, because the art, since devised, of suspending them by suspenders, was then un- known. It was then the test and even the pride of a well- formed man, that he could by his natural form readily keep his breeches above his hips, and his stockings, without gartering, above the calf of his leg. With the queus be- longed frizzled side-locks and tout pies, formed of the natural hair, or, in defect of a long tie, a splice was added to it. Such was the general passion iof the longest possible whip of hair, that sailors and bbatmen, to make it grow most, used to tie theirs in eel skins. Nothing like sur- touts were known ; but they had coating or cloth great- coats, or blue cloth and brown camlet cloaks, with green baize lining to the latter. In the time of the American war, many of the American officers introduced the use of Dutch blankets for great-coats. The sailors used to wear hats of glazed leather, or woollen thrums, called chapeaus;. and their ' small clothes,' as we now call them, were im- mensely wide ' petticoat-breeches.' The working men in the country wore the same form, having no falling-flaps, but slits in front ; and they were so full in girth, that they ordinarily changed the rear to the front, when the seat be- came prematurely worn out. At the same time numerous working men and boys, and all tradesmen, wore leather breeches and leather aprons. " Some of the peculiarities of the female dress were these, to wit : Ancient ladies are still alive, who often had their hair tortured for hours at a sitting, in getting up for a dress occasion, the proper crisped curls of a hair curler. This formidable outfit of head-work was next succeeded by * rollers,' over which the hair was combed above the forehead. These were again superseded by 'cushions' and artificial curled work, which could be sent to the bar- ber's block, like a wig, ' to be dressed,' leaving the lady at home to pursue other objects. 204 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. "When the ladies first began to lay off their cumbrous hoops, they supplied their place with successive substitutes, such as these, to wit : first came ' bishops,' a thing stuffed or padded with horsehair; then succeeded a smaller affair, un- der the name of Cue dc Paris, also padded with horseliair. *' Among other articles of female wear, we may name the following, to wit : Once tliey wore a * skimmer-hat,' made of a fabric which shone like silver tinsel ; it was of a very small flat crown and big brim, not unlike the present Leghorn flats. Another hat, not unlike it in shape, was made of woven horsehair, wove in flowers, and called * horsehair bonnets,' an article which might be again use- fully introduced for children's wear, as an enduring hat for long service. I have seen what was called a bath-bonnet, made of black satin, and so constructed to lay in folds, that it could be set^ipon, like a chapeau bras; a good arti- cle now for travelling ladies. The ' muskmclon-bonnet,' used before the Revolution, had numerous whalebone stiffcners in the crown, set an inch apart, in parallel lines, and pre- senting ridges to the eye between the bones. The next bonnet was the * whalcbonc-bonnet,' having only the bones in the front as stiffeners. A * calash-bonnet ' was always formed of green silk ; it was worn abroad, covering the head, but when in rooms it could fall back in folds like the springs of a calash or gig top ; to keep it over the head, it was drawn up by a cord always held in the hand of the wearer. The * wagon-bonnet,' always of black silk, was an article exclusively in use among the Friends, and was deemed to look, on the head, not unlike the top of the * Jersey wagons,' and having a pendent piece of like silk hanging from the bonnet and covering the shoulders. The only straw wear was that called the * straw Cheshire bonnet,' worn generally by old people. ** The ladies once wore ' hollow breasted stays, ^ which were exploded as injurious to the health. Then came the use of straight stays. Even little girls wore such stays. At one tiine the gowns worn had no fronts; the design was to dis- play a finely quilted Marseilles, silk, or satin petticoat, and a worked stomacher on the waist. In other dresses, a white apron was the mode; all wore large pockets under their gowns. Among the caps was the 'queen's nightcap,' the same always worn by Lady Washington. The ' cushion headdress ' FAMILY TOURIST. 205 NEW YORK. was of gauze, stiffened out in cylindrical form, with white spiral wire. The border of the cap was called the balcony. " Formerly there were no sideboards, and when they were first introduced after the Revolution, they were much smaller and less expensive than now. Formerly they had couches of worsted damask, and only in very affluent families, in lieu of what we call sofas, or lounges. Plain people used settees and settles, — the latter had a bed concealed in the seat, and by folding the top of it outwards to the front, it exposed the bed, and widened the place for the bed to be spread upon it." In those days, " there were no Windsor chairs : and fan- cy chairs are still more modern. Their chairs of the gen- teelest kind were of mahogany or red walnut, (once a great substitute for mahogany in all kinds of furniture, tables, &c..) or else they were of rush bottom, and made of maple posts and slats, with high backs and perpendicular. Instead of japanned waiters as now, they had mahogany tea-boards, and round tea tables, which being turned on an axle underneath the centre, stood upright, like an expanded fan or palm-leaf, in the corner. Another corner was occupied by a beaufet, which was a corner closet with a glass door, in which all the china of the family was intended to be displayed, for orna- ment as well as use. A conspicuous article in the collection was always a great china punchbowl, which furnished a fre- quent and grateful beverage, — for wine drinking was then much less in vogue. China teacups and saucers were then about half their present size ; and china teapots and coffee- pots, with silver nozzles, was a mark of superior finery. The sham of plated ware was not then known, and all who showed a silver surface had the massive metal too. This occurred in the wealthy families, in little coffee and tea- pots ; and a silver tankard for good sugared toddy, was above vulgar entertainment. Where we now use earthen ware, they then used delf ware, imported from England ; and in- stead of queens ware, (then unknown,) pewter platters and porringers, made to shine along a 'dresser,' were universal. Some, and especially the country people, ate their meals from wooden trenchers. Gilded looking-glasses and picture frames of golden glare were unknown; and both, much small- er than now, were used. Small pictures painted on glass, with black mouldings for frames, with a scanty touch of gold leaf in the corners, was the adornment of a parlor. The 206 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YOKK. looking-glasses in two plates, if large, had either glass frames figured with flowers engraved thereon, or were of scalloped mahogany — painted white or black, with here and there some touches of gold. Every householder in that day, deemed it es- sential to his convenience and comfort to have an ample chest of drawers, in his parlor or sitting room, in which the linen and clothes of the family were always of ready access. It was no sin to rummage them before company. These draw- ers were sometimes nearly as high as the ceiling. At other times they had a writing desk about the centre, with a fall- ing lid to write upon when let down. A great high clock case reaching to the ceiling, occupied another corner ; and a fourth corner was appropriated to the chinniey place. They then had no carpets on their floors, and no paper on their walls. The silver sand on the floor was drawn into a variety of fanciful figures and twirls of the sweeping brush, and much skill and even pride was displayed therein in the devices and arrangement. They had then no argand or other lamps in parlors, but dipt candles, in brass or copper candle- sticks, was usually good enough for common use ; and those who occasionally used mould candles, made them at home in little tin frames, casting four to six candles in each. A glass lantern with square sides furnished the entry lights in the houses of the aflluent. Bedsteads then were made, if fine, of carved mahogany, of slender dimensions ; but, for com- mon purposes, or for the families of good tradesmen, they were of poplar, and always painted green. It was a matter of universal concern to have them low enough to answer the purpose of repose for sick or dying persons — a provision so necessary for such possible events, now so little regarded by the modern practice of ascending to a bed by steps, like clambering up to a haymow. " A lady giving me the reminiscences of her early life, thus speaks of things as they were before the war of Inde- pendence : — Marble mantels and folding doors were not then known ; and well enough we enjoyed ourselves without sofas, carpets or girandoles. A white floor sprinkled with clean white sand, large tables and heavy high back chairs of wal- nut or mahogany, decorated a parlor genteely enough for any body. Sometimes a carpet, not however covering the whole floor, was seen upon the dining room. This was a show parlor up stairs, not used but upon gala occasions, and then not to dine in. Pewter plates and dishes were in general FAMILY TOURIST. 207 NEW YORK. use. China on dinner tables was a great rarity. Plate, more or less, was seen in most families of easy circum- stances, not indeed in all the various shapes that have since been invented, but in massive silver waiters, bowls, tankards, cans, &/C. Glass tumblers were scarcely seen. Punch, the most common beverage, was drunk by the company from one large bowl of silver or china; and beer from a tankard of silver. ** The use of stoves was not known in primitive times, neither in families nor churches. Their fireplaces were as large again as the present, with much plainer mantel pieces. In lieu of marble plates around the sides and top of the fire- places, it was adorned with china Dutch tile, pictured with sundry Scripture pieces. Dr. Franklin first invented the * open stove,' called also the ' Franklin stove,' after which as fuel became scarce, the better economy of the ' ten plate stove ' was adopted. " The most splendid looking carriage ever exhibited among us was that used, as befitting the character of that chief of men, General Washington, while acting as President of the United States. It was very large, so as to make four horses, at least, an almost necessary appendage. It was oc- casionally drawn by six horses, Virginia bays. It was cream colored, globular in its shape, ornamented with cupids, sup- porting festoons, and wreaths of flowers, emblematically ar- ranged along the pannel work ; — the whole neatly covered with best watch glass. It was of English construction. *' Some twenty or thirty years before the period of the Revolution, the steeds most prized for the saddle were pacers^ since so odious deemed. To this end the breed was propa- gated with much care. The Narragansett pacers of Rhode Island were in such repute, that they were sent for, at much trouble and expense, by some few, who were choice in their selections. It may amuse the present generation to peruse the history of one such horse, spoken of in the letter of Hip Van Dam of New York, in the year 1711, which I have seen. It states the fact of the trouble he had taken to pro- cure him such a horse. He was shipped from Rhode Island in a sloop, from which he jumped overboard, when under sail, and swam ashore to his former home. He arrived at New York in 14 days' passage, much reduced in flesh and spirit. He cost .£32, and his freight 50 shillings. This writer. Rip Van Dam, was a great personage, he having been President 208 FAMILY TOURIST NEW YORK. of the Council in 1731 ; and on the death of Governor Mont- gomery, that year, he was governor ex-officio, of New York. His mural monument is now to be seen in St. Paul's Church."* When the Dutch first established themselves on the island, its surface presented a very irregular appearance. In some places, the ground rose into craggy hills; in other parts were low, hollow and marshy swamps. By great labor and ex- pense, that part on which the city is built has been nearly levelled and the marshes filled up. In 1640, New York was a mere village, and the dwelling houses were few, low, and strag- gling. The most prominent buildings were then, according to its erudite and right pleasant historian Diedrich Knicker- bocker, •* the Fort, the Church of St. Nicholas, the Gaol, the Governor's house, the Gallows, the Pillory, the West India Store, and the City Tavern," of which there are now no re- mains. In 1665, the inhabitants of New York were incorporated under the care of a Mayor, five Aldermen, and a Sheriff. Until this time the city was ruled by a Scout, Burgomasters, and Schipens. The first Mayor after the conquest was Thomas Willet, Esq., an Englishman. At the time of the conquest in 1664, the town was composed of a few miserable houses, and the whole in such a mean condition, according to a letter of Nicholas to the Duke of York, that not one sol- dier had lain in sheets, or in any other bed than canvass and straw. Some of the houses, however, were handsomely built of brick and stone, and in part covered with red and black tiles. In 1678, the houses, according to Sir Edmund Andros, were three hundred and forty-three, and the population, as there were found to be ten on an average for each house, was 3430 souls. At this time, a merchant worth ^1000, was a good substantial merchant, and a planter worth half that in moveables, was accounted rich. " There may have lately traded in that colony," says Andros, " in a year, from ten to fifteen ships or vessels, upon an average of 100 tons each, English, New England, and of our own built." In 1686, the city was first regularly incorporated by a char- ter. The shipping belonging to the city had increased to nine or ten three mast vessels of about 80 or 90 tons ; 200 or Watson's Historic Tales of Olden Time. FAMILY TOURIST. 209 NEW YORK. 300 ketches or barks of about 40 tons, and about 20 sloops of 25 tons. In 1693, the first printing press was erected in the city, by William Bradford, who was appointed printer to the govern- ment. The first book from his press was a small folio vol- ume of the Laws of the Colony. In 1690, the city contained 594 houses, and 6000 inhab- itants. The shipping consisted of 40 ships, 62 sloops, and 60 boats.* Nearly a century from the above date, or in 1790, the in- habitants were only about 33,000, including more than 2000 slaves. From the preceding facts, it is quite apparent that for a series of years, the city of New York was surprisingly slow in its growth ; but by a settlement of the interior of the State, and the opening of the navigation of the great Lakes, it has, within a few years, received an impulse, which, added to the other advantages, has established its present and secured its future pre-eminence. The population of the city at the pres- ent time, 1847, is more than twelve times what it was in 1790. At the same time, the annual increase of its commerce is so great, that statements made in respect to it in any one year, would be found exceedingly defective the year succeeding. Let this be our apology for omitting such statistics, in rela- tion to this and other subjects, bearing upon the growth of this " London of America." It may be added, also, in this place, that so many pages have been devoted to the earlier history of the city, that our allotted space will require a somewhat partial view of New York as it now is. The Hudson, or North river, flows by the city on the western side ; a narrow part of Long Island Sound familiarly termed the East river, washes it upon the other ; while in front, a noble bay expands between the shores of Long Island and New Jersey, in which the united navies of the world might spread their canvass. Below the bay are the Narrows, formed by the heights, which jut forward with a fine sweeping bend, giving a circular form to the magnificent basin, and facilitating the defence of the harbor. At various points above and below them are forts ^ of such imposing * Holmes's Annals, passim. 14 210 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. Strength, that it seems impossible that any naval armament can reach the city, unless with the co-operation of a power- ful land force. Ice very rarely, now, obstructs the naviga- tion ; and about twenty miles from the city, the Atlantic opens to the vessels, without a rock or island to annoy them. '* Approaching the city at sunset," says a traveller, *' I shall not soon forget the impression, which its gay nppear- ance made upon me. Passing slowly round its southern point, formed by the confluence of the Hudson witli what is called the Ea.st river, we admired at our leisure tlie striking panorama which encircled us. Immediately in our front, was the battery, with its little fort and its public walks, di- versified with trees, impending over the water, numberless well dressed figures gliding through the foliage, or standing to admire our Hearing vessel. In the back ground, the neat- ly painted houses, receding into distance ; the spiry tops of poplars piercing above the roofs, and marking the line of the streets. The city gradually enlarging from the battery, as from the apex of a triangle, the eye followed, on one side, the broad channel of the Hudson and picturesque coa?t ot Jersey, at first sprinkled with villages and little villas, their white walls just glancing in the distance through thick beds of trees, and afterwards rising into abruj)t precipices, now crowned with wood, now jutting forward in bare walls of rock. To the right, the more winding waters of the East river, bounded, on the one side by the wooded heights of Brooklyn and the varied shores of Long Island, and on the other, by quays and warehouses, scarcely discernible through the forest of masts, that were covered, as far as the eye could reach. Behind us stretched the broad expanse of the bay, whose islets, crowned with turreted forts, their colors streaming from their flagstaffs, slept on the still and glowing waters, in dark or sunny spots, as they variously caught or shunned the gaze of the sinking sun. It was a glorious scene, and we almost caught the enthusiasm of our compan- ions, who, as they hailed their native city, pronounced it the fairest in the world."* " The harbor of New York," says another traveller, to whom we are indebted for the most distinct description of this city, *' is one of the best in the country, and capable of • Views of Society in America. FAMILY TOURIST. 213 NEW YORK. almost unlimited extension. The wharfs skirt both sides of the island, and piers project at right angles into the stream, leaving intermediate slips, which have many of the advantages of wet docks, and are free from several of their in- conveniences. *' The tides rise and fall about six feet, but there is always water enough abreast of the piers to float the largest merchant- men. They do not, however, enjoy the advantage of dry docks, for the tide does not ebb sufficiently to empty them, and mechanical means have not yet been resorted to ; but vessels which need repair, are keeled down in shallow water, first upon the one side, and then upon the other. Masts surround the city like reeds on the margin of a pool; and when one passes along the wharfs, and witnesses the never ceasing opera- tions of loading and discharging, warping out and hauling in, vessels of every description arriving and sailing with every breeze that blows, together with the bustling of shippers, custom house officers, sailors and carmen, he cannot but be im- pressed with the great extent of the commerce which can sup- ply such extensive means with such unceasing employment."* While nature has done much for this city in regard to its pleasant and advantageous situation, art has done its propor- tion in the way of ornamental architecture. There are some fine buildings, but excepting the City Hall, there are few which merit particular notice. " The streets in the lower and older part of the city," says Mr. Duncan, ** are very narrow aad crooked, and, what is more immediately inexcusable, are kept in very bad order. Garbage and litter of almost every kind are thrown out upon the pavement, where a multitude of hogs of all ages riot in abundance. The footwalks are encumbered with projecting steps and cellar doors, lamp- posts, purapwells, and occasionally poplar trees ; and where any open space occurs, barrels, packing boxes, and wheel- barrows, are not unfrequently piled up. No town affords greater facilities for subterraneous drains, for the ground slopes on both sides from the centre to the water ; and no town that I ever saw, stands in so much need of them. The more modern streets are greatly superior in every respect ; they are in general wide and straight, and the footwalks are comparatively free from projections and encumbrances." * Duncan's Travels, vol. 1. f. 29. 214 FAMILY TOURIST WEW YORK. The city is lighted throughout, but indifferently, except in the principal streets ; in many places the feeble glitnnierings of the solitary oil lamp struggle past two stately trces^ which stand like sentinels to defend it. "Broadway, the principal street, runs in a straight line from the battery to its extremity in Bloomingdale road. It measures three miles in length, and is about eighty feet in width. It occupies in general the highest part on which the city stands, and for two miles it is conjjiactly built ; the houses are chiefly brick, but there is still a considerable mixture of wooden ones. '• The early Dutch settlers," continues Mr. Duncan, ** im- ported bricks from Holland to construct their dwellings; and a few of these houses still remain. They are one story in height, with the gable end to the street, and a little iron weathercock perched upon the top of it. The British set- tlers laid the surrounding forests under contribution for building materials ; and a considerable proportion of the older part of the city is still constructed of wood. FVcquent and destructive fires were the natural consequence of this sys- tem ; and these are, still, every winter, grubbing out a few of the remaining wooden tenements. The erection of wood- en houses is now prohibited, and the brick ones which suc- ceed them are built with great neatness. The bricks are made of very fine clay, which atTords a very close and smooth grain; and the buildings are alwa}-s showily painted, either of a bright red with white lines upon the seams^, or of a clean looking yellow. In many of the more recent ones, the lin- tels and steps are of marble. Stone buildings are very rare." The City Hall, which stands on the north side of the Park, a triangular enclosure in the centre af the city, is a splendid edifice, almost entirely of white marble. It is 21G feet long, and 105 broad. The architecture, however, is thought by many to be faulty. The internaf arrangement is inconvenient; the basement story, which is of red freestone, impairs the simplicity and gives it a patched and party-col- ored appearance. The building is an oblong square, with projecting wings, two stories in height beside the base- ment ; with a portico of half the height between the wings, -^ iiTi— — *■■■ ■■■■ ' ^^^^^^^^^^^^^H||!||B|n'ffl ^^^^ r :^vk' i^^^nffl^^^H ^^^^■^.'' ""'"' "'''^^'1 f wjil fil'fljH^^^^^^I 1 i|fl||Bi^Hi|||H|pn B^^^j^^H^'j^KliliiiiiliiifH 1 1 *1 > i i t .w.;si iM^lpillJll lEi . Ifr" ili^v'' '- .^ n^ *• . 1— |g^pilL!iiiii'', :. .i:'ii;i; i H|»ii^'i^|^pp^ •- ^M i^^ > ^.,^\ irwli »|j;| , ^ ,; 1 o ^mmMPW^ W^£^ IjpiililiilH ! «! •^1 'ti ■.■■; ■^' * ^^1 IS - llv^i iirM' -. 'IfflW X /m^i^^mmmsam -■Sl't^--' i Us Hal-wlH) > EJmtiE^Sm Nl«w iiiliii r" !^ ,/ fe- i^l Wmr' ■ '■' ' '1 i 1 'Z l;il'|a^^>,y^ iJlM. l^rafflHEl ajWHMli^gJiT^^yM:^,:, ;|, ! T- ■Mffiw/^auftsriiiffi? .--- - ^I^^^^HI i*^* j ir*''*jwHii|i|lii|iii iiiii)ii'n'iiiii*''iiii 'liii'iil i ^ ■^nii C iiilKJi.'!!^^^ \ ^^:: illPli™^^^ 7^ ■'1' .-^^aHiniii ii/WsMwi ilffi jif' h 1 ^nm :,,pHH||| llfiiliillll 11' • 1--— 'Sm 'KiniuC;,'- '■■: '' ' ■ ' "llj 1 ' , /_^^rf«|% " ■ '" Kiiir^^^~^l^lffi^5'K!' ''■ IP HRHIi ' i llil^- ^B^H^kMM^Hb^^HHIriIIiiIIiIIiII! IIiIII ilJaii! l^^fe n ^^!:ifM ^ ' r^T^V f P^-^nr^'^i 1 IRH c=^?^3llli 'l*^ -' A^T ii a J "# 1 i feallH )Hii^^' ifl lIH ^w^^-^' i^-> ■!i{:i|!i|!lil!!!i|l!!!!*illil:;i FAMILY TOURIST. 221 NEW YORK. and St. John's, in Varick street, are, however, imposing edi- fices. The Unitarians have two elegant Gothic structures in Broadway — the "Church of the Messiah," between Fourth and Fifth streets, and the " Church of the Divine Unity," be- tween Spring and Prince streets — besides three less pretend- ing edifices in other sections of the city. The Roman Cath- olics have likewise several fine churches or chapels. Of the Presbyterian churches, though many of them are peculiarly neat and convenient, few of them have any thing imposing in their external appearance. — Perhaps there is no circumstance that more strikingly shows the progress of the population towards the northern part of the city, than the removal of churches ; but few being now standing below the City Hall. New York contains several important literary institutions. The oldest is Columhia College, which was chartered in 1754 by George II. The college edifice is situated on a beautiful square, between Chapel, Church, and Murray streets. The funds are about $200,000, and the income between $7,000 and $8,000 : its libraries contain about 14,000 volumes. — The University of the City of New York stands on Washington square, and has a fine edifice of white marble, in the Gothic style of English collegiate architecture, which makes a very picturesque appearance. It was founded in 1831. — To the foregoing we may add the General Theological Seminary of the Episcopal Church, the New York Theological Seminary, and the Rutgers Female Institute ; all of which are flourishing institutions, but we cannot give them a particular description. There are numerous other similar establishments, which are proof of the enterprise and benevolence of the citizens : such as the New York Hospital, the Eye Infirmary, the Lunatic Asylum, the Deaf and Dumb Asylum, the Institution for the Blind, &;c. The New York Society Library is an old institution, founded in 1754, and has a handsome edifice on Broadway. Its library contains nearly 40,000 volumes, and is open daily. — The His- torical Society has a library of 12,000 volumes, located in the University.— Clinton Hall Association, founded in 1830, owns the hall, corner of Beekman and Nassau streets, containing the Mercantile Library, designed for the benefit of Merchants' Clerks, and comprising more than 20,000 vols. — The Appren- tices' Library contains 12,000 vols. — Besides these, there are many others, of less importance. The city participates in the munificent fund of the State, 1 1 1 i j 1 1 1 i jj^t^¥ 1 1 i Ij ^ 4. ^ L ■ ^w '*'*IH^B^^ :^ ^*^^c^^««wyn 3 ! i >-H ! 1 fiiHiBPffWf I 1 1 1 1 1; 1 1 i;l ISh^b ^BH^^^^^S^^^ wSBf 1 TRINITY CHURCH. l^r 1 FAMILY TOURIST. 223 NEW YORK. appropriated to the advancement of common education, and numerous public schools, under the superintendence of able and experienced teachers, are located in different sections, well calculated to diffuse their benefits among all classes of the inhabitants. Of all the public works undertaken by the city> the most splendid and expensive is the Croton Waterworks. It was at first estimated that it would cost between five and six millions of dollars; and at the city charter election of 1835, the citi- zens were required to vote for or against the enterprise. The whole number of votes given was 17,330, of which 5,968 were against it, and 11,367 in favor of it. It was happy that the cost was not exactly foreknown ; otherwise the plan would probably have failed. But, its advantages having been expe- rienced, few, if any regret its construction, although it has cost the city about ^ 12,000,000. The aqueduct commences at the Croton river, five miles from Hudson river, in West- chester county. The dam is 250 feet long ; 70 feet wide at the bottom, 7 feet at the top, and 40 feet high, built of stone and cement. It creates a pond 5 miles long, covering a sur- face of 400 acres. From the dam the aqueduct proceeds to Harlem river, a distance of 33 miles ; it is built of stone, brick, and cement ; arched over and under ; 6 feet 3 inches wide at the bottom, 7 feet 8 inches at the to]) of the side-walls, and 8 feet 5 inches high. It has a descent of 13 1-4 inches per mile, and will discharge 60,000,000 of gallons in 24 hours. It crosses Harlem river on a magnificent stone bridge, 1,450 feet long, with 15 piers, eight of them 80 feet span, and seven of 50 feet span, 114 feet above tide-water to the top. The receiving reservoir is at 80th street, 33 miles from the Croton dam, covering 35 acres, and containing 150,000,000 of gallons. The water is conveyed to the distributing reservoir on Mur- ray's hill, in iron pipes ; this reservoir covers 4 acres, and is constructed of stone and cement ; it is 43 feet high above the street, and holds 20,000,000 of gallons. Thence the water is conveyed to every part of the city in iron pipes, laid beneath the ground. There are several beautiful fountains supplied from this source, which are both useful and ornamental. New York will compare favorably, in regard to health, with any city of its size in the world ; its situation giving it many advantages for salubrity of air and cleanliness. The average temperature of the city throughout the year is stated at 55^ of Fah. In winter, the thermometer is rarely 224 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. • lower than 15 or 20 degrees below the freezing point; some- times the mercury fulls to zero, and it has been observed at ^rom two to si.\ degrees below it. The temperature of the summer is seldom higher than 80 or 84 degrees. However, the changes are frequent, and often great. There are 25 banks in the city, with an aggregate capital of nearly $28,000,000; 22 fire insurance companies, with a capital of about 86,000,000 ; several marine insurance com- panics, with a capital of about $3,000,000 ; 4 savings' banks ; 15 markets ; 6 theatres ; 2 opera-houses ; an amphitheatre ; and a very extensive museum, embracing upwards of five hundred thousand natural and artificial curiosities, collected from every region of the known world. Morse describes New York, forty years ago, as "the gayest place in America." " The ladies," he says, ** in the richness and brilliancy of their dress, are not equalled in any city of the United States, not even in Charleston, which has heretofore been called the centre of the heau inunde. In point of sociability and hospitality," lie adds, " New York is hardly exceeded by any town " in the Union. With re- gard to their love of literature, and their patronage of the arts and sciences, inquiries could not then be answered quite satisfactorily. Dr. Dwight bears a similar testimony to the hospitality, by which its inhabitants are distinguished. "Ta- bles are spread here," he says, " with a luxury, that must, I think, satisfy the demands of any epicure. The economy of the inhabitants is, I think, less remarkable and less uni- versal than their industry. The furniture and carriages of many of the inhabitants are rich and beautiful. Until lately almost all the coaches were private property. Hackney coaches are now employed in considerable numbers. The general attachment to learning is less vigorous in this city than in Boston, commerce having originally taken a more entire possession of the minds of its inhabitants. The charac- ter of New York, however, has for some time been materially changing in this respect. Wealth, also, in a much higher degree than good sense can justify, is considered as con- ferring importance and distinction on the owners." The languages spoken in this city are very various. When passing through the streets, you will hear English, FAMILY TOURIST. 225 NEW VORK. French, Dutch, and German, and all the various brogues spoken by the numerous nations, when imperfectly acquaint- ed with the English tongue. It is computed, that one third of the inhabitants are either natives of New Ei/^land, or de- scendants of those who have emigrated from the northern States. Not more than a third of the population is, strictly speaking, native to this State ; and the proportion of Euro- peans of various nations is probably larger than in any other city in the Union. According to Mr. Cooper, the " products of nature " abound in the markets in New York, and are quite equal and in some articles superior to those which are found even in the capital of France itself " It is difficult," he says, " to name fish, fowl, or beast, that is not, in its proper person, or in some species nearly allied to it, to be obtained in the markets in New York. Of fish alone, a gentleman has named between 70 and 80 varieties, all of which are edible and most of which are excellent. Of fowls there is a great va- riety. I have had a list, nearly or quite as long as the cata- logue of fishes, placed before me, and it would do your di- gestive powers good to hear some of the semi-barbarous epicures of this provincial town expatiate on the merits of grouse, canvasbacks, brants, plover, wild turkeys, and all the et ccBteras of the collection. In respect to the more vul- gar products of regular agriculture, I shall say nothing. They are to be found here, as elsewhere, with the exception, that, as a great deal is still left to nature, perfection and variety in .vegetables is not as much attended to as in the vicinity of older and larger places. But of the game, I may speak with confidence ; for, little as I have yet seen of it, at this particu- lar season, one mouthful is sufficient to prove that there is a difference between a partridge and a hen, greater than what is demonstrated by the single fact that one sleeps on a roost, and the other in a tree," "Of the fruits," continues Mr. Cooper, "I can speak of my own knowledge. The situation of New York is singu- larly felicitous in this respect. In consequence of the great range of the thermometer, there is scarce a fruit, which will endure the frost, that is not found in a state nearly approach- ing to perfection. Indeed, either owing to the freshness of the soil, or to the genial influence of the sun, or to both, there is an extraordinary flavor imparted to most of the ani- mal and vegetable food which I have tasted. In short, so 15 226 FAMILY TOURIST. KEW Yoax. far as my observation has extended, the sun imparts a flavor to every grass, plant, or fruit here, that must be tasted, and tasted with discrimination, in order to be appreciated. Yet man h^^ done but little to improve these inestimable advantages. There is no extraordinary show of fruits in the public market-places. Peaches, cherries, meloris, and a few others of the common sorts, it is true, abound ; but the Americans appear not to be disposed to make much sacrifice of time, or money, to the cultivation of the rarer sorts. " I cannot close this subject, however, without making one remark on the nature of a peculiar difference that 1 have noticed between the fruits of this country, and those of your own capital in particular. A French peach is juicy, and, when you first bring it in contact with your palate, sweet, but it leaves behind it a cold, watery, and almost sour taste. It is for this reason so often eaten with sugar. An American is exceedingly apt to laugh, if he sees ripe fruit of any sort eaten with any thing sweet. The peaches here leave behind a warm, rich, and delicious taste. You, who, as a Parisian, say so much for, and think so much of, your gout, may be disposed to be incredulous, when I tell you these people would positively reject the best melon that ever appears on your table. There is a little one, to be picked up in the mar- kets here for a few sous, say twelve at the utmost, that ex- ceeds any thing of its kind, that I have admitted into the sanctuary of my mouth. 1 want terms to describe it. It is firm, and yet tender ; juicy, without a particle of the cold watery taste we know, and of an incomparable flavor and sweetness. Its equal can only be found in the Crimea, or the adjacent parts of Turkey, aad perhaps in Persia. The Americans admft that it is the only melon that can appear on the table of one who understands the difference between eating and tasting, and to me it seems to have been especially created for an epicure. In the gardens af tlie gentlemen you find not only a greater variety, but, a few common fruits excepted, a far better quality than in the markets. I have tasted a great many old acquaintances, transplanted from the eastern to the western hemisphere, and I declare I do not re- member one that has not been beRefitted by the cbartge, in flavor, though not always in appearance. " Owing to the facility and constancy of intercourse with the Southern States, the fruits of the tropics are found here, not quite as fresh^ certainly, as when first culled from the FAMILY TOURIST. 227 NEW YORK. plant itself, but well flavored, and in absolute contact with the products of the temperate zones. Pine-apples, large, rich, golden, and good, are sold from twelve to twenty-five sous ; delicious oranges are hawked in the streets much cheaper than a tolerable apple can be bought in the shops of Paris, and bannanas, yams, watermelons, &:.c. are as common as need be in the tnarkets. It is this extraordinary combina- tion of the effects of different climates, the union of heat and cold, and of commercial facilities, added to the rare bounties of nature, that incline me to think the empire of gastronomy will, sooner or later, be transferred to this spot. At present it must be confessed that the science is lament- ably defective, and, after all, perhaps, it is in those places where nature has been most liberal that man is apt to content himself, without which no perfect enjoyment in any branch of human indulgence can exist. " Passing from the means of gratification possessed by these people, we will turn our attention, for a moment, to the manner in which they are improved. The style of living of all the Americans, in the Northern States, is essentially English. As might be expected in a country where labor is comparatively high, and the fortunes, though great, still not often so princely as in the mother country, the upper classes live in a more simple form, wanting some of the most refined improvements of high English life, and yet indulging, under favor of their climate, situation, and great commercial free- dom, in perhaps a greater combination of luxury and comfort than any other people of the world. In respect to comfort itself there is scarce any known in England, that is not to be found here ; the point of difference is in its frequency. You are, tlierefore, to deduct rather in the amount of English comfort, than in its quality; and you are not to descend far below the refinements at all, since all the substantials of that comfort, which makes England so remarkable in Europe, are to be found equally in America. There are points, perhaps, even in the latter, in which the Englishman (rarely very much disposed to complacency) would complain in America; and there are, certainly, others, on which the American (who has a cast of the family likeness) would boldly vent his spleen in England. I am of opinion the two nations might benefit a good deal by a critical examination of each other. Indeed, I think the American has, and does, daily profit by 226 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. his observation, though I scarce know whether his kinsman is yet disposed to admit that he can learn by the study of a people so new, so remote, and so little known, as those of the United States. •• After you descend below the middle classes in society, there is no comparison to be drawn between the condition of the American and that of the native of England, or of any other place. I have seen misery here, it is true, and filth, and squalid, abject poverty, always in the cities, however ; but it is rare ; that is, rare, indeed, to what I have been ac- customed to see in Europe. At first, I confess there was a feeling of disappointment came over me at seeing it at all ; but reflection convinced me of the impossibility of literally, bringing all men to a state in which they might profit by the advantages of their condition. Cadvvallader, also, who has a silent, significant manner of conveying truths, has unde- ceived me more than once, when I have been on the very threshold of an error. 1 remember that one day, while I stood contemplating, in the suburbs of this city, a scene of misery that one might not have expected to witness out of Europe, he advanced to the door of the dreary hovel I gazed at, and asked the inhabitants how long they had resided in America. The answer proved that he had not deceived him- self as to the birthplace of its luckless tenants. In this man- ner, in more than a dozen instances, he has proved that his own country has not given birth to the vice and idleness, which here could alone entail such want. In perhaps as many more instances, he has passed on, shaking his head at my request that he would examine the causes, admitting frank- ly that he saw the subjects were natives. It is astonishing how accurate his eye is in making this distinction. I do not know that he has been deceived in a solitary instance. Where misery is so rare, it is a vast deal to admit, that perhaps half of its objects are the victims of a different system than that under which it is exhibited. ** There is something exceedingly attractive in the exhi- bition of neatness and domestic comfort which one sees throughout this country. I think the brilliancy of the cli- mate, the freshness of the plants, and the exterior ornaments of the houses, contribute to the charm. There is a species of second-rate genteel houses, that abound in New York, into which I have looked, when passing, with the utmost FAMILY TOURIST. 229 NEW YORK. pleasure. They have, as usual, a story that is half sunk in the earth, receiving light from an area, and two floors above. Tlie tenants of these buildings are chiefly merchants, or pro- fessional men, in moderate circumstances, who pay rents of from 300 to 500 dollars a year. You know that no Ameri- can, who is at all comfortable in life, will share his dwelling with another. Each has his own roof, and his own little yard. These buildings are finished, and exceedingly well finished too, to the attics; containing, on the average, six rooms, besides offices, and servants' apartments. The furni- ture of these houses is often elegant, and always neat. Ma- hogany abounds here, and is commonly used for all the prin- cipal articles, and very frequently for doors, railings of stairs, &LC. &c. Indeed the whole world contributes to their lux- ury. French clocks, English and Brussels carpets, curtains from Lyons and the Indies, alabaster from France and Italy, marble of their own, and from Italy, and, in short, every ornament below the rarest that is known in every other country in Christendom, and frequently out of it, is put within the reach of the American of moderate means, by the facilities of their trade. In that classical taste, which has been so happily communicated to your French artizans, their own are, without doubt, miserably deficient; but they are good imitators, and there is no scarcity of models. While in consequence of want of taste or want of wealth, the Americans possess, in very few instances, any one of the ar- ticles that contribute to the grace of life in the same per- fection as they are known in some one other country, they enjoy, by means of their unfettered trade, a combination of the same species of luxuries, in a less advanced state, that is found no where else. They often, nay, almost always, fail in particular excellence, but they possess an aggregate of approximate perfection that is unrivalled, perhaps, even in England ; certainly if we descend below the very highest classes in the latter country. ** But there are hundreds, I believe I might almost say thousands, of houses in New York, of pretensions altogether superior to those just named, A particular description of one belonging to a friend of Cadwallader, by whose favor I was permitted to examine it, may serve to give you an idea of the whole of its class. The proprietor is a gentle- man of the first society of the country, and of what is here called an easy fortune, though hundreds of his neighbors 4( 230 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW TORK. enjoy the goods of tliis world in a far greater degree than himself "The dwelling of Mr. is on the' Broadway, one of the principal streets, that runs on the height of land along the centre of the island, for the distance of about two miles. Il is the fashionable mall of the city, and certainly, forgayety, the beauty and grace of the beings who throng it, and above all, the glorious sun, that seems to reign here three days out of four, it may safely challenge competition with most if not any of the promenacJes of the old world. The house in question occupies, I should think, a front of about thirty-four feet on the Broadway, and extends into the rear between sixty and seventy more. There are no additions, the build- ing ascending from the ground to its attics in the same pro- portions. The exterior necessarily pre.sents a narrow, ill-ar- ranged facade, that puts architectural beauty a good deal at defiance. The most that can be done with such a front is to abstain from inappropriate ornament, and to aim at such an effect as shall convey a proper idea of the more substan- tial comforts, and the neatness that predominate within. The building is of brick, painted and lined, and modestly orna- mented, in very good taste, with caps, sills, cornices, &c. &c. in the dark red freestone of the country. The house is of four stories; the lower, or rez dc chaussee, being half sunk, as is very usual, below the surface of the ground, and the three upper possessing elevations in proportion to the height of the edifice. The door is at one of the corners of the front, and is nearly on a level with the windows of the first floor, which may commence at the distance of about a dozen feel above the pavement of the street. To reach this door, it is necessary to mount a flight of steep, inconvenient steps, also in freestone, which compensate, in a slight degree, for the pain of the ascent, by their admirable neatness, and the per- fect order of their iron rails and glittering brass ornaments. The entrance is into a little vestibule, which may be some twelve feet long, by eight in width. This apartment is en- tirely unfurnished, and appears only constructed to shelter visiters, while the servant is approaching to admit them through the inner door. The general excellence of the climate, and perhaps the custom of the country, have, as yet, prevented the Americans from providing a proper place for the reception of the servants of their guests : they rarely wait, unless during the short calls, and then it is always in FAMILY TOURIST. 231 NEW YORK. the Street. As visiters are never announced, and as but one family occupies the same building, there is little occasion, unless to assist in unrobing, for a servant to attend his master or mistress within the outer door. From the vestibule, the entrance is into a long, narrow, high, and handsome corridor, at the farther extremity of which are the principal stairs. This corridor, or passage, as it is called here, is carpeted, lighted with a handsome lamp, has a table, and a few chairs, and, in short, is just as unlike a French corridor as any thing of the sort can very well be. From this passage, you enter the rooms on the first floor : you ascend to the upper, and descend to the lower story, and you have egress from and ingress to the house by its front and rear. The first floor is occupied by two rooms that communicate by double doors. These apartments are nearly equal in size, and, sub- tracting the space occupied by the passage, and two little china closets, that partially separate them, they cover the whole area of the house. Each room is lighted by two win- dows; is sufficiently high; has stuccoed ceiling and cornices in white; hangings of light, airy, French paper; curtains in silk and muslin ; mantel pieces of carved figures in white marble, (Italian in manufacture, I should think ;) Brussels carpets; large mirrors; chairs, sofas, and tables, in mahog- any ; chandeliers ; beautiful, neat, and highly wrought grates in the fireplaces, of home work ; candelabras, lustres, &/C. &/C., much as one sees them all over Europe. In one of the rooms, however, is a spacious, heavy, ill-looking sideboard, in ma- hogany, groaning with plate, knife and spoon cases, all handsome enough I allow, but sadly out of place, where they are seen. Here is the first great defect that I find in the or- dering of American domestic economy The eating or dining room is almost invariably the best one in the house. The custom is certainly of English origin, and takes its rise in the habit of sitting an hour or two after the cloth is re- moved, picking nuts, drinking wine, chatting, yawning, and gazing about the apartment. The first great improvement to be made in the household of these people is to substitute taste for prodigality in their tables ; and the second, I think, will be to choose an apartment for their meals, that shall be convenient to the offices suited to the habits of the family, plain in its ornaments, and removed from the ordinary occu- pations of those who are to enjoy it. In some houses this is already partially eflfected ; but as a rule, I am persuaded that 232 FAMILY TOURIST. REW YORK. the American guest, who should find himself introduced into a salle a manger, as piain as that in which a French duke usually takes his repast, would not think his host a man who sufficiently understood the fitness of things. I have heard it said that the occupant of the White House* gives his dinners in one of these plain rooms, and that the meanness of Congress is much laughed at, because they do not order one better furnished for him. Certes, if Congress never showed a worse taste than this, they might safely challenge criticism. As the President, or his wife, directs these mat- ters, I suppose, however, the great national council is alto- gether innocent of the innovation. " You ascend, by means of the stairs at the end of the passage, into what is here called the second story, but which, from the equivocal character of the basement, it is diflicult to name correctly. This ascent is necessarily narrow, crowd- ed, and inconvenient. The beautiful railings in mahogany and brass, and the admirable neatness of every part of an American house of any pretension, would serve to reconcile one to a thousand defects. As respects this cardinal point, I think there is little difference between the English and the Americans, at least so far as I have yet seen the latter ; but the glorious sun of this climate illuminates every thing to such a degree, as to lend a quality of brightness that is rarely known in Britain. You know that a diamond will hardly glitter in London. It must also be remembered that an American house is kept in this order by the aid of, perhaps, one third of the domestics that would be employed in the mother country. "On the second floor, (or perhaps you will get a better idea, if I call it the first,) of the house of Mr. , there is a spacious saloon, which occupies the whole length of the building, and possesses a corresponding breadth. This apart- ment, being exclusively that of the mistress of the mansion, is furnished with rather more delicacy than those below. The curtains are in blue India damask, the chairs and sofa of the same colored silk, and other things are made to cor- respond. The library of the husband is on the same floor, and between the two there is a room used as a bedchamber. The third story is appropriated to the sleeping rooms of the family ; the attic to the same purpose for the servants, and *The President of the United States. FAMILY TOURIST. 233 NEW YORK. the basement contains a nursery and the usual offices. The whole building is finished with great neatness, and with a solidity and accuracy of workmanship that it is rare to meet in Europe out of England. The doors of the better rooms are of massive mahogany, and wherever wood is employed it is used with great taste and skill. All the mantel pieces are marble, all the floors are carpeted, and all the walls are fin- ished in a firm smooth cement. " I have been thus minute in my account, because in de- scribing the house of Mr. -, I am persuaded that I con- vey a general idea of those of all the upper classes in the northern section of this country. There are, certainly, much larger and more pretending buildings than his, in New York, and many far richer and more highly wrought ; but this is the habitation of an American in the very best society, who is in easy circumstances, of extensive and high con- nections, and who receives a fair proportion of his ac- quaintances. " You will also see by what I have written, that the Amer- • icans have not yet adopted a style of architecture of their own. Their houses are still essentially English, though neither the winters nor the summers of their climate would seem to recommend them. There is, however, something in the opposite character of the two seasons, to render a choice difficult. A people in whose country the heats of Florence and the colds of St. Petersburg, periodically prevail, may well hesitate between a marble fountain, and a Russian stove. I am not certain that, considering their pursuits, and the pe- culiarity of climate, they are very wrong in their present habits. But I shall forever protest against the use of carpets, while the thermometer is at 90"^, nor shall I soon cease to declaim against those hideous excrescences called stoops. Beautiful, fragrant, and cool India mats are, notwithstanding, much in use in midsummer, in the better houses. Still, with all my efforts, I have not been able to find a room to sleep in, that is not f6rtified with a Brussels, or a double Eng- lish ingrain. The perspiration stands on my forehead, while I write of them ! Another defect in the American establish- ment is the want of cabinets de toilette. They are certainly to be found in a few houses, but I have occupied a bedroom five and twenty feet square, in a house otherwise convenient, that had not under its roof a single apartment of the sort. 234 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW YORK. This is truly a sad prodigality of room, though space be un- questionably so very desirable in a warm climate. " I should think about the same proportion of the inhabit- ants keep carriages here as in France. But the ordinary coaches of the stands in New York are quite as good, and often far better than those voiturcs de rrmise that one usually gets by the day in Paris. There is even a still better class of coaches to be ordered by the day, or hour, from the stables, which are much used by the inhabitants. The equi- pages of this city, with the exception of liveries, and heraldic blazonries, are very much like those of your own mighty capital. When I first landed, coming as I did from England, I thought the coaches so exceedingly light as to be mean ; but, too experienced a traveller to be precipitate, I waited for the old impressions to lose a little of their influence, be- fore an opinion was formed, and in a short time I came to see their beauties. Cadwallader told me that when he first arrived in England, he was amazed at the clumsiness of the English vehicles, but that time, by rendering them familiar, soon changed his opinion. We went together lately to ex- amine a coach from London, which its owner had abandoned, either in distaste, or because he found it unsuited to the country, and really it was calculated to renew all the original opinions of my friend. I have heard of an American, who carried to England one of the light vehicles of his country, and after it had arrived, he was positively ashamed to exhibit it among its ponderous rivals. In this manner do we all be- come the subjects of a capricious and varying taste, that is miserably dependent on habit; a fact simple as it is, which might teach moderation and modesty to all young travellers, and rather less dogmatism than is commonly found among some that are older."* During a principal part of the Revolutionary war, the city of New York was in possession, and the head quarters, of the British. Boston was evacuated by the British, March 17th, 1776. About the middle of April following, General Washington, expecting an attempt on the part of the British, to take possession of the city of New York, himself fixed his * Notices of the Americans. FAMILY TOURIST. 235 NEW YORK. head quarters in that city, where the greater part of his troops rendezvoused. A portion of the American army, amounting to about 15,000, were posted on Long Island, across East river, at the distance of about a mile from the city. On the I2th of August, the British General Howe, landed his troops, estimated at about 24,000 men, at Graves- end Bay to the right of the Narrows. On the 26th, an en- gfigement between these two armies occurred, in which the Americans were routed. In consequence of this defeat, and the American troops being destitute of shelter from severe and heavy rains, and at the same time being greatly fatigued and dispirited. Gen. Washington determined to withdraw his troops from the island. "This retreat," says Dr. Holmes, " was to have commenced at eight o'clock on the night of the 28th ; but a strong north-east wind and a rapid tide caused a delay of several hours. In this extremity, Heaven remarkably favored the fugitive army. A south-west wind springing up at eleven, essentially facilitated its passage from the island to the city ; and a thick fog hanging over Long Island from about two in the morning, concealed its move- ments from the enemy, who were so near that the sound of their pickaxes and shovels was heard. In about half an hour after, the fog cleared away, and the enemy were seen taking possession of the American lines. General Washington, as far as possible, inspected every thing. From the commence- ment of the action on the morning of the 26th, until the troops were safely across East river, he never closed his eyes, and was almost constantly on horseback. His wisdom and vigilance, with the interposing favor of Divine Providence, saved the army from destruction."* Immediately after the victory on Long Island, the British made dispositions to attack New York. Under an appre- hension that the place was indefensible, it was decided in a council of general officers that it was inexpedient to attempt to hold possession. Accordingly, the American army was withdrawn with an inconsiderable loss of men ; but all the heavy artillery, and a large portion of the baggage, provision, and military stores, was unavoidably abandoned. On the 15th of September the British troops entered and took pos- session of the city. ** Within a few days, a fire broke out at a place where a * Holmes's Annals. 236 FAMILY TOURIST. party of British sailors had been frolicking, whicli spread with unexampled fury. The buildings were then chiefly cov- ered with shingles ; the weather had been extremely dry for some days; a strong southerly wind prevailed at the time; and it broke out about one o'clock in the morning, at a sea- son when the town was almost empty of its citizens — and the engines and pumps were chiefly out of order. About one thousand buildings were destroyed, and but for the ex- ertions of the sailors and soldiers with engines from the fleet, the whole city must have been reduced to ashes." The British continued to hold pos.^ession of the city until the 25th of Novcnd)or, 1783, on which day they evacuated it; and on the same dny, the Anicrican army entered. On the following Sabbath, divine service was performed at King's Chapel, by the Rev. Ur. Rogers, who delivered a well adapt- ed discourse to a thronged and deeply aflfected assembly. The fireworks on the evening of the next Tuesday, probably exceeded any exhibition of the kind, ever witnessed in Amer- ica. The last and not the least interesting spectacle was seen in passing down the harbor, — the British fleet, lying peaceably at anchor above Sandy Hook, ready to transport the troops to their own shores. BROOKLYN. This city is situated on the west end of Long Island, oppo- site the south part of the city of New York, and probably de- serves to hold a second rank, in refereoee to population and commercial importance, with any in the state. There are four ferries established between New York and Brooklyn, well provided with numerous and commodious steamboats, which render the communication as easy as it would be by bridges. The average width of the river, at the three upper ferries, is about 700 yards ; but at the lower or South ferry it is upwards of 1300 yards ; the time of crossing is from four to five minutes. The fine water, pure air, and pleasant pros- pects of Brooklyn, render it a favorite place of residence to persons doing business in New York, and it is nearer to the business centres of the latter than residences in the upper part of the city. %, FAMILY TOURIST. 237 BROOKLYN. Some idea may be formed of the rapid growth of Brooklyn from the fact, that in 1810 the population was only about 4,000 ; since which time it has more than doubled every ten years, and now numbers nearly 100,000. The city, as char- tered, has the same extent as the original township, which is six miles long, and four miles wide at its utmost breadth ; and all this great extent has been laid out into streets, the corner-posts of which have been permanently fixed. There are probably a greater number of churches here, of various denominations, than in any other city in the Union of the same size. There are also several elegant edifices occu- pied by banking and insurance companies. The city has a number of literary and scientific institutions of a high order : among the principal of which are Brooklyn Institute, formed by the union of the " Apprentices' Library Association," the "Brooklyn Lyceum," and the "City Libra- ry ;" the Lyceum of Natural History ; the Hamilton Literary and the P'ranklin Literary Associations ; and several acade- mies and female seminaries of distinction. There are also a number of public schools, well taught and attended. A navy-yard, of about forty acres, is located at the Walla- bout, and well provided with all necessaries for constructing the largest class of vessels. Connected with the yard is a Naval Lyceum, composed of officers of the U. S. navy, and possessing a large library and museum. A dry dock is in progress here, which will cost an immense sum, but probably be of great utility when completed. About 200 acres of land, delightfully situated in the south part of the city, has been inclosed as a place of repose for the dead. It is called the Greenwood Cemetery, and comprises every variety of surface, capable of being beautified to suit the tastes of the numerous individuals who have purchased lots therein. Already it affords grateful displays of romantic shrubbery, annuals, and evergreens, and contains several splendid monuments. The harbor is extensive, and its depth sufficient to allow the largest vessels to come to its wharves. The Atlantic dock, at the southern extremity of the city, is a stupendous work, and a highly creditable evidence of the enterprise and wealth of its proprietors. The Long Island railroad commences at the South ferry, and extends 100 miles to Greenport, forming part of a chain of daily communication with Boston. 238 FAMILY TOURIST. ALBANY. Albany is situated on the west bank of the Hudson, near the head of tide water, 100 miles from New York. It is the seat of government of the State of New York, and in point of wealth, population, trade, and resources, the second city in the State, It is a current opinion, that during his voyage in 1G09, Hudson himself ascended the river as far as the present site of Albany. This is incorrect. The navigator himself pro- ceeded to a point, a little above where the city of Hudson* now stands, whence he despatched a boat to explore the river still higher up. The boat reached the present site of Albany, and returned. In 1(314, a fort and trading house were erected near the spot on which Albany now stands, which was called Fort Orange. The precise location of these appears to have been a small island in the river, about half a mile below the present site. It is probable that a village was commenced soon af- terwards, on the present site of the city. The Indian name of the spot was Skincctadca. The village was at first called by the Dutch Bevcrwych ; then Fort Orange, and afterwards WUlinmstadt. It received the name of Albany, at the time of the English conquest in 1664, in honor of the Duke of York and Albany, brother of Charles II. Next to James- * While the ship lay at anchor, it is related, that Hudson and his crew, for the purpose of making an expenment on the temper of the In- dians, attempted to make a number of their principal men drunk. But, though they " were all merry," as tlie journalist expresses it, only one of them appears to have been completely intoxicated. This phenome- non excited great surprise and alarm among his companions. They knew not what to make of it. And it was not until the next day, when he had completely recovered, that they became composed and satisfied. This, so far as we know, is the first instance of intoxication by ardent spirits among the Indians, on this part of the American continent. It is very remarkable, that among the Six Nations, there is a tradition still very distinctly preserved, of a scene of intoxication, which occurred with a company of the natives, when the first ship arrived. Happy for these sons of the forest, and their " red brethren " in all the land, so far as this maddening poison is concerned, had Columbus never made his otherwise fortunate and glorious discovery of these western shores. Well may the Indians of America ask, as asked an Indian of Levasseur in one of the Western States — •' Have the white people any God ? Will his vengeance always sleep 1 Will he never take pity on poor Indians.'' " :.i • -^ f^ FAMILY TOURIST. 241 town, in Virginia, it is the oldest settlement in the United States. The Indian name of the North, or Hudson river, was Cahohdtatea. Albany, like New York, was settled by the Dutch, and for many years afterwards the inhabitants were almost with- out exception descendants from the original settlers. The houses were almost all built in the Dutch manner ; standing endwise upon the street, with high, sharp roofs, small windows, and low ceilings. The appearance 6f these houses was or- dinary, dull, and disagreeable. The first house ever erected in the place was standing a few years since, and is perhaps to this day. It was built of bricks, which were imported from Holland. Every house almost had its stoop, or porch, in which the Dutch gentlemen delighted to pass their leisure hours with a pipe in their mouths. This custom is noticed by Professor Kalm in his travels, in 1749. " The street doors," says he, " are generally in the middle of the houses, and on both sides are seats, in which, during fair weather, the people sit and spend almost the whole day, especially on those which are in the shadow of their houses. In the evening these seats are covered with people of both sexes ; but this is rather troublesome, as those who pass by are obliged to greet every body, unless they shock the politeness of the inhabitants of this town." A great change, however, has taken place in Albany. The population has essentially altered. From its being Dutch in its inhabitants — its buildings — its manners and customs, like New York, the general aspect of the place has changed. One sees, here and there, yet standing, the Dutch tenement, on each side of which perhaps is a modern mansion, with its lofty roof — its large windows — its granite, or marble ex- terior — its pillars, at cetera, — all in contrast with the humble, singular, and unsightly tabernacle of the sojourners from Holland, or their descendants. The population which has come in are in part from New England, a shrewd, money- making generation — whom the Dutch citizens regarded for years with no small jealousy ; but with whom at length, an- cient prejudices having given way, they are on terms of good neighborhood, and even cordiality. The distinctions in so- ciety in this place, some twenty or thirty years since, were, perhaps, as great as in any place on the continent ; but the increase of New England people, and of others, has had a 16 242 FAMILY TOURIST. tendency to obliterate in a measure those strong and well-de- fined lines, which were formerly drawn by the wealthy and ancient Dutch families, and which were kept visible and dis- tinctive as long as their influence availed. The streets of Albany are, in a loose sense, parallel and right angled to the river. Market, Pearl, and State streets, the principal ones, are straight and handsome. The two former are parallel to the river ; the latter meets them at right angles. The streets are now paved, and the travelling easy ; but years since, owing to the clayey character of the soil, they were so encumbered with mud, that in wet seasons, ^it was not uncommon for wagons to sink so deep as to need the power of Hercules to extricate them. The first appearance of the city is not prepossessing to a stranger ; but there is considerable taste displayed in the con- struction of many of the buildings, both public and private. The Capitol, or State House, occupies a commanding posi- tion, being situated at the head of State street, which rises in a straight course from the river to the brow of a hill 220 feet. It is a stone edifice, 115 feet in length, and 90 in width, and 50 feet high. In the front is an Ionic portico, with columns 33 feet in height. The public square, ad- joining the capitol, is adorned with beautiful walks and avenues. From this point there is a beautiful view of Green- bush, on the opposite side of the river, famous for many years as a cantonment. During the late war it presented a bustling appearance, but the lines of barracks, which were capable of accommodating 10,000 men, are deserted and solitary. The Academy, long a distinguished and well endowed in- stitution, is just north of the capitol. It is the handsomest building in the city. It is of stone, three stories high, and presents a front of 90 feet. The State Hall, the Albany Farmers' and Mechanics' Bank, and the Museum, are also splendid edifices. The collection of the latter is one of the best in the United States. The position of Albany for commerce is exceedingly eli- gible, being situated near the head of sloop navigation in the Hudson river. The opening of the Erie canal has given a great impulse to Albany. It has become a vast thoroughfare FAMILY TOURIST. 243 for travellers of every description, whether in pursuit of for- tune or pleasure, bound north and west. Here centres, preparatory to being shipped for New York, an immense amount of productions from the fertile regions of the West. It must long continue to enjoy its present advantages, and these will probably proportionally increase with the growing enterprise of the western world. At Albany, the canal terminates in a basin. This is formed by an artificial pier 80 feet in width, and 4,300 feet long ; it is connected with the shore by draw bridges, and covered with stores, in which immense quantities of lumber and merchandise are deposited. The basin contains a sur- face of 32 acres. The completion of the canal, so far as to connect its waters with those of the Hudson, was a joyful day for this city. The marriage ceremony, if we may so term it, took place on the 23d of October, 1823. The lock which forms the communication between the canal and basin was on this day, for the first time opened ; and the waters of the West, with those of the river from the north and south, for the first time, embraced each other. The transition of the first boats was celebrated with some ceremony. " Large committees from New York, and from other places on the canal route, attended at Albany. The New York committee was headed by Mr. William Bayard. Mr. James was the chairman of the Albany committee of citizens. These gentlemen had on all occasions given the full weight of their long established and respectable characters in favor of the execution of the canals. " The pencil could not do justice to the scene presented on the fine autumnal morning, when the Albany lock was first opened. Numerous steamboats and river vessels, splendidly dressed, decorated the beautiful amphitheatre formed by the hills, which border the valley of the Hudson, at this place : the river winding its bright stream far from the north, and losing itself in the distance at the south : — the islands it embraced ; — the woods variegated by the ap- proach of winter, a beauty peculiar to our climate ; — the wreathed arches, and other embellishments, which had been erected for the occasion, were all objects of admiration. A line of canal boats, with colors flying, bands of music, and crowded with people, were seen coming from the north, and seemed to glide over the level grounds, which hid the waters 244 FAMILY TOURIST. of the canal for some distance, as if they were moved by en- chantment. *' The first boat which entered the lock was the De Witt Clinton^ having on board Governor Yates, the mayor and corporation of Albany, the canal commissioners and engi- neers, the committees, and other citizens. Several other boats succeeded. One (not the least interesting object in the scene) was filled with ladies. The cap-stone of the lock was laid with masonic ceremonies, by the fraternity, who ap- peared in great numbers and grand costume. " The waters of the west, and of the ocean, were then mingled by Dr. Mitchell, who pronounced an epithalamium •upon the union of the river and the lakes, after which the lock gates were opened, and the De Witt Clinton majestically sunk upon the bosom of the Pludson. ** She was then towed by a long line of barges, past the steamboats and other vessels, to a wharf at the upper end of the city, where those gentlemen, who were embarked on board the canal boats, landed and joined a military and civic procession, which was conducted to a large stage, fancifully decorated, erected in front of the capitol. Here the canal commissioners received a congratulatory address from Charles E. Dudley, Esquire, Mayor of Albany, which was answered by Mr. Clinton, as president of the board of commissioners. The Albany committee was addressed by Mr. Bayard, which was returned by Mr. James, and the day concluded with a banquet, at which it might be said, with as much propriety as it could be said in relation to any other festive board, that there was * the feast of reason and the flow of soul.' "* HUDSON. This city is very properly named after the navigator of 1609, as a little above this spot, or opposite to it, Hudson moored his ship, and lay at anchor while a boat was despatch- ed to explore the river higher up. The city is situated on the east side of the river, 27 miles •Colden's Memoir. FAMILY TOURIST. 245 below Albany. It stands on a plain rising from the river, where the banks are 50 or 60 feet in height ; this plain ter- minates in the east at the foot of an elevation which rises several hundred feet, overlooking the river and country for many miles around. Hudson i« one of the most important places on the river, and is at present increasing in business and wealth ; it maintains the third rank in the State for manufactures, and is regularly built with streets at right an- gles. From a beautiful promenade in the upper part of the town, a delightful prospect is presented of the river and the Catskill mountains ; the opposite bank of the Hudson is charmingly diversified with villages, farms, and country seats. For several years after its settlement, it was in a very flourishing state ; but subsequently its prosperity was checked. An impulse has recently been given to it, by means of several large and valuable manufactories, situated on two creeks, the one of which, Claverack creek, flows on the eastern side of the town — and Abram's, or Factory creek, on the northern side. The whale fishery has lately been attempted with great spirit, and several ships have returned, after highly success- ful voyages, to reward the owners for their enterprise and adventure. The population of Hudson in 1840 was 5,670. TROY. The city of Troy is situated on the east side of the Hud- son at the termination of its tide and navigable waters, one hundred and sixty-six miles north of the city of New York, and six north of Albany. It was incorporated in 1806. That part of the city limits which is most populous, and now nearly covered with buildings, is situate on a nearly level plain, which rises abruptly from the river to the height of about 25 feet, extending about one and a half miles in length along the river, and about half a mile back. Dock and River streets meander with the river ; the other seven north and south streets are straight, and 60 feet broad, with a like number of narrow streets, called alleys, passing through the middle of each block. These are crossed with otheT streets at right angles extending from the river easterly 246 FAMILY TOURIST. River street is the great street of business. The large stores or warehouses, built on the west side, are mostly of brick or stone, and, being built on the bank or rise from the river, are from four and a half to six and a half stories high on the side joining the wharfs, and two and a half to three and a half stories on the East or River street side. On the east side of River street, as also in First, Second, Third, and Fourth streets, the houses and stores are mostly handsome modern brick buildings. Among the public buildings en- titled to particular notice, are St. Paul's Church and the City Hall, or County Court House ; the latter built in imitation of the ancient temple of Theseus in Greece, and, like its prototype, entirely of marble, excepting the covering of the roof which is of copper, and excepting also that this has pil- lars in front. It is 103 feet long and GO broad, with side walls 50 feet in height, and for elegance, simplicity and du- rability, is strikingly appropriate. St. Paul's Church is built in Gothic style, of bushham- mered, dark colored, secondary, limestone, 113 feet long, 70 broad, with side walls 42 feet high, presenting the appear- ance of great strength, durability, and fine finish. Troy is distinguished for its literary institutions. Here is situated a Female Seminary, intended for young ladies, in all the higher branches of education, which for a series of years was under the care of Mrs. Emma Willard, a lady of fine understanding and attainments, and who to these qualifications unites great energy and perseverance. To her untiring labors and felicitous management, this seminary is indebted for its great reputation. It has been patronized by gentlemen from perhaps every State in the Union, and here numerous young ladies have enjoyed advantages not, perhaps, to be found at any similar institution in the country. Although Mrs. Willard has (some time since) relinquished the charge of this seminary, it still continues to maintain its high reputation. This city is also the location of the Rensselaer school — named after the Hon. Stephen Van Rensselaer of Albany, through whose liberality it was munificently endowed. It is designed to instruct young men in all the modern arts and sciences, and more especially chemistry and geology as bear- ing upon the arts and agriculture. The inhabitants of Troy were principally from New Eng- land. If the original settlers were not distinguished for their FAMILY TOURIST. 247 SCHENECTADY. literary character, they have ever sustained a high reputation for their industry and success in business. Many are now very wealthy. Society has rapidly advanced. Great liberality is exhibited in the way of public improvements. Troy is a beautiful spot, and considering its thrift, its industry, its en- ergetic and enterprising population, and its yearly improving state of society, it is among the most desirable residences in the State of New York. The Erie canal here enters the Hudson, giving to the place many of the advantages which Albany enjoys, in con- sequence of that magnificent channel of intercourse with the West. Immense quantities of lumber, flour, grain, wool, beef, pork, &lg. besides manufactured goods, are shipped to New York, New Jersey, and Boston. Steamboats daily as- cend and descend the Hudson, from this place, while a great number of passage, or *' packet" boats, and freight, or " line" boats, as they are called, are continually arriving and de- parting. The manufacture of flour here amounts to one or two hundred thousand barrels. Its other manufacturing establishments are numerous, and on an extensive scale. SCHENECTADY. The name of this city is said to be of Indian origin, being derived from Schenectadea, or Pine-Wood Landing, a phrase used by the Indians to designate a considerable extent of country, of which the present city of Schenectady forms a part. The name of the spot on which Schenectady stands was Ohnowalagdntlc. The city is pleasantly situated, on a fertile plain on the south-east side of the Mohawk river. It is fifteen and a half miles north-west from Albany. It is bounded, on the east and south-east, by a range of hills of moderate elevation, and of rather a light sandy soil. On the west of the city and the Mohawk, the country is spread out into considerable ex- tensive flats, possessing a soil of great fertility, and under a high state of cultivation. The city is laid out with great regularity ; most of its streets intersecting each other at right angles, and dividing the area into squares. 248 FAMILY TOURIST. SCHENECTADY. The houses are, for the most part, constructed of brick ; and though, owing to the great intervals of time at which some of them were built, there has been so great a mixture of the ancient and modern styles of architecture as greatly to impair the beauty of the city, reviewed as a whole, yet many private houses have an air of much comfort and ele- gance. The ancient edifices are, however, yearly being dis- placed, and their sites are occupying with buildings in more modern style. Union College, for its importance as a literary institution, deserves particular notice. It is situated east of the com- pact part of the city, on an eminence which affords, particu- larly on the west, an extensive and delightful prospect. The city, flanked, on the north-east and south-west, by luxuriant meadows and pasture land — beyond these, on the west, the beautiful Mohawk, gliding calmly along — farther on, the rich and variegated flats, terminated by a range of regular and not very high hills — form, when beheld from the College, one of the most charming landscapes in nature. Union College was incorporated in 1794, and was so named from the union of several religious denominations in its establishment. The plan of the College edifices, as drawn by M. Ramee, a celebrated French architect, for its beauty and adaptation to the purposes for which it was designed, is highly credita- ble to the taste and judgment of that artist. Only two of the eight large edifices of the original plan, have yet been com- pleted. These afford rooms for the accommodation of about 200 students, and tenements for the families of the President and Professors. The institution possesses a library, cabinet, philosophical and chemical apparatus, &,c. Besides a president, it has 10 professors; about 2,300 alumni, of whom 350 have been ministers of the gospel. The College enjoys a high reputa- tion under its distinguished president, Dr. Nott. In the libra- ries are about 13,500 volumes, of which that of the College contains about 5,000. The Erie Canal crosses the north part near the Hudson, but on account of the circuitous route, and the numerous locks between this place and Albany, much of the navigation stops here. Packet boats run hence in numerous lines to Utica, and on as far as Buffalo, and many still extend to FAMILY TOURIST. 249 SCHENECTADY. Albany. Thus a vast amount of merchandise annually passes through the city. The Albany and Schenectady rail road greatly facilitates the communication with the Hudson ; and this with the Saratoga and Schenectady rail road, have rendered Schenectady the great thoroughfare for travellers to the springs. Numerous lines of stage coaches also pass through this city. Recently a rail road connecting this city with Utica, has been constructed along the valley of the Mo- hawk. The passage, 80 miles, is performed in four hours. Schenectady is more interesting from the associations of its early history, than for its present magnitude, or im- portance, as a city. It is one of the oldest Dutch settlements in the State of New York. Its early inhabitants suffered all the miseries and hardships that can be supposed to have at- tended upon their exposed situation and slender means of subsistence. Not powerful by their number ; at a consider- able distance from their civilized countrymen; with scarce- ly any thing for their defence ; they were almost continually, during many years, falling victims to savage treachery and barbarity. '* In the year 1690, Schenectady was destroyed by a party of Canadian French and Indians, most of them Mohawks, whom the French had seduced from their attachment to the English. This party consisted of three hundred men, and was one of three, sent by Count De Frontenac to distress the British colonies. The other two proceeded against New Hampshire, and the Province of Maine, where one of them, under Hertel De Rouville, destroyed Dover. The body, which attacked Schenectady, was commanded, ac- cording to Golden, by Monsieur De Ourville ; according to Dr. Trumbull, (for which he quoted the letters of Colonel Schuyler and Captain Bull,) by D'Aillebout, DeMantel, and Le Moyn. The Mohawks were, or had lately been inhabi- tants of Caghnawaga, a village up the river, about 25 miles from Schenectady. Of course, they had been familiarly ac- quainted with the town, and often entertained by its citizens. The French were chiefly what are called Indian traders. They arrived in the neighborhood on the 8th of February, when the season was so cold, and the snow so deep, that it was thought to be impossible for an enemy to approach. The French commander sent some of the Indians, as spies, to discover the state of the town. These mea were seen 250 FAMILY TOURIST. lurking in the neighborhood ; and this fact was publicly an- nounced ; but the people were so satisfied of their safety, that they paid no regard to the information. Not even a sentinel was employed to watch the advent of the supposed enemy. This negligence was fatal to them. The French afterwards confessed, that they were so reduced by cold, hunger, and fatigue, as to have formed the resolution to sur- render themselves prisoners, if they found the least prepara- tion for resistance. But, learning from the spies, that the town was perfectly defenceless and secure, they marched into its centre the following evening, raised the war-whoop ; and, having divided themselves into little parties, broke open the houses, set them on fire, and butchered every man, woman and child, on whom they could* lay hands. No tongue, says Colonel Schuyler, can express the cruelties which they committed. Some of the inhabitants sought for safety in flight ; and ran naked through the snow into the fields and forests. Others endeavored to hide themselves within the town from the fiiry of their murderers ; but were forced from their retreats by the flames, and either killed or carried into captivity. Sixty-three were butchered in this in- human manner. Twenty-seven more were made prisoners. Of those who escaped, twenty-five lost their limbs by the severity of the cold."* UTICA. The city of Utica stands on the south side of the Mo- hawk, in the north-east part of the charming valley, which is made by the river Mohawk, the Oriskany and the Sa- daghqueda or Saquoit (saw-qua) creeks. It was formerly called Old Fort Schuyler, from a military post of that name established here, to complete the chain of communication between Fort Stanwix (from which it was distant about six- teen miles north-east) and Schenectady. This tract of country, now so delightful and so exuber- ant, does not appear to have attracted the attention of the * Dwight's Travels, vol. 2. % 4 FAMILY TOURIST. 253 Dutch sufficiently to form a settlement in it, since it is well known to have remained an unbroken wilderness, till the year 1784, when Hugh White, an emigrant from Middle- town, in Connecticut, with the spirit and courage which had a few years before characterized Boon, of Kentucky, first planted himself in the neighborhood. He entered a log habitation at the present village of Whitesborough, about four miles west of Old Fort Schuyler, and in what was then known as the county of Montgomery, embracing the whole region west of the county of Albany. In two or three years after, the towns of Clinton and New Hartford were begun to be settled* by emigrants from the eastern States ; and, in the year 1789, John Post, Uriah Alverson, Stephen Potter, and others, formed a settlement at Old Fort Scliuyler, the prosperity of which was soon deter- mined by laying out a road through the extensive wilder- ness from Canandaigua, " The Chosen Place,'''' (now Can- andaigua,) to the Mohawk. This road was opened in 1796, and intersected the river near Old Fort Schuyler. The settlement now increased rapidly, and two years afterwards it was incorporated as a village, with its present name, Utica. For many years the country around went by the name of Whitestown, after Mr. White, and to this day, by the aged, it is spoken of only as the " Whitestown Country." An incident occurred in the family of Mr. White, soon after his settlement at the West, which is still related by the frimily, and which in the original form was told to Colonel McKenney, by a son of Mr. White, and by the former has been sketched in his *' Tour to the Lakes." "One evening, while Mr. White, the father, was absent, and only Mrs. White, her little son and daughter, were at home, they were alarmed on seeing in the woods three In- dians coming in the direction of the house ; but on per- ceiving one of them to be Shenandoah, who was known to them, their fears were in a measure quieted. On arriving, they addressed the mother, and said, * We have called to ask you for your little daughter to take home with us to- night ! ' The request startled Mrs. White — she knew not what answer to give ; for it was part of the business of Mr. White on all occasions, to conciliate the Indians, and by all the means in his power. To refuse the request, she feared would excite them ; and to grant it, would be to jeopard the 254 FAMILY TOURIST. liberty, if not the life of her child ! At the critical moment, and while the Indians were waiting for a reply, the father came in. The request was repeated to him, when he instant- ly/ granted it. The mother was overwhelmed with surprise, and felt all the horrors that may he conceived under such circumstances. But she was silent. The little girl was brought out, and delivered over to these Indiaiis, who lived some ten or twelve miles distant. They took her by the hand and led her through the woods, slopping only long enough to say, ' when the sun is so high in the morning,' pointing to a certain elevation in the heavens, * we will re- turn her.' Mrs. White had heard that Indians were base and treacherous; and considered her little daughter as having been given in sacrifice to save the family. Mr. W. explained his reason for yielding up the child ; but the mother, still anxious and doubting, gave way only to grief The night was long and sleepless. The day at last broke, but upon eyes that had not been closed, and brought with it increased anxiety. The sun rose — and the anxiety of the family rose with it. At last he reached the point in the heavens, which had been referred to for the period of the child's return, when the anxious and afflicted mother ex- claimed, — * there they are!' Skenandoah and his com- panions, faithful to their promise, were on the .spot, and the little girl, gay and smiling, and dressed out in all the finery of which an Indian lodge could boast, delighted both with her visit and her trinkets. " You may feel anxious to know," observes Colonel Mc- Kenney, addressing himself to a friend, " what was the ob- ject of those Indians, in this extraordinary movement. I will tell you. Mr. White had gone among them, and settled in their country. He had promised to be friendly — he had smoked the pipe of peace with these people, a most sacred and binding obligation with them, and which they never vio- late. But so had others, and these promises and that pledge in them had been alike disregarded. There was no founda- tion left for their confidence ; * the white man,' said they, * is deceitful.' Their object was to test the confidence of this family in them ; and this was their method of deciding the question. * Give us your child ! ' If; as they doubtless reasoned among themselves, they trust us with their daughter, they will prove that they have confidence in us : and we will then know how to trust them. If they refuse our request. FAMILY TOURIST. then we shall know that they doubt our sincerity, and this will convince ns that tliey have none themselves. Mr. White fortunately understood the Indian character ; but had not had their object explained to him. This was a secret with the Indians. But he knew that their confidence, when once es- tablished, is ever after hard to be shaken ; and concluded, as a rational man would, that to show confidence in them, was the most direct way to secure it for liimself But the hazard was great; the trial was severe ; and not unlike the demand of old, made by the Master of l^ife to Abraham, to * take his son, his only son Isaac, and offer him,' &c. " From that hour the family experienced nothing but a succession of the kindest offices on the part of the Indians, and one uninterrupted scene of friendship ; and so united did the Indians become in all the interests of the family, that they stood always ready to promote them ; and as to security , they never felt more secure than when surrounded by these people. Skenandoah, in particular, continued intimate with this family to his death. Mr. White died in 1812, at the age of 80 years. He was a venerable man, respected and be- loved by all who knew him."* From the period when Utica was incorporated, until the completion of the middle section of the Erie canal, its aug- mentation, though substantial, was not remarkably rapid. In 1813, it numbered only 1,700 inhabitants. It was, however, the centre of intercourse between the lakes and the cities of Schenectady and Albany ; the Mohawk river affording a tol- erable comnmnication with the former place. The great western turnpike from Albany to Buffalo, also offered great facilities for inland commerce, and Utica became the deposit of products of the northern, southern, and western back country. But when the great channel of intercourse between lake Erie and the Hudson river approached its con- summation, the business, wealth, and population of the place rapidly increased, and it is now become one of the most flourishing and substantial towns in the State. In the year 1793, the first mail west of Canajoharie was transported, by Simeon Pool, from that place to Whitestown, in pursuance of an arrangement of the Post Office Depart- McKenney's Tour to the Lakes. ^. 256 FAMILY TOUfllST. ment, that the inhabitants alorjg tlie route should convey it at their own expense. Tlie distance was fifty miles, and twenty-eight hours were allowed the post-rider to complete it. This contract soon passed into the hands of the late Jason Parker, Esq., a man of much enterprise, who was the founder of the great lines of staijes?, which now traverse this country in every direction. To iiis activity, Utica is largely indebted for her extraordinary facilities of intercourse with jBvery part of the State. At the time of his decease, in 1830, tliere were twelve weekly, semi-weekly, or daily lines run- ning southerly and northerly. One hundred and eight regu- lar stages left the place, and about sixty mails arrived and departed, weekly. In addition to these conveyances by land for the mails and travellers, there are several lines of packet boats on the Erie canal, which leave Utica daily for Schenec- tady ; and also several for Buffalo, and intermediate places on the route. These boats arc commodious and pleasant, accommodating comfortably from thirty-five to forty pas- sengers.* The canal level is 425 feet above the tide water at Albany. The central street of the city is distant from Albany, by post-road, 96 miles; by the canal, 110 miles : from Buffalo, on lake Erie, by the post-road, 202 miles ; by the canal, 253 : from Cswego, the southern port of lake Ontario, with which it communicates by the Erie and Oswego and Erie canals, 84 miles. The city is nearly the geographical centre of the State. In 1794, the place contained nineteen fami- lies : in 1830, the return from the census was 8,500. Its present population is estimated at 14,000. The city charter was granted by the legislature of the State, February, 1832. The charter is remarkable for being the first ever granted in the State, in which the licensing of shops for retailing ardent spirit is expressly prohibited. The city is regularly built; its streets are broad, straight and commodious, and the build- ings generally handsome. Few places have incrcised with greater rapidity ; or for its size, or age, contains more wealth, or more institutions which have for their object the relief of the poor, the improvehient of morals, or the cultivation of literature and science. A vast quantity of I . ^ ^ * Encyclopedia Americana. FAMILY TOURIST. 257 ROCHESTER. cotton and woollen goods are yearly manufactured in the immediate vicinity. The canal commerce of Utica alone is extensive, while the tolls paid on clearances received at and passing Utica are annually about one million of dollars. The principal manufacturing district is the beautiful valley of the Sadaghqueda — a territory of ten miles square, having Utica for its north-east corner, and the river Mohawk for its north- erly line. Here, on the stream from which the valley takes its name, are several large cotton manufacturing establish- ments, which produce annually cloth of more than half a million of dollars in value. Connected with these factories are others of various kinds. At Utica is located a Lunatic Asylum, which is a State institution. It was opened for the admission of patients in 1843, and is under the control of a board of managers, ap- pointed by the Senate, upon the nomination of the Governor. It is among the best constructed institutions for the insane in the world ; and is capable of accommodating 500 patients, enabling them to be divided into 12 classes or families for each sex, exclusive of a large chapel, shops, school-rooms, and hospitals. Attached to the asylum is an excellent farm, of about 140 acres, and perhaps no similar institution has ex- hibited more beneficial results of its management. ROCHESTER. In the progress of our travels, we have arrived at a spot, which, had we visited it in 1810 — thirty- eight years since — not a single house should we have found standing upon it. The Indian may have encamped upon the ground, and pos- sibly may have erected his temporary wigwam there, beside the flowing waters of the Genesee, to listen to the " eternal bass" of the neighboring cataract ; but the white man had not reared his more substantial habitation, or begun those improvements, which his skill and industry and perseverance have since so magnificently wrought. Or, had we delayed our visit till 1812, we should have found " but two frame dwellings here, small and rude enough, — one of which yet remains to remind us of the change since the period when the occupants of those shantees had to contend against wild 17 258 FAMILY TOURIST. ROCHESTKR. beasts,* for the scanty crop of corn first raised in a tract now included in the heart of the city." But, selecting some ap- propriate elevation, cast your eyes abroad, and here you see a city has risen, as it were, in a night, embracing a popula- tion of 0,000 souls ; and their number is increasing every day, — while habitations, stores, shops, manufactories, by hundreds, are annually erecting, to accommodate the " im- migrants" to this Western Metropolis. *In a valuable and highly interesting work, " Sketches of Rochester — by Henry O'Reilly," — to which work the author in this place ac- knowledges his indebtedness for whatever may be interesting in rela- tion to this city — tlie following sketches of a tlirilling adventure is given in illustration of the remark quot<>d above : Two frame buildings had been erected, one of which was occupied by Isaac Stone, the other by Knos Stone. '' It was in tlie fall of 1811, that Knos Stone had a patch of corn, about six acres in extent. His corn patch was on the east and south sides of his little dwelling, which stood near the bank of tlie river, beside the fording place. Provisions were exceedingly scarce, and not to be had at any price, except to prevent starvation. Mr. Stone looked upon his cornfield with anxiety, knowing well tlie extent of his dependence upon it for tlie then approaching winter. Towards the ripening of the precious crop, he found tnat niucn would be lost from the depredations of the wild beasts ; and at length he began to tremble for tlie whole field, when he found that a she boar had commenced devastations upon it, destroy- ing far more than she devoured. For a while he kept her at bay by leaving out his dog ; till, at length, the emboldened creature would chase the dog even to the door step. Finding that something must be done ; that he could not hope for half a crop, if such depredations con- tinued ; and that he could not sleep with such an animal prowling about his dwelling ; Mr. Stone turned out with a boy and a trusty gun, to at- tack the intruder, about two o'clock, one morning. The bear then took refuge in a tree, whence she was soon dislodged by the smoke of a fire kindled beneath. She fell near Mr. Stone, and after a short contest with him and his boy and dog, fled to anotlier tree. She was dislodged from this and three other trees by kindling fires beneath — when, more pow- der being obtained from a neighbor, (the first two shots proving inoliect- ual, and exhausting all his own powder,) Mr. Stone had the satisfaction of seeing his annoyer disabled to such a degree as to fall from the tree. But, though fallen, the bear was unconquered still ; and, when no longer able to stand, the ferocious brute fought upon her haunches, like that redoubted soldier, who, * When his legs were cutted ofT, did fight upon the stumps ! ' She kept the dog at bay, and parried the blows of her assailants, with a degree of skill not unworthy of a professional boxer. But her shaggy hide soon became the trophy of him whose cornfield she had measurably devastated." FAMILY TOURIST. 259 ROCHESTER. In 1810, Rochester was a desert. " The first allotments for a village were made in 1812 ; when Nathaniel Rochester, Charles H. Carroll, and William Fitzhurgh, surveyed the * Hundred Acre Tract ' for settlement, under the name of * Rochester.' The above tract, according to the work al- ready cited, was land which two men by the name of Phelps and Gorham deeded to Indian Allen in 1790, on considera- tion of having a mill erected to accommodate the few settlers in the surrounding country. It was part of a larger tract of twelve by twenty-four miles, on the west side of the Genesee, which Phelps and Gorham had previously obtained from the Indians for the purpose of a mill-yard ! It had passed from Allen into the possession of Sir William Pultney, from the agent of whose estate (Charles Williamson) it was purchased in 1812, for $ 17 50 per acre, by the persons who thus made arrangements for founding a village upon it." " Two other tracts adjoining the mill-lot, and laid out also in 1812, together with a tract laid out in 1816, were in- cluded with the primitive settlement in the boundaries as- signed to Rochester by the law which created it a village in 1817. Some of the land on the east side of the Genesee, in Rochester, (the Hundred Acre Tract being on the west side,) was sold by Phelps and Gorham, in 1790, for eighteen pence ** In 1813,* there were three houses built and occupied * It is related by the author of " Sketches of Rochester," as an evi- dence of the condition of the place the above year, that the Senecas here held, in the month of January, their feast of" Sacrifice and Thanks- givlncry It was indeed their last — the winding up of those pagan and unhallowed rites, which perhaps for centuries had been observed — of- ferings to the god of this world, and evidence of the ignorance and de- basement to which they had sunk. In a few years, on this very spot, the temples of the Living God would point their spires to heaven, and thousands within their consecrated walls would offer the " sacrifice" of penitential sorrow for sin, and a song of *• thanksgiving" for deliver- ance from the bondage of the prince of darkness. The Author thus describes the ceremonial of the Senecas : »* Preparations were made at the council-house, or other place of meet- ing, for the accommodation of the tribe during the ceremonial. Nine days was the period, and two white dogs the number and kind of ani- mals formerly required for the festival ; though in these latter days of reform and retrenchment, (for the prevailing spirit had reached even the wigwams and the altars of the Senecas.) the time has been curtailed to seven or five days, and a single dog was made the scape-goat to bear 260 FAMILY TOURIST. ROCHESTER. on the west side of the river ; these, excepting a mill-race opened by Rochester &/ Co., were the only improvements in these parts, during the above year. In the spring of 1814 — the war between the United States and Great Britain being in progress — Sir James Yeo, with a fleet of thirteen vessels, appeared off the mouth of the Gen- esee, threatening the destruction of the rude improvements in and around Rochester. Messengers were despatched to away the sin of the tribe I Two dogs, as nearly white as could be pro- cured, were usually Bclpctcd from those belonging to the tribe ; and were carefully killed at the door of the council-liouse by meaps of strangulation ; for a wound in the animal or an affusion of blood would spoil the victim for the sacrificial purpose. The dogs were then f;in- tastically painted with various colurs, decorated with feathers, and sus- pended about twenty feet high, at tlie council-house or near the centre of the camp. The ceremonial is then commenced, and the five, seven, or nine days of its continuance are marked by feasting and dancing, as well as bv sacrifice and consultation. Two select bands, one of men and another of women, ornamented with trinkets and feathers, and each person furnished with an ear of corn in the right hand, dance in a circle around the council-fire, which is kindled for tne occasion, and regulate their steps by rude music. Hence they proceed to every wigwam in the camp; and, in like manner, dance \n a circle around each fire. Aflerward, on another day, several men clothe themselves in the skins of wild beasts, cover their faces with hideous masks, and their hands with the shell of the tortoise, and in this garb they go among the wig- wams, making horrid noises, taking the fuel from the fire, and scattering the embers and ashes about the floor, for the purpose of driving away evil spirits. The persons performing these operations are supposed not only to drive off the evil spirit, but to concentrate within tliemsolves all the sins of the tribe. These sins are afterwards all transferred into one of their own number, who, by some magical dexterity or sleight-of-hand, works off from himself into the dogs tlie concentrated wickedness of the tribe I The scape-goat dogs are Jhen placed on a pile of wood, to which fire is applied, while tlie surrounding crowd throw tobacco or other incense upon the flame, the scent of wnich is deemed to co-operate with tlie sacrifice of the animals, in conciliating the favor of Nauwanew or the Great Spirit. When the dogs are psirtly consumed, one is taken off and put into a large kettle, with vegetables of various kinds, and all around devour the contents of the ' reeking caldron.' After this, the Indians perform the dances of war and peace, and smoke the calumet : then, free from wickedness, they repair to their respective places of abode, prepared for the events of the new year. " The wild spot where these pagan rites were performed only twenty- six years ago, has been transformed for the purposes of civilized man, and is now surrounded or covered by some of the fairest mansions and the noblest temples of Western New York." — Whence, one naturally asks, did the Senecas derive this ceremonial ? Could it be that it was handed down by tradition, through some untraceable channel, from the days of him who received the '' ceremonial law" on the top of Sinai .** FAMILY TOURIST. 261 ROCHESTER. arouse the people in the surrounding country, for defence against the threatened attack. " At this time, there were but thirty -three people in Roch- ester capable of bearing arms. This little band threw up a breastwork called Fort Bender, near the Deep Hollow, be- side the Lower Falls, and hurried down to the junction of the Genesee and lake Ontario, five miles north of the present city limits, where the enemy threatened to land ; leaving be- hind them two old men, with some young lads, to remove the women and children into the woods, in case the British should attempt to land for the capture of the provisions, and destruction of the bridge at Rochester, &/C. Francis Brown and Elisha Ely acted as captains, and Isaac W. Stone, as Major, of the Rochester forces, which were strengthened by the additions that could be made from this thinly settled re- gion. Though the equipments and discipline of these troops would not form a brilliant picture for a warlike eye, their very awkwardness in those points, coupled as it was with their sagacity and courage, accomplished more, perhaps, than could have been effected by a larger force of regular troops, bedizzened with the trappings of military pomp. The mili- tia thus hastily collected were marched and countermarched, disappearing in the woods at one point, and suddenly emerg- ing elsewhere, so as to impress the enemy with the belief that the force collected for defence was far greater than it ac- tually was. (The circumstances here related are substan- tially as mentioned to the writer by one who was then and is now a resident of Rochester.) An officer with a flag of truce was sent from the British fleet. A militia officer marched down with ten of the most soldierlike men to re- ceive him on Lighthouse Point. These militia men carried their guns upright, as might be consistent with their plan of being ready for action by keeping hold of the triggers ! The British officer was astonished : he ^ looked unutterable things.' * Sir,' said he, ^ do you receive a flag of truce un- der arms, with cocked triggers ? ' * Excuse me, excuse me, sir : we backwoodsmen are not well versed in military tac- tics,' replied the American officer, who promptly sought to rectify his error by ordering his men to 'ground arms ! ' — The Briton was still more astonished : and, after delivering a brief message, immediately departed for the fleet, indicating by his countenance a suspicion that the ignorance of tactics, which he had witnessed, was all feigned for the occasion, so 262 FAMILY TOURIST. ROCHESTER. as lo deceive the British Commodore into a snare ! Shortly afterwards, on the same day, another officer came ashore with a flag of truce for farther parley, as the British were evident- ly too suspicious of stratagem lo attempt a hostile landing, if there was any possibility of compromising for the spoils. Capt. Francis Brown was deputed with a guard to receive the last flag of truce. The British officer looked suspicious- ly upon him and upon his guard ; and after some conversa- tion, familiarly grasped the pantaloons of Capt. B. about the knee, remarking, as he firmly han STEPHEN GIRARD. FAMILY TOURIST. 303 PHILADELPHIA. roof, which is covered with copper. All the groin arches are girdled at the springing line with iron straps, passing round within the body of the division walls."* There is a third bank, the oldest in the United States, called the Bank of North America ; the establishment of which, in 1781, aided by the exertions of its originator, Mr. Morris, is believed to have been the means of saving the public treasury from bankruptcy. The banking house, however, is only a plain brick building, recently rough cast, on the northern side of Chestnut street. A fourth, the Bank of Pennsylvania, is described as " a neat and correct speci- men of the Gothic style of architecture." There is also a Masonic Hall in the same style. These buildings, Mr. Dun- can says, " are necessarily on a small scale, and the fatal in- congruity of red brick walls with white marble buttresses and pinnacles must strike every one who has seen an ancient Gothic building."t To remedy this, the Gothic bank has been recently rough cast and colored in imitation of marble. There are one hundred and forty-four places of worship in Philadelphia. Most of these are neat, but plain edifices. It is only within a few years that a taste for architectural decoration has been introduced. One of the Baptist church- es is mentioned by Lieutenant Hall, as having some claim to elegance of design. " It has a rotunda surmounted with a dome, which is lighted by a lantern 20 feet in diameter ; there is a projection to the street in the form of wings, sepa- rated by an Ionic collonnade, which forms the entrance, and is crowned with two cupolas ; the whole is of brick ; the di- ameter of the rotunda is 90 feet. The walls are 50 feet from the ground, and are surmounted with three steps before the swell of the dome, which rises at an angle of 45°. The building is calculated to hold 2500 persons."| The first • Carey and Lea's Philadelphia, in 1824, pp. 78, 79. The foundation stone of this beautiful edifice was laid in April, 1819, and it was fin- ished in 1^24. t " The Masonic Hall," says Lieutenant Hall, " is an awkward com- bination of brick and marble in the Gothic style ; that is plentifully tricked and flounced with niches, pinnacles, and battlements, and a spire 80 feet high. The Philadelphia Bank is in the same ridiculous taste, bating the absurdity of the spire."— F. HaU^ pp. 217, 218. t F.Hall, p. 217. 304 FAMILY TOtJRIST. PHILADELPHIA. Presbyterian church, in Washington square, built in 1822, is said to be on the model of the Ionic temple on the Ilys- sus ; it is of brick, coated with mortar, painted in imitation of marble. The roof is surmounted with a cupola, in which is a bell.* St. Andrew's Church, in Eighth street, is also a Grecian edifice : ** the front is intended to be a copy of the portico of the temple of Bacchus at Teos ; the inte- rior is of a correspondent character, and highly decorated." This church, which is 130 feet long, by 65, wa.s consecrated for the Episcopal worship, in May 1823.t St. Stephen's, in Tenth street, consecrated in the same year, is described as one of the most perfect specimens of Gothic architecture in the country. Christ Church, in Second street, rebuilt in 1727, has a steepfe 190 feet high, which was for a long time the only one of which Philadelphia could boast, with a ring of eight bells. A second Jewish synagogue has been recently erected, 40 feet in fVont, 70 feet in depth, and two stories in height, •' built in the Egyptian style, of stone from the falls of the Schuylkill. The principal entrance is through an elevated doorway formed with inclined jambs supporting a large coved cornice, in which is sculptured the globe and wings. The interior embraces two semi-circular blocks of seats, display- ing to the north and south of the ark and altar. The dome is supported with Egyptian columns copied from the temple at Tentyra, and is formed by semi-circular archivolts, join- ing a richly panelled segment extending over the ark and altar. In the centre of the dome is a lantern which gives light to the altar. The ark is situated in the east side, im- mediately opposite the altar, and is neatly decorated with pilasters, supporting a second cornice, enriched with the globe and wings, together with a marble tablet, containing the ten commandments in Hebrew. It is approached by a flight of steps between cheek-blocks, which support two hand- some tripods, crowned with lamps. The galleries are semi- circular, extending round the northern and southern sides of the building, and are supported by the columns which extend to the dome. "I One scarcely knows at which circumstance to admire the most, that a Jewish synagogue should be erect- * Philadelphia, in 1824, p. 49. f Ibid. t Philadelphia, in 1824, p. 55. I FAMILY TOURIST. 307 PHILADELPHIA. ed on the model of a heathen temple, or that this whimsical combination of incongruous styles and emblems, sacred and profane, Egyptian columns, and the airy dome, should be met with in the city of Penn."* For the benevolent disposition of its citizens and for the number, variety, and extent of its charitable and literary institutions, Philadelphia has long been distinguished. Among these may be mentioned the Pennsylvania Hospital, founded in 1750, the buildings of which occupy an entire square ; the university, Girard college, the medical college, the almshouse, the dispensaries. Friends' asylum for the insane, humane society, orphans' and indigent widows' and single women's asylum, the institution for the deaf and dumb, and the abolition, savings fund, and fuel saving socie- ties, besides many others. Some of these are worthy of fur- ther notice. The institution for the deaf and dumb was es- tablished in 1820, and incorporated the next year, with a grant of $8,000 from the State, and a liberal appropriation for the support of indigent pupils from Pennsylvania. The building is of granite, was erected in 1824, is 96 feet in front by 63 in depth, and is a chaste and beautiful speci- men of architecture. Most of the pupils are supported by- funds derived from the State ; some by the States of Mary, land and New Jersey, and others by their friends. The Uni- versity of Pennsylvania has a flourishing medical school con- nected with it, having usually from 400 to 500 students. It has an extensive anatomical museum and cabinet of natural history, and no medical institution has enjoyed a higher repu- tation throughout the country. The city is well supplied with public schools and academies, some of which are well endowed. — -Some years since, it received a munificent be- quest, for the establishment of a college for orphans, by the will of the late Stephen Girard. This gentleman, who died in 1831, by his will bequeathed the sum of two millions of dollars to the corporation of the city, in trust for the endowment of an orphan college. The site selected by Mr. Girard for this object is one and a quarter miles from the city, on the Ridge road, at a place called Peel Hill. It con- tains forty-five acres of land, upon which, by the terms of the will, buildings are to be erected for the accommodation of * Modern Traveller. 308 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. 300 pupils, together with those necessary for the teachers, and for other purposes. The corner-stone of this college was laid on the 4th of July, 1833, and the whole has since been completed. The centre building is 218 feet long by 160 feet wide, and is surrounded by 34 columns of the Corinthian order, with beautiful columns, supporting an entablature : each column, including its capital and base, is 55 feet high and 6 feet in diameter. There are four rooms, 50 feet square, on each floor, and the third floor is lighted by a skylight, con- structed on a level with the roof. No wood is used tii rough- out the building, excepting for the doors, and it is warmed by means of furnaces in the cellar. There are four other build- ings, two on each side of the one just described, 128 feet long by 52 feet wide, and two stories high above the basement, which are designed for the residence and accommodation of the professors and pupils. Upwards of $1,000,000 have been expended upon the buildings alone ; but it is very questiona- ble whether these splendid preparations were necessary to promote the objects in view. M'Culloch expresses the opin- ion that less expensive buildings would have been better cal- culated to teach the orphans economy, to say nothing more ; and in this opinion every disinterested person must readily coincide. Of the public works of Philadelphia, there are none of which its inhabitants are more justly proud, than those at Fair Mount, hy which the city is supplied with water of the best quality, and in the greatest plenty. Fair Mount is in the rear of the city, upon the bank of the Schuylkill, the neighborhood of which affords some romantic scenery. The reservoirs are situated on the top of a hill rising from the river, a part of it perpendicular rock, to the height of 100 feet. The ascent from the river to the reservoirs is by a flight of substantial wooden steps, with resting places, over one of which is a temple. The reservoirs, which are surrounded with paling, outside of which is a gravelled walk, contain upwards of twelve millions of gallons, sup- plying the city through 72^ miles of pipes. The water was formerly forced to the reservoirs by steam, which is no longer used ; it is now raised by machinery propelled by the Schuyl- kill. The machinery is simple, and is turned by large water- wheels, of which there are five, one of them of iron, and twen- ty-four tons in weight. If all are in motion, they will raise seven millions of gallons in twenty-four hours. To turn FAMILY TOURIST. 311 PHILADELPHIA. them, the Schuylkill has been dammed its whole breadth, by which the water is thrown back into a reservoir lock, whence it is admitted as it is required to operate upon the wheels, and is discharged into the river below the dam. The whole expense of these works, including the cost of works abandoned, was $1,783,000. The water thus circu- lated through the city, is not only sufficient for every family, but is used to wash the streets. It is of immense service in case of fire, as it is only necessary to screw the hose to the hydrants, which are placed at convenient distances, to secure a constant stream of sufficient force to reach any ordinary height.* Peale's Museum, originally a private collection, but now under the direction of public trustees, is rising into im- portance. The grand attraction, Mr. Duncan tells us, is the gigantic skeleton of the mastodon or mammoth. " A human being shrinks into insignificance, beside the bony fabric of this enormous antediluvian. The skeleton of the mam- moth resembles very much that of the elephant, carrying, like it, two great tusks in front. The principal difference is found in the grinders ; which in the elephant are flat on the top, with enamel penetrating the whole material, but, in the mammoth, they rise into ridges, or processes, as anato- mists term them, somewhat as in those of sheep, with the enamel of the form of an outer crust or case, enveloping but not penetrating the bone. Some naturalists have sup- posed from this peculiarity, that the mammoth was a car- nivorous animal; but a scientific gentleman remarks to me, that this is impossible, as it has, like the elephant, no front teeth, and its neck is too short, and its tusks too long, to have admitted of its holding and devouring its prey, as car- nivorous animals do. He thinks it probable that it lived upon shrubs and the smaller branches of trees, for crushing which the grinders seem to be well adapted. It only occurs to me, in reply to this remark, that the enormous trunk of the mammoth may have served to catch and crush the small- er animals, and convey them to his mouth. Conjecture, however, in such cases, is both unavailing and unimportant ; it is sufficient that we have in the existence of these bones unanswerable demonstration that in earlier times an animal * Hinton's United States. 312 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. has existed, much more enormous in bulk than the largest that is now known to tread the globe. This skeleton, which is, I believe, not so large as some others that have been found, is 11 feet high over the shoulders, and measures 31 feet from the extremity of the tusks to the end of the tail, following the curve. It was found in 1801, in a marl pit in the State of New York ; others have been found near the licksy or salt springs, in the State of Ohio. The skele- ton is nearly entire, except in the cartilaginous parts which are supplied by cork.'* " An Academy of the Fine Arts was founded here in 1805. It was shortly after incorporated by the legislature, and a building was erected with suitable apartments for study and exhibition rooms. One of the apartments con- tains a few specimens of antique sculpture, and casts of most of the celebrated statues. Among the modern speci- mens is a bust of Washington, by Canova ; and one of West, by Chantrey. The painting room is more richly stored, and can boast, if the catalogue is correct, of several paintings by old masters ; among which are three by Titian ; one by Raphael ; one by Correggio, which is said to have been executed for Charles III. of Spain, and was purchased for ,£34 ; three by Rubens ; one by Dominichino ; one by Teniers ; one by Vandyke ; one by Paul Veronese ; one by Rembrandt ; four by Murillo ; and three by Salvator Rosa. These are but a few of the old paintings, and, among a crowd of moderns, are some of great merit by native artists, the chief of whom appear to be Allston and Lesslie. From Allston's pencil, is a beautiful picture of the dead man raised to life by touching the bones of the prophet Elisha; and by Lesslie is a painting, which I thought excellent, exhibiting William of Deloraine unhorsed and wounded by Lord Cranstoun. His goblin attendant has seated himself on the warrior's helmet, and opened the mysterious book to devour its contents; while an airy phantom, like the spirit of a storm, stretching downwards behind him, extends his arm to prostrate the over curious imp by the side of the bleeding moss-trooper." Philadelphia has several valuable and extensive libraries. That of the Philosophical Society has 15,000 volumes, many of which are rare. The Franklin Institute has 2,000 mem- bers and several thousand volumes, with an extensive reading- room. The Academy of Natural Science has 9,000 volumes. p iKA.^M.l.S t.SitAiiS*> i]iii>.\ur.LPHIA. FRANKLIN FOUNDING PHILADELPHIA LIBRARY. FAMILY TOURIST. 315 PHILADELPHIA. The Philadelphia Library, founded in 1731, through the influence of Dr. Franklin, contains upwards of 30,000 well- selected volumes, embracing almost every branch of knowl- edge; to which the Legonian Library, of 11,000 volumes, mostly rare classical works, has been added. The Atheneum, incorporated in 1815, contains the periodicals of the day and a library of several thousand volumes. The Mercantile Li- brary contains 8,000 volumes, mainly relating to commercial and kindred subjects ; and also sustains popular lectures on such branches of knowledge as are likely to be most useful to its patrons. The Apprentices' Library, formed by dona- tions from all classes of citizens, contains 14,000 volumes, well calculated to improve the minds of both sexes. In a literary point of view, Philadelphia cannot yet com- pete with Boston ; nor in the finest and most accurate speci- mens of typography. In this latter respect, Boston has improved greatly within a few years. Yet the Philadelphia press has issued several highly finished works. In the ac- tivity of its press, however, Philadelphia exceeds any other place in the Union. Some few years since, it was stated in a New York paper, that " the new novel, Peveril of the Peak, was received from England in New York on Mon- day, at ten, A. M., and was printed, published, and sold on Tuesday, within twenty-eight hours after the same was re- ceived. Another English copy of the same work was re- ceived per the Custom House, New York, at 12 o'clock on Wednesday ; at 1 o'clock forwarded to Philadelphia, by the mail. In Philadelphia, it was printed on Thursday, and on Friday 2,000 copies were put in boards by six o'clock in the morning. The English copy of Moore's Loves of the Angels was taken out of the Custom House in New York on a Mon- day morning in February last, at 11 o'clock, A. M. ; was im- mediately sent to Philadelphia ; and 250 copies of the work printed, were received at New York on Thursday following by 8 o'clock, A. M., and the same copies were sold and cir- culated that afternoon." It is only within a few years, how- ever, that the business of republishing so large a proportion of the English books of value, has been undertaken. In 1786, four booksellers thought an edition of the New Testa- ment for schools, a work of risk, not to be determined up- on till after long deliberation. Four years after, one of these booksellers (Mr. Dobson, a Scotchman) took courage to under- take a republication of the Encyclopaedia Britannica. When 316 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. the first half volume was published, he had but 246 sul)- scribers. They increased, however, so rapidly, that 2,000 copies were thrown off of the s6cond volume ; the first was soon reprinted ; and in a short time, he soon found it diffi- cult to procure the requisite number of printers and engravers to carry forward the work with sufficient rapidity. Since then, Rees's Cyclopaedia, Brewster's Edinburgh Encyclopae- dia, Nicholson's Encyclopjedia, Pinkerton's Voyatjes and Travels, Gill's Bible, Scott's Bible, (two editions,) East's Re- ports, Vesey's Reports, the British Poets, (fifty volumes,) and several other heavy works, have been reprinted at Philadel- phia; together with various editions of Shakspearc, Hume and Smollet, &/C. Among the native publications have appeared, Wilson's Ornithology, nine volumes imperial quarto; Bar- ton's American Botany, five volumes quarto; and Marshall's Life of Washington. For the copy of the latter work, the sum of '*60,000 was paid. The first standimr quarto Eng- lish Bible was set up by Matthew Carey, in Pliiladelphia, in 1804 ; and is still, it is said, the only standing quarto Bible of separate types. Tlie United States nriint was founded in 1790, and the busi- ness of coining commenced in 1793, in the building occupied at present by the Apprentices' Library. In 1830 it was re- moved to the fine building it now occupies in Chestnut street. The edifice is of white marble, the north front 123 feel long, with a portico GO feet long, of six Ionic columns, and a similar portico on the south front. — The whole amount of coinage, since its establishment in 1793 to December, 1842, was 255,087,171 pieces, of the value of $85,873,052 50. The gold deposited for coinage, derived from mines in the States of Virginia, North and South Carolina, Georgia, Tennessee, and Alabama, has amounted to more than $6,000,000. The first deposit from these States was in 1824, and has of late years been materially increased in amount by gold found in other portions of the country. Besides what is received here, a considerable portion of the precious metal finds its way to a branch mint at New Orleans, which was established a few years since for the purpose of affording facilities to our im- mense southern and western territory. The American Philosophical Society, so well known to the learned in Europe for its valuable "Transactions," was founded chiefly by the exertions of Dr. Franklin, and still FAMILY TOURIST. 319 PHILADELPHIA- maintains its high character. Its library is very valuable, comprising the most complete collection extant of the Me- moirs and Transactions of the various learned Institutions in the Old World, (kept up to the date of the latest publica- tions,) and an extensive collection of historical documents relating to the United States. ** Besides the Philosophical Society," Captain B. Hall remarks, *' there are various learn- ed bodies in Philadelphia, of which I shall merely say, that I have seen few similar institutions elsewhere, managed with a more earnest desire to pursue knowledge for its own sake. The inhabitants of Philadelphia, indeed, appear to have more leisure on their hands, than those of any city in the Union ; and accordingly, scientific and literary pursuits are there cultivated with much steadiness and success. This circum- stance imparts a peculiar character to the style of thought and of conversation in that city, sufficiently obvious to dis- tinguish the inhabitants from those of most other parts of America." The wealthy conversaziones, called the Wistar parties, (from their founder, the late Dr. Wistar, President of the Philosophical Society,) consisting of most of the men of letters and science or general information in the city, are maintained with much spirit, and, to a stranger properly in- troduced, form a most agreeable feature of the society of Philadelphia. Philadelphia has been characterized as " the centre of the social world in America." *.. It is, undoubtedly, as another writer remarks, *' the focus of intelligence, as well as of wealth and business in this part of the Union." Before taking leave of it, we shall take the liberty of introducing some remarks of a traveller who designed to be candid (Mr. Hodgson.) Although his observations are somewhat of a general character, some of them, it will be perceived, have special reference to the good people of the city of " Brother- ly Love." " If, in opposition to their republican principles, we divide the Americans into classes, the first class will comprehend what are termed the Revolutionary Heroes, who hold a sort of patent nobility undisputed by the bitterest enemies of aris- tocracy. Their numbers, indeed, are few; but they have too many peculiar features to be comprised in the descrip- tion of any other class of their countrymen. Many of them were educated in England ; and even those who never trav- 320 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. elled, had generaUy the advantage of the best English socie- ty, either colonial or militar)'. They were formed in the English school; were imbued with English; and, however active they were in resisting the encroachments of the moth- er country, they are, many of them at least, delighted to trace their descent to English families of rank, and to boast of the pure English blood which flows in their veins. In the families of these patricians, in which I have spent many agreeable hours, I met with nothing to remind me that I was not in the society of that class of our well-educated country gentlemen, who occasionally visit the metropolis, and mingle in fashionable or political life. The old gentlemen of this class, are indeed gentlemen of the old school ; and the young ladies are particularly agreeable, refined, accomplish- ed, intelligent, and well-bred. ** The second class may include the leading political char- acters of the present day, the more eminent lawyers, the well- educated merchants aod agriculturists, and the most respect- able of the novi homines of every profession. It will thus comprise the mass of the good society of America; the first class, which comprehends the best, being very limited, sui generis, and about to expire with the present generation. The manners of this second class are less polished than those of the corresponding class in England, and their edu- cation is neither so regular nor so classical ; but their intel- lects are as actively exercised, and their information at least as general, although less scientific and profound. The young ladies of this class are lively, modest, and unreserved; easy in their manners, and rather gay and social in their dis- positions : at the same time they are very observant of the rules of female propriety ; and if they ever displease, it is from indifference, rather than from either bashfulness or ef- frontery. Their appearance is generally genteel and agreea- ble ; their figure is almost universally good, and they dress remarkably well, — in this city, (Philadelphia,) indeed, more to my taste than in almost any place I recollect. For this, they are indebted, partly to the short passages from Europe, which waft across the Atlantic the latest fashions from Lon- don and Paris ; partly to their accommodating tariff, which places within their reach all the most elegant materials for dress, which American enterprise can collect in the four quarters of the globe ; and partly to the simplicity of the Quaker costume, which has had a happy and sensible infiu- FAMILY TOURIST. 821 PHILADELPHIA. ence on the taste and habits of the community at large. Their tone of voice, which is a little shrill, and their mode of pronouncing a few particular words, are the peculiarities of manner which, I think, would be most remarked upon in the best society in England. Generally speaking, also, the style of female education in America is less favorable to solid acquirements than with us. The young ladies here go earlier into society than in England, and enter sooner into married life ; they have not, therefore, the same opportuni- ties for maturing their taste, expanding their intellect, and ac- quiring a rich store of well-arranged and digested knowledge as those have, who have devoted to improvement the longer interval, which climate or custom has, with us, interposed between the nursery and the drawing-room. In the highest class, especially in Carolina, there are many exceptions to this general remark ; and among the young ladies of Boston, there appeared to me to be, if less of refinement than in the Carolinians, yet, a very agreeable union of domestic habits and literary taste, and great kindness and simplicity of man- ners. ** The thft-d class may comprehend all below the second, for in a country where some would, perhaps, resent the idea of a second class, this division is sufficiently minute. This class will include the largest proportion of the American population ; and it is distinguished from the corresponding classes of my countrymen, (the little farmers, innkeepers, shopkeepers, clerks, mechanics, servants, and laborers,) by greater acuteness and intelligence, more regular habits of reading, a wider range of ideas, and a greater freedom from prejudices, provincialism, and vulgarity. It is distinguished, also, by greater coldness of manner ; and this is the first of the charges against the nation, generally, on which I shall remark. " As respects the highest classes, I think this charge is, in a great measure, unfounded : their reception of a stranger at least, appeared to me as frank and as warm as in England. To that part of the population which I have included in the third class, the charge attaches with strict propriety ; and in many cases, their coldness amounts to the English * cut direct.' At first, it incommoded me excessively, especially in the women in the country, who showed it the most ; and I have sometimes been disposed to ride on, not in the best temper, when arriving at an inn after a long stage before 21 breakfast, and asking very civilly, 'can we have breakfast here ? ' I have received a shrill * I reckon so,' from a cold female figure, that went on with its employments, without deigning to look at us, or to put any thing in motion to verify its reckoning. In due time, however, the bread was baked, the chicken killed, and both made their appearance, with their constant companions, even in the wildest part of America, ham, eggs, and coffee. The automaton then took its place; and if I had been an automaton also, the charm would have remained unbroken : but I do not remember an instance in which the figure did not converse with good humor before I rose. Very often, however, our reception was warm and friendly ; and the wife, or daughter, who poured out my coffee, was frank, well-bred, obliging, and conversible. The coldness of the men, also, I found to be confined principally to their manners, and to indicate no in- disposition to be sociable and accommodating. On the con- trary, in a route of more than seven thousand miles, of which I travelled nearly two thousand on horseback, and the rest in steamboats, and stages, I have found the various classes as accommodating and obliging as in England y sometimes, I confess I have thought more so. Some parts of Georgia and the Carolinas, might suggest a slight qualification of this remark ; while East Tennessee and the valley of the Shenan- doah might almost claim a warmer eulogy. In the course of my route, I have met with only one instance of personal rudeness, and that too slight to be mentioned, except for the sake of literal accuracy. My servant's impressions cor- respond to mine. On questioning him at the termination of our route, he said, * he thought the Americans quite as ready to serve us, and one another, as the English; and that they were continually expressing their surprise to find English- men so civil.' Now our civility was nothing more than would naturally be suggested by a recollection of the insti- tutions of the country through which we were travelling, and a general desire to be pleased with friendly intentions, however manifested. The coldness of manner in the Amer- icans, however, is a great defect, and must prejudice travel- lers till they understand it a little."* We shall conclude our account of Philadelphia with some notices of its early history. In 1681, Charles II. * Hodgson. FAMILY TOURIST. 323 PHILADELPHIA. granted to William Penn a patent for the territory of Penn- sylvania in consideration of his father's services, and of a debt due to him from the crown. It was his own intention to call the territory Npao Wales ; but the under secretary had inserted the name Pennsylvania, and would not change it even to Si/lvania, which Penn proposed, and to do which he offered a doceur of twenty guineas. At length Penn went to the king and requested the change made — but the king declined, and established the present name. In September, Penn sailed in the Welcome for his newly acquired territory ; but soon after commencing the voyage, the smallpox appeared and swept off thirty of the passen- gers. The rest arrived in safety at the expiration of six weeks, and Penn landed at Chester. He was received with great hospitality with his friends at the ** Essex House," then the residence of Robert Wade. This house stood about two hundred yards from Chester creek, near the mar- gin of the Delaware, and on a plain of about fifteen feet above tide water. Near the house by the river side stood several lofty white pines, three of which remain at the present day, and thence ranging down the Delaware stood a large row of lofty walnut trees, of which a few still sur- vive. Essex House had its south-east gable end fronting to the river Delaware, and its south-west front upon Essex street ; its back piazza ranged in a line with Chester creek, which separated the house and farm from the town of Chester ; all vestiges of the house are now gone, but the facts of its location and position have been told to me by some aged persons who had once seen it. The iron vane once upon it was preserved several years, with the design of replacing it upon a renewed building once intended there. Penn and his immediate friends came up in an open boat or barge from Chester, and landed at what was called " the Blue Anchor Tavern,'^ owned by one Guest. It was a new house, and then in building. The whole scene was active, animating and cheering. On the shore were gathered, to cheer his arrival, most of the few inhabitants who had preceded him. The busy builders, who had been occupied at the construction of Guest's house, and at the connecting line of " Budd's long row," all forsook their labors to join in the general greet- ings. The Indians, too, aware by previous signals of his 324 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. approach, were seen in the throng, or some, more reserved- ly apart, waited the salutation of the guest, while others, hastening to the scene, could be seen paddling their canoes down the smooth waters of the creek. The above tradition has been confirmed by several intelli- gent and respectable persons, especially by a Mrs. Preston, who, according to Watson, in his '* Annals j" was present on the occasion, and used to say she admired the affability and condescension of the Governor, especially his manner of entering into the spirit and feeling of the Indians: he walked with them, sat down on the ground with them, ate with them of their roasted acorns and hominy: when they got up to exercise and e.xpress their joy by hopping and jumping, he finally sprung up, and beat them all. 1 will not pretend, says Mr. Watson, to vouch for this story ; we give it as we received it from honest informants, who cer- tainly believed it themselves. It was a measure harmless in the abstract ; and as a courtesy to the Indians, may have been a fine stroke of policy in winning their regard. lie was young enough to have been gay ; being th'en only thirty- eight years of age. And one of the old journalists has left on record, that he was naturally prone to cheerfulness, for a grave public Friend, especially in the eye of those of them who held *' religion harsh, intolerant, austere."* Not long after his arrival, Penn held his famous confer- ence with the Indians, designing to ratify in person the terms of purchase and treaty of friendship, which his com- missioners had concluded with the natives. He proceeded, therefore, accompanied by some friends, and young people of both sexes, to a place called Coaquannoc, the site of the city, which he afterwards founded under the name of Phila- delphia, (Brotherly Love.) On arriving there, he found the sachems and their tribes already assembling : they filled the woods as far as the eye could reach, and had a formi- dable appearance, both from their number and their arms. The white men were a mere handful, without weapons of any kind; " so that dismay and terror had come upon them, had they not confided in the righteousness of their cause." The spot upon which the council was held, is a little high- er up, and was then named Shackamaxon : it is now occu- pied by the houses of Kensington, which may be consider- * Watson's Annals. FAMILY TOURIST. 325 PHILADELPHIA. ed as a suburb of Philadelphia. Here stood an elm of pro- digious size, to which the leaders on each side repaired, approaching each other under its wide-spreading branches.* William Penn appeared in his usual dress, without sword or staff, or any other insignia than a sky blue sash of silk net- work. This sash is still in existence in England. On his right hand was Col. Markham, his relation and secretary ; on his left, his friend Pierson ; and he was followed by a train of Quakers. Before him were carried various arti- cles of merchandise, which, when they came near the sachems, were spread on the ground. In his hand he held a roll of parchment, containing the confirmation of the Treaty of Purchase and Amity. The chief sachem, on Penn's approach, put upon his own head a sort of chaplet, in which appeared a small horn, the emblem of kingly pow- er ; and whenever the chief, who had a right to wear it, put it on, the place was considered as sacred, and the per- sons of all present as inviolable. The Indians, on this sign, threw down their bows and arrows, and seated them- selves round their chiefs in a semi-circle. The chief sachem then announced, by means of an interpreter, that the natives were ready to hear the " white chief" Upon this, Penn made a declaration of his pacific intentions, and un- * The tree thus memorable was blown over on the 3d of March, 1810 : the blow was not deemed generally prevalent, nor strong. In its case, the root was wrenched and the trunk broken off: it fell on Saturday night, and Sunday many hundreds of people visited it. In its form it was remarkably wide spread, but not lofty ; its main branch inclining towards the river measured 150 feet in length ; its girth around the trunk was 24 feet, and its age, as it was counted by the inspection of its circles of annual growth, was 283 years. While it stood, the Methodists and Baptists often held their summer meetings under its shade. When it had fallen, several took their measures to secure some of the wood as relics. An arm-chair was made from it, and presented to Dr. Rush ; a part of it is constructed into something memorable and enduring at Penn's Park in England. A marble monument has been erected near the site of the origmal tree to perpetuate its memory, with the following four inscriptions on its four sides, to wit : Treaty Ground of William Penn, and the Indian Nations, 1682. Unbroken Faith. William Penn, Born 1644. Died 1718. Placed by the Penn Society, A. D. 1827, to mark the Site of the 'Great Elm Tree, Pennsylvania founded 1681. by Deeds of Peace. <)fiA.-^ 326 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADZLPHIA. rolling the parchment, explained, article by article, the conditions of the purchase and compact. He then paid them for the land, and made them many presents besides, and concluded the ceremony, by presenting the parchment to the chief sachem, desiring him to preserve it carefully for three generations. Having thus fairly purchased the land of the natives, he ordered a regular survey of it, during which he pitched upon Coaqiiannoc, as the most noble and commodious place for his new city. This being determined upon, and a plan formed, a map was made of it, and the name of '' Philadd- phia " given to it, in token of that principle of brotherly love which he wished might forever characterize his new do- minions. Several hou.ses were erected upon the spot the same year. During the year 1683, about one hundred houses were erected ; and such was the popularity of Penn, and such the encouragement given to new settlers, that before the expiration of 1684, the city embraced nearly 300 houses.* The population of the city and suburbs, according to the cen- sus of 18^0, was 228,691. The early history of Philadelphia, is replete with interest- ing facts and associations. Fortunately, within a few years a gentleman well qualified for the task has presented the public with a highly interesting volume, entitled " Annals of Philadelphia," *' designed," as he remarks, '* to revive the recollections and the peculiar traits and characteristics of the olden tinier To this volume the author is indebted for the remaining pages of this article, gathered out of some seven or eight hundred pages, and for which he here makes this specific acknowledgment. ** The city residence of Penn was the Slate Roof House, which is still standing at the south-east corner of Norris's alley and Second street, but it has undergone great altera- tions. It was originally built for Samuel Carpenter. During his second visit in 1700, Penn and his family occupied this house, and here within a month after his arrival was born John Penn, the only one of the race ever born in the country." ** To that house therefore," says Mr. Watson, ** humble, de- generated, and altered in aspect as it now is, we are to ap- * Life of Penn. « .V FAMILY TOURIST. 327 PHILADELPHIA. propriate all our conceptions of Penn's employments, medi- tations, hopes, fears, &,c., while acting as Governor and pro- prietary among us. In those doors he went in and out — up and down those stairs he passed — in those chambers he re- posed — in those parlors he dined or regaled his friends — through those gardens he sauntered. His wife, his daughter Lcetitia, his family, and his servants, were there. In short, to those who can think and feel, the place ' is filled with local impressions.' " "This house, after Penn's return to England, became the residence of Governor Logan, and, some time after him, of Governor Hamilton. For many years preceding the war of Independence, it was deemed a superior boarding house. While it held its rank as such, it was honored with the com- pany, and finally with the funeral honors of General Forbes, successor to General Braddock, who died in the house in 1759. The pomp of his funeral from that house surpassed all the simple inhabitants had before seen in their city. His horse was led before the procession, richly caparisoned, — the whole conducted in all ' the pomp of war,' with funeral dirges, and a military array with arms reversed. " In 1764, it was occupied as a distinguished boarding house by the widow Graydon, mother of Captain Graydon of Carlisle, who has left us his amusing ' Memoirs of 60 years life in Pennsylvania.' There his mother, as he informs us, had a great many gentry as lodgers. He describes the old house as very much of a castle in its construction, although built originally for a Friend. ' It was a singular old-fash- ioned structure, laid out in the style of a fortification, with abundance of angles both salient and re-entering. Its two wings projected to the street in the manner of bastions, to which the main building, retreating from 16 to 18 feet, served for a curtain. John Adams and other members of the first Congress had their lodgings in the Slate House.' " * Shippen's House,' or * Shippey's' Great House,* was another venerable edifice. For many years after its con- struction, it was beautifully situated and surrounded with rural beauty, being originally, on a small eminence, with a tall row of yellow pines in its rear, a full orchard of best fruit trees close by, overlooking the rising city, beyond the Dock creek, and having on its front view a beautiful green 328 FAMILY TOURIST. PHILADELPHIA. lawn, gently sloping to the then pleasant Dock creek, and draw bridge, and the whole prospect unobstructed to the Delaware and the Jersey shore. It was indeed a princely place for that day, and caused the honest heart of Gabriel Thomas, to overflow at its recollection, as he spoke of it in the year 1698, saying of it, that * Edward Shippen, who lives near the capital city, has nn orchard and gardens adjoining to his great house that equals any I have ever seen, being a very famous and pleasant summer house, erected in the mid- dle of his garden, and abounding with tulips, carnations, roses, lilies, &enced in 1531. *' Tlte site," says the autlKW of Notes on Mexico, " does credit to the taste and judorment of its founders. It is built on the south side of a hill, that is wooded to its summit. The sur- rounding plain is cultivated with wheat, barley, Indian corn, and all the fruits of Europe, and is highly productive. This plain is surrounded by a chain of hills, presenting alternately cultivated fields and luxuriant forests ; and the view is ter- minated by the volcanoes of Puebla, clothed in perpetual snows."t The city is compactly and uniformly built. The streets, though not very wide, are straight, intersecting each * Six Months' Residence in Mexico. By W. Bullock, i Notes on Mexico, by a citizen of the United States, (Mr. Poinsett.) FAMILY TOURIST. 473 Other at right angles, and are very ornamentally paved with large stones in a diamond shaped pattern ; there are broad footpaths on each side, which are kept remarkably clean. The houses are all of stone, spacious and commodious, gen- erally of two stories, with flat roofs. The fronts of many of them are inlaid with painted tiles, highly glazed like the Dutch tile, some forming pictures, and having the appearance of rich mosaic. Others have their fronts gaudily and fantas- tically painted in fresco, similar to the houses of Genoa. The bishop's palace is covered over in this way with red tiles. Most of them have iron balconies in front, very elegantly constructed. Every house has, for the most part, a square court, in the centre, with open galleries running round it, the ballustrades of which are covered with porcelain pots of flowering plants, producing a most pleasing effect. The apartments are spacious and lofty, with plastered walls, paint- ed in distemper,* the floors tiled much like those of France, and uncovered : carpets are not in use, nor are they neces- sary in this fine climate. Almost every sitting room has a wax model of the Saviour, or of some saint, or the picture of the Virgin of Guadaloupe, or of a Magdalen, or of the Crucifixion ; the frames are often of silver. Most of the resi- dences have a fountain of fine water, which is conveyed in earthen pipes, — a great luxury in the warm season. The family of the proprietor usually reside in the upper story, the ground floor being occupied with shops, warehouses, or offices, and the first story by servants. But it is in the splendor of its churches and other religious edifices, and in the richness of their endowments, that Puebla, according to Mr. Bullock, claims to take the first rank among the cities of the Christian world. It contains no fewer than sixty-nine churches, nine monasteries, thirteen nunne- ries, and twenty-three colleges ; " the most sumptuous," says this traveller, *' that I have ever seen. Those of Milan, Genoa, and Rome, are built in better taste; but, in expen- sive interior decorations, the quantity and value of the orna- ments of the altar, and the richness of the vestments, they * This is a mode of painting in which the colors are mixed in some- tliing besides oil and water. When colors are mixed with size, whites of eggs, or other unctuous or glutinous matter, and not with oil, it is said to be done in distemper. — Webster. 474 FAMILY TOURIST. are far surpassed by the churches of Puebla and Mexico." The cathedral forms one side of the great square ; on the opposite side stands the cabildo, or town hall ; and the sides are occupied with shops under arcades, the whole gaudily painted. The exterior of the cathedral has nothing about it very ornamental, or remarkable, but its interior furniture is rich beyond description. The high altar is strikingly splendid. Mr. Bullock describes it as a most superb sanctu- ary of exquisite workmanship, and states, that it had been but lately hnished by an Italian artist, from Roman designs, but executed in Mexico and of native materials. It occu- pies a considerable part of the cathedral, and reaches into the dome. " The platform which is raised some feet above the level of the rest of the church, is inlaid with marble of different colors. The interior of it is appropriated as a cemetery of the bishops of Puebla. The walls are of black and white marble, and the whole is vaulted with an elliptic arch. The canopy which rests on this platform is support- ed by eight double marble columns, the effect of which is destroyed by brass ornaments and gilded capitals. The ceil- ing of the canopy is highly ornamented with stucco and gold. The custodia is of variegated marble; the front of embossed silver, and so constructed as to slide down and show the Host to the congregation. The custodia itself is surrounded by five bronze figures. In front of this altar is suspended an enormous lamp of massive gold and silver, very beautifully wrought. The pulpit near it is cut out of a mass of carbo- nate of lime, which is found near Puebla ; it receives a high polish and is semi-transparent. A row of lofty columns sup- porting the arches, runs round the whole interior of the building. The sanctuaries are numerous and are ornamented with a profusion of gilding, and some bad paintings. In the midst of this splendor, miserable, half-naked Indians are to be seen wandering about, or kneeling at the shrine of some favorite saint, forming a singular and painful contrast to the magnificence of the temple." The bishop's palace contains a tolerable library. The room is 200 feet long by 45 wide, and is " well furnished with books, mostly in vellum bindings." They are chiefly Spanish, with a few in French, and one, Mr. Bullock says, in English ; but he gives no fuller account of it, than that it is I It* FAMILY TOURIST. 477 '* the life of one of the kings of England." A Bible in Spanish, with plates, was exhibited as a '^ great curiosityy One part of the library consists of controversial divinity, but the perusal of this portion is prohibited even to the clergy. There is also a very good collection of pictures in this palace. Among the other religious edifices visited by the English traveller, he enumerates the church o( San Felipe Ncri, one of the largest buildings in the city, with the magnificent hospicio, attached to it, which contains some " excellent paintings," and is "finished with solid silver and gold cru- cifixes ; " the church of La Santo Spiritu, formerly belonged to the Jesuit's College, a large building in good architectural taste ; the church and monastery of St. Augustine, " one of the first class, with a square, high-raised altar of silver, orna- mented with marble statues as large as life, and the sacristy superbly decorated ; " and the church and monastery of St. Dominick, which have also their silver altar, and ** near the rails are two dogs of the same metal, the size of life, on pe- destals of gold and silver." The dome of this church is covered with painted and gilt tiles. The little church of the convent of St. Monica, deserves also to be mentioned, we are told, for the richness of its vaulted roof, and walls encrusted with elaborate carvings ; it also contains a few pictures, statues, and silver ornaments. Puebla is governed by four alcaldes, and sixteen subordi- nate magistrates. The police, Mr. Bullock says, seems to be well regulated. That many of the inhabitants are wealthy, is attested by their equipages and retinues. " Handsome car- riages, drawn by mules richly caparisoned, and attended by servants in showy liveries, parade the streets and almedas, or public walks, particularly on Sundays and holydays; but the promenade is not worthy of so fine a city, and loses much of its interest in the eyes of Europeans, by the almost total ab- sence of females, except such as are in their carriages. Handsome hackney coaches, drawn by mules, stand ready for hire in the great square." There the market is held, which is well supplied with every article of food, except fish, which must be obtained from a great distance, and is sent enclosed in coarse paste pies, half baked, to preserve it. Poultry is plentiful and cheap, and the tropical fruits are 478 FAMILY TOURIST. CHOLULA. supplied from the tierras calientes. Indeed the necessaries, and most of the luxuries of life, may be obtained at a reason- able rate. Puebla was once celebrated for its manufactory of coarse woollens ; but this branch of industry has greatly fallen off. The manufacture of glass, has of late been so much improved, that they are stated already to rival England, in the tex- ture and color of their glass. Their coarse and red earthen ware is also excellent, but their machinery is very rude, and no clay fit for porcelain has hitherto been discovered in the country. Soap is a considerable article of trade, being sent from Puebla to most parts of Mexico. One class of the in- habitants, Mr. Bullock omits to notice : like the capital, Puebla has its lazzaroni. The custom of begging in the streets existed in Mexico, before the conquest ; and Cortes speaks of the Indians begging like rational beings, as an evi- dence of their civilization. " And in fact," remarks the American, " it was the greatest he could have given : a peo- ple in the hunter state, never beg or give in charity." In times of scarcity, the old and infirm are sometimes killed from compassion.* CHOLULA. This city lies about 60 miles east of Mexico, and out of the usual route from Puebla to the former place. In the time of Cortes, it contained, according to his account, 40,000 houses, independent of the adjoining villages or sub- urbs, which he computed at as many more. Its commerce consisted in manufactures of cotton, gems, and plates of clay, and it was much famed for its jewellers and potters. Cortes mentions that he counted more than four hundred temples in and about the city. The temple, however, which is the most ancient and most celebrated of all the Mexican temples, lies to the east of this city. It is now in ruins. The length of its base is 1,423 feet, and its height 173. This base is almost double that of the great pyramid of Cheops in Egypt. At a distance, the * Modern Traveller. — Mexico. ^^1 ! ^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^s^^^Jl FAMILY TOURIST. 483 appearance that it now assumes, is that of a natural conical hill, wooded, and crowned with a small church ; but as the traveller approaches it, its pyramidal form becomes distin- guishable, together with the four stories into which it is shaped, although covered with vegetation, the prickly pear, the nopal, and the cypress. It appears to have been con- structed exactly in the direction of the four cardinal points. It is built of unburnt bricks and clay, in alternate layers. In making the present road from Puebla to Mexico, between twenty and thirty years ago, the first story was cut through, so that an eighth part remained isolated like a heap of bricks. In making this opening, a square chamber was discovered in the interior of the pyramid, built of stone, and supported by beams of cypress wood. The chamber contained two skele- tons, some idols of basalt, and a number of vases curiously varnished and painted. No pains were taken to preserve the objects ; but it is said to have been carefully ascertained that this chamber had no outlet. The ascent to the platform is by a flight of 120 steps. As our principal object in speaking of Chblula, was to no- tice this curious and magnificent relic of antiquity, we shall only further observe, that the city itself, owing probably to its proximity to Puebla, has greatly declined. It still occu- pies, according to Mr. Bullock, a large space of ground, and contains many regular and broad streets. Humboldt states its population in 1802, at 16,000, while the former traveller places it at 6,000. But we will detain our companions no longer from a more extended account, which we propose to give of the ancient and celebrated capital of New Spain. MEXICO. Mexico, the next city to which we shall introduce our fellow travellers, is the capital of a country, bearing the same name. It is situated midway between the Gulf of Mexico and the Pacific ocean. Latitude, 19° 26' north. Longitude, 90° 5' west. It has attracted much attention, not only on account of the beauty of its situation, but the interesting 484 FAMILY TOURIST. historical incidents which pertain to it. Its history has the interest of romance. A rapid sketch of this, before giving a description of modern Mexico, will doubtless interest the companions of our wanderings. The city appears to have been founded by the Mexicans, in 1325, at which time it bore the name of Tenorhtitlan. It was originally built on a group of islands, in the lake Tcz- cuco, which lay in a delightful valley, 70 leagues in circum- ference, and elevated more than 7,000 feet above the level of the sea. Only twenty-seven years after the discovery of the New World by Columbus, that is in 1519, Cortes, a Spanish ad- venturer, landed in Mexico, then called New Spain, and in the following year, took possession of the city. His fleet consisted of eleven vessels, the largest of which was of only 100 tons ; three were of 70 or 80 tons, and the rest were open barks. His army consisted of but 508 soldiers, in- cluding sixteen horsemen, with ten small fieldpieces, four fal- conets, and 109 seamen, or artificers. Such was the slender and ill-provided train, with which, says Dr. Robertson, Cortes made war upon a monarch, whose dominions were more extensive than all the kingdom subject to the Spanish crown. Cortes landed at St. Juan d'Ulloa, to which place he gave the name of Vera Cruz. To the governor of the province he announced himself as an ambassador from Don Carlos of Austria, King of Castile, the greatest monarch of the East; and that he was entrusted with proposals of such moment, that he could impart them to none but the emperor Monte- zuma himself; he therefore required them to conduct him into the presence of their master. The Mexican authorities could not conceal their uneasiness at this request ; but, to soften their refusal, they first ordered the presents to be brought in, which they had prepared, with a view to concil- iate the ^ood will of the strangers. They consisted of fine cotton cloth, plumes of various colors, and ornaments of wrought gold and silver. The display of these served only to stimulate in the Spaniards the lust of conquest ; and when Teutile proceeded to dissuade Cortes from visiting the capi- tal, he replied in a haughty and determined tone, that kings never refused to receive the embassies of other princes ; and insisted on their acquainting Montezuma with his arrival. During this interview, some native artists had been diligently FAMILY TOURIST. 485 employed in delineating upon white cotton cloths, representa- tions of the ships, horses, artillery, soldiers, and every thing else belonging to the strangers, which struck them as re- markable. Cortes, having notice of this, and learning that these pictures were to be despatched to Montezuma, resolved to give further employment to the skill of these painters, and to strengthen the impression made on the minds of these na- tive chiefs, by the exhibition of a sham fight. Mounting his horse, he ordered the trumpets to sound an alarm, and the troops, forming into two bodies, skirmished in a martial manner. The Mexicans looked on in silent amazement, especially at the agility with which the cavalry performed their evolutions; for, "observing the obedient fierceness of those beasts," says De Solis, " they began to think there was something more than natural in those men that managed them. But, when, at a signal given by Cortes, the firearms, and then the artillery was discharged, some fell to the ground, others fled, and those who had most presence of mind, affect- ed admiration to dissemble their fear." Cortes dismissed his guests with some trifling presents. To Montezuma himself, he sent some glass, a Holland shirt, a cap of crimson velvet adorned with a gold medal, and a tapestry chair. Though the capital was 200 miles distant, the pictures and presents were forwarded to the sovereign, and his answer was return- ed in a few days. Montezuma, it seems, had couriers posted at convenient distances along the principal roads, by which means intelligence was transmitted to the capital with aston- ishing rapidity. His answer was a refusal to allow of the nearer approach of the foreigners ; but this, too, was intro- duced with a conciliatory present to the Spanish general, ex- pressive at once of the monarch's magnificence and his fears. It consisted of specimens of the manufactures of the country ; cotton stuff's, so fine and of so delicate a texture, as to re- semble silk ; pictures of animals, trees, and other natural objects, formed with feathers of different colors most ingeni- ously disposed ; two large circular plates, one of gold, repre- senting the sun ; the other of silver, representing the moon ; with a variety of golden ornaments, and precious stones. Cortes received all these with an appearance of the pro- foundest respect, but, to the consternation of the Mexicans, represented that, with every wish to show his obedience to their monarch, it was impossible for him to leave the country, consistently with his duty to his own sovereign, until he had FAMILY TOURIST. 487 been admitted into the presence of the Prince, whom he had been appointed to visit in his name. The firmness, says Dr. Robertson, with which Cortes ad- hered to his original proposal, should naturally have brought the negotiation between him and Montezuma to a speedy issue, as it seemed to leave the Mexican monarch no choice, but either to receive him with confidence us a friend, or to oppose him openly as an enemy. The latter was what might have been expected from a haughty prince, in possession of extensive power. The Mexican empire, at this period, was at a pitch of grandeur to which no society ever attained in so short a period. Though it had subsisted, according to their own traditions, only 130 years, its dominion extended from the north to the south sea, over territories stretching, with some small interruption, above five hundred leagues ftrom east to west, and more than two hundred from north to south, comprehending provinces not inferior in fertility, pop- ulation, and opulence, to any in the torrid zone. The people wer6 warlike and enterprising; the authority of the monarch unbounded, and his revenues considerable.. If, with the forces which might have been suddenly assembled in such an empire, Montezuma had fallen upon the Spaniards, while encamped on a barren, unhealthy coast, unsupported by any ally, without a place of retreat, and destitute of provisions, it seems impossible, even with all the advantages of their su- perior discipline and arms, that they could have stood the shock, and they must either have perished in such an unequal contest, or have abandoned the enterprise. As the power of Montezuma enabled him to take this spirited part, his own dispositions were such as seemed natu- rally to prompt him to it. Of all the princes, who had swayed the Mexican sceptre, he was the most haughty, the most violent, and the most impatient of control. His subjects looked up to him with awe, and his enemies with terror. The former he governed with unexampled rigor, but they were impressed with such an opinion of his capacity, as commanded their respect; and by many victories over the latter, he had spread far the dread of his arms, and had added several considerable provinces to his dominions. But, though his talents might be suited to the transactions of a state so imperfectly polished as the Mexican empire, and sufllcient to conduct them while in their accustomed course. 488 FAMILY TOURIST. they were altogether inadequate to a conjuncture so extra- ordinary, and did not qualify him either to judge with the dis- cernment, or to act with the decision, requisite in such a trying emergence. From the moment that the Spaniards appeared on his coast, he discovered symptoms of timidity and embarrassment. Instead of taking such resolutions as the consciousness of his own power, or the memory of his former exploits, might have inspired, he deliberated with an anxiety and hesitation, which did not escape the notice of his meanest courtiers. The perplexity and discomposure of Montezuma's mind, upon this occasion, as well as the general dismay of his sub- jects, were not owing vvholly to the impression which the Spaniards had made by the novelty of their appearance, and the terror of their arms. Its origin may be traced up to a more remote source. There was an opinion, if we may be- lieve the earliest and most authentic Spanish historians, almost universal . among the Americans, that some dreadful calamity was impending over their heads, from a race of formidable invaders, who should come from regions towards the rising sun, to overrun and desolate their country. Whether this disquieting apprehension flowed from the memory of some natural calamity, which had afflicted that part of the globe, and impressed the minds of the inhabitants with superstitious fears and forebodings, or whether it was an imagination accidentally suggested by the astonishment, which the first sight of a new race of men occasioned, it is impossible to determine. But, as the Mexicans were more prone to superstition than any people in the new world, they were more deeply affected by the appearance of the Spaniards, whom their credulity instantly represented as the instrument destined to bring about this fatal revolution which they dreaded. Under these circumstances, it ceases to be in- credible that a handful of adventurers should alarm the mon- arch of a great empire, and all his subjects. Notwithstanding the influence of this impression, when the messenger arrived from the Spanish camp, with an account that the leader of the strangers, adhering to his original de- mand, refused to obey the order enjoining him to leave the country, Montezuma assumed some degree of resolution, and, in a transport of rage natural to a fierce prince, unac- customed to meet with any opposition to his will, he threaten- ed to sacrifice those presumptuous men to his gods. But •^ FAMILY TOURIST. 489 his doubts and fears quickly returned, and instead of issuing orders to carry his threats into execution, he again called his ministers to confer, and offer their advice. Feeble and temporising measures will always be the result, when men assemble to deliberate, in a situation where they ought to act. The Mexican counsellors took no effectual measures for expelling such troublesome intruders, and were satisfied with issuing a more positive injunction, requiring them to leave the country ; but this they preposterously accompanied with a present of such value, as proved a fresh inducement to remain there. The definitive orders of Montezuma at length were re- ceived by a messenger, that the Spaniards should leave the country. Cortes, however, had no intention of surrendering an object; which addressed itself so strongly to his avarice and ambition ; and by cunning and artifice, for which he was distinguished, roused his soldiers to such a pitch of enthusi- asm, as to demand of him to be conducted towards the capi- tal of the empire. Cortes did not allow his men time to cool, but immediately set about carrying his design into execution. Proceeding from the coast where they landed, and in their progress achieving an easy victory over the country through which they passed, about the first of November they came in sight of the vast plain of Mexico, in which stood the capital of the renowned Montezuma. '* When they first beheld this prospect," says Dr. Robertson, ** one of the most striking and beautiful on the face of the earth ; when they observed fertile and cultivated fields stretching further than the eye could reach ; when they saw a lake resembling the sea in ex- tent, encompassed by large towns, and discovered the capital rising upon an island in the middle, adorned with temples and turrets ; the scene so far exceeded their imagination, that some believed the powerful descriptions of romance were realized, and that its enchanted palaces and gilded domes were presented to their sight; others could hardly persuade themselves that this wonderful spectacle was any thing more than a dream. As they advanced, their doubts were re- moved, but their amazement increased. They were now fully satisfied, that the country was rich beyond any concep- tion which they had formed of it, and flattered themselves, that, at length, they should obtain ample recompense for all their services and sufferings." 400 FAMILY TOURIST. "When they drew near the city, about a thousand persons, who appeared to be of distinction, came forth to meet them, adorned with plumes, and clad in mantles of fine cotton. They announced the approach of Montezuma himself, and soon after his harbingers came in sight. There appeared first two hundred persons in a uniform dress, with large plumes of feathers, alike in fashion, marching two and two, in deep silence, barefooted, with their eyes fixed on tiic ground. These were followed by a company of higher rank, in their most showy apparel, in tlie midst of whom was Mon- tezuma, in a chair or litter, richly ornamented with gold, and feathers of various colors. Four of his principal favorites carried him on their shoulders ; others supported a canopy of curious workmanship over his head. Before him marched three oflicers with r<)ds of gold in their hands, which they lifted up on high at certain intervals, at which signal all the people bowed their heads, and hid their faces, as unworthy to fook on so great a monarch. When he drew near, Cor- tes dismounted, advancing towards him with officious haste, and in a respectful posture. At the same time, Montezuma alighted from his chair, and, leaning on the arms of two of his near relations, approached with a slow and stately pace, his attendants covering the street with cotton cloths, that he might not touch the ground. Cortes accosted him with pro- found reverence, after the European fashion. He returned the salutation according to the mode of his country, by touching the earth with his hand, and then kissing it." Montezuma conducted Cortes to the quarters which he had prepared for his reception, and immediately took leave of him, with a politeness not unworthy of a court more re- fined. " You are now," says he, " with your brothers in your own house ; refresh yourselves after your fatigue, and be happy until I return." The place allotted to the Spaniards for their lodging, was a house built by the father of Montezuma. It was surrounded by a stone wall with towers at proper distances, which served for defence as well as ornament ; and its apartments and courts were so large, as to accommodate both the Spaniards and their Indian allies. In the evening, Montezuma returned to visit his guests, with the same pomp as in the first interview, bringing pres- ents of great value not only to Cortes and his officers, but even to the private men. A long conference ensued, in \ the course of which Montezuma informed Cortes that it was an established tradition among the Mexicans, that their ancestors came originally from a remote region, and conquered the pioneers now subject to his dominion ; that after they were settled there, the great captain who con- ducted this colony, returned to his own country, promising that at some future period his descendants should visit them, assume the government, and reform their constitutional laws ; that from what he had seen and heard of Cortes and his fol- lowers, he was convinced that they were the very persons whose appearance the Mexican traditions and prophecies taught them to expect ; that accordingly he had received them not as strangers, but as relations of the same blood and parentage, and desired that they might consider themselves as masters in his dominions. Nothing could have been more grateful to the crafty Cortes, and he was not backward in improving this tradition- ary acknowledgment to his advantage, and so framed his dis- course as to strengthen the belief, which Montezuma had formed concerning the origin of the Spaniards. Several days were now employed in viewing the city ; the appearance of which, so far superior in the order of its buildings, and the number of its inhabitants, to any place the Spaniards had beheld in America, and yet so little resembling the structure of an European city, filled them with sur- prise and admiration. In a letter addressed to the emperor Charles V., in 1520, Cortes thus describes it : " The great city of Te- mixtitan (a corruption of the true name of Tonoctitlan) is situated in the midst of the,salt water lake, which has its tides like the sea ; and from the city to the continent there are two leagues, whichever way we wish to enter. Four dikes lead to the city : they are made by the hand of man, and are of the breadth of two lances. The city is as large as Seville or Cordova. The streets, (I merely speak of the principal ones,) are very narrow and very long ; some are half dry and half occupied by navigable canals, furnished with very well constructed wooden bridges, broad enough for ten men on horseback to pass at the same time. The market place, twice as large as that of Seville, is surround- ed with an immense portico, under which are exposed for sale all sorts of merchandise, eatables, ornaments made of gold, silver, lead, pewter, precious stones, bones, shells, and 492 FAMILY TOURIST. feathers : delf ware, leather, and spun cotton. .We find hewn stone, tiles, and timber fit for building. There are lanes for game, others for roots and garden fruits ; there are houses where barbers shave the head, (with razors made of •obsidian ;) and there are houses resembling our apothecary shops, where prepared medicines, unguents, and plasters are sold. The market abounds with so many things, that I am unable to name them all to your highness. To avoid confu- sion, every species of merchandise is sold in a separate lane ; every thing is sold by the yard ; but nothing has hitherto been seen to be weighed in the market. In the midst of the great square is a house which I shall call I'Audicucia, in which ten or twelve persons sit constantly for determining any disputes which may arise respecting the sale of goods. There are otJier persons who mix continually with the crowd, to see that a just price is asked* We have seen them break the false measures, which they had seized from the mer- chants." The access to the city from the continent, was by three great dikes or causeways, formed of stones and earth, about thirty feet in breadth. That on the west extended a mile and a half; that oi| the north-west, thrjee miles ; that on the south, six miles. On the east, there was no causeway, owing to the great depth of the lake in that direction, and the city could only be approached by canoes. In each of these causeways were openings at proper intervals, through which the waters flowed, and over these were laid beams of timber covered with earth. The city was adorned with /lumerous temples, one of whicii, the Tencalli, or great temple of Mexitti, was par- ticularly distinguished. This was a truncated pyramid, 120 feet high, and 318 square at its base, situated in the midst of a vast inclosure of walls, and consisting of five stories. When seen from a distance, it appeared an enormous cube, with small altars covered with wooden cupolas on the top. The point where these cupolas terminated, was 177 feet above the pavement of the inclosure. The material of which the pyramid was built, is supposed to have been clay, faced with a porous stone, resembling pumice stone, hard and smooth, but easily destructible. Humboldt considers this ♦edifice as bearing a strong resemblance in form to the tem- ple or tower of Babel, which was dedicated to Jupiter Be- -tt 1 ■ • . 1 ! GREAT p 1 1 SQUARI BHii i Pi/ |9l 1 W M o p i |i 1 IHI' '' \ tJ 1 ' 'H IHII'" ^^ ^c^Mgjii lii'ii iiii iiiiiiiiii II 1 i HHKa n iliilllB^ y*X- ^ w *M. ^-^ FAMILY TOURIST. _ 495 lus. This temple was finished and dedicated in the year 148G, at whicli time, according to Torquemada, 72,324 human beings, who had been taken prisoners in war, were sacrificed. The public buildings and houses of the nobles were of stone ; those of the common people were partly constructed of wood, and partly of a spongy stone, light and easily broken. The population of the city at the time of the conquest by Cortes, is variously estimated from sixty thousand to a million and a half. The former is the estimate of Dr. Robertson. Montezuma II., who was the reigning monarch, at the time of the expedition of Cortes, and who held his court within the city, was esteemed a person of great bravery, but exceedingly fond of pomp and power. He was elected to the throne in 1592. The ceremony of his coronation was performed with greater pomj) than had ever before been witnessed in Mexico. The altars streamed with the blood of human victims offered in his barbarous sacrifices. The pageantry of his royal household exceeded that of the prin- ces of the east. Every-»morning six hundred feudatory lords and nobles were required to pay court to him. " They passed the whole day in the ante-chamber, where none of their servants were permitted to enter, conversing in a low voice, and waiting the order of their sovereign. The ser- vants who accompanied these lords, were so numerous as to occupy three small courts of the palace, and many waited in the streets. The women about the court were not less in number, including those of rank, servants, and slaves. All this numerous female tribe lived shut up in a kind of se- raglio, under the care of some noble matrons, who watched over their conduct, as these kings were extremely jealous, and every piece of misconduct which happened in the pal- ace, however slight, was severely punished. Of these women, the king retained those who pleased him ; the others he gave away as a recompense for the services of his vassals. All the feudatories of the crown were obliged to reside for some months of the year at the court ; and at their return to their states, to leave their sons or brothers behind them as hostages, which the king demanded as a security for their fidelity ; on which account they were required to keep houses in Mexico. I 4. 496 FAMILY TOURIST. The forms and ceremonials introduced at court, were another effect of the despotism of Montezuma. No one could enter the palace, either to serve the king, or to confer with him on any business, without pulling olf his shoes and stockings at the gate. No person was allowed to appear before the king in any pompous dress, as it was deemed a want of respect to majesty ; consequently the greatest lords, excepting the nearest relations of the king, stripped them- selves of the rich dress which they wore, or at least covered it with one more ordinary, to show tlieir humility before him. All persons on entering the hall of aurlience, and be- fore speaking to the king, made three bows, saying at the first, ** lord ; " at the second, " mi/ lord ; '' and at the third, ** great lord." They spoke low and with the head inclined, and received the answers which the king gave tliem, by means of his secretaries, as attentively and liumbly, as if it had been the voice of an oraC^le. In taking leave, no person ever turned his back upon the throne The audience hall served also for his dining room. The table was a large pillow, and hia seat, a low chair. The tablecloth, napkins, and towels were of cotton, but very fine, white, and always perfectly clean. The kitchen uten- sils were of the earthen ware of Cholula; but none of these things were served him more than once, as immediately af- terwards he gave tliem to one of his nobles. The cups in which they prepared his chocolate and other drinks of the cocoa, were of gold, or .some beautiful seashell, or naturally formed vessels curiously varnished. He had gold plate, but it was used only on certain festivals, in the temple. The number and variety of dishes at his table amazed the Spaniards, who saw them. The conqueror Cortes says, that they covered the floor of a great hall, and that there were dishes of every kind of game, fish, fruit, and herbs of that country. Three or four hundred noble youths carried this dinner in form, presented it as soon as the king sat down to table, and immediately retired ; and, that it might not grow cold, every dish was accompanied with its chafing-dish. The king marked, with a rod which he had in his hand, the meats which he chose, and the rest were distributed among the nobles, who were in the ante-chamber. Before he sat down, four of the most beautiful women of his seraglio pre- FAMILY TOURIST. 497 seated water to him to wash his hands, and continued stand- ing all the time of his dinner, together with six of his princi- pal ministers, and his carver. As soon as the king sat down to table, the carver shut the door of the hall, that none of the other nobles might see him eat. The ministers stood at a distance, and kept a profound silence, unless when they made answer to what the king said. The carver and the four women served the dishes to him, besides two others, who brought him bread made of maize, baked with eggs. He frequently heard music during the time of his meal, and was entertained with the humorous sayings of some deformed men, whom he kept out of mere state. He showed much satisfaction in hearing them, and observed, that amongst their jests, they frequently pronounced some important truth. When dinner was over he took tobacco mixed with liquid amber, in a pipe or reed beautifully varnished, and with the smoke of it put himself to sleep. After having slept a little, upon the same low chair, he gave audience, and listened attentively to all that was com- municated to him, and answered every one by his ministers or secretaries. After giving audience, he was entertained with music, being much delighted with hearing the glorious actions of his ancestors sung. At other times, he amused himself with seeing various games played. When he went abroad, he was carried on the shoulders of the nobles, in a litter covered with rich canopy, attended by a numerous retir nue of courtiers; and wherever he passed, every person stopped with their eyes shut, as if they feared to be dazzled with the splendor of majesty. When he alighted from the litter, to walk on foot, they spread carpets, that he might not touch the earth with his feet. The grandeur and magnificence of his palaces, houses of pleasure, woods, and gardens, were correspondent to this majesty. The palace of his usual residence was a vast edi- fice of stone and lime, which had twenty doors to the public squares and streets; three great courts, in one of which was a beautiful fountain ; several halls, and more than a hun- dred chambers. Some of the apartments had walls of mar- ble, and other valuable kinds of stone. The beams were of cedar, cypress, and other excellent woods, well finished and carved. Among the halls, there was one so large, that, ac- 32 498 FAMILY TOURIST. cording to the testimony of an eyewitness of veracity, it could contain three thousand people. Besides this palace, he had others, both within and without the capital. In Mexico, besides the seraglio for his wives, there was lodging for all his ministers and counsellors, and all the officers of his household and court ; and also accommodation for for- eign lords, who arrived there, and particularly for the two allied kings. The great temple to which allusion has already been made, occupied the centre of the city, and was enclosed with a wall of a square form, between which and the temple, Cortes affirms, a town of five iiundred houses might have been built. Numerous priests were attached to this temple. Their dress did not differ from that of the common people, except a black cotton mantle, which they wore in the man- ner of a veil upon their heads. The monastic priests were clothed in black. They never shaved, but twisted their beards with thick cotton cords, and bedaubed them with ink. Among other services, which they performed, was that of effecting their sacrifices, which consisted chiefly of human victims. In general the victims suffered death by having their breasts opened ; but others were drowned in the lake, others died of hunger, shut up in the caverns of the moun- tains, and some fell in the gladiatorial sacrifice. The usual place of offering was the temple, in the upper area of which stood the altar destined for ordinary sacrifices. The altar of the great temple of Mexico, was a green stone convex above, about three feet high, as many broad, and more than five feet long. A victim who was to be sacrificed, was ex- tended upon the altar, four priests held his legs and arms, and another kept his head firm with a wooJen instrument, made in form of a coiled serpent, which was put about his neck. The inhuman Topiltzin, or chief priest, then ap- proached, and with a cutting knife, made of flint, dexter- ously opened his breast, and tore out his heart, which, while yet palpitating, he offered to the sun, and afterwards threw it at the feet of the particular idol to which the sacrifice was made. If the victim was a prisoner of war, the officer or soldier to whom the prisoner belonged, carried the body to his house, to be boiled and dressed, as an entertainment to £ / 1 nSi^ K HhIIII^^ \ BUiilHiiiii ' HHHJIP*'^^ ^v^^^^^ \\.-a\ \ Wt^m^Wk \ li^^^^^ ' •^ " v^ ^^^^KK^mW^^ o ^ 'll^^^^^^^^^^^l^^SHUl^ W l/fr , 2m' SS "^ -V. '^^^HH^HS^^B)llP~ 1 y x^^" — "///a' '^•J^MhR g l^^^^^^^~j^^^!|B|^ iKTl / , .mMT^^^^V^ 'W ' o ^^^^^^^^^fe*.',.:..fn 'SJ■^I^^ /jB^j ^^'^^'v^ % b^^g^j^StJ^iigiM^^'^rNV m^ \ a i^^^^9[^^^s^Sn<'''^i''/# <• >^^^^^^ «k \ > HB^P^Ba^^^.jJit'lt*a^Mi ^~ W^H^Bfe^ljlliii^. 2 Snff?T^^^^^p3aZii-3XSM^>^ ^^^^^^^^^BK^^ tV^ ' '^ ^^^^^^^^^pP^,^/ "^^^^^^Jl^^y^^^ 2 ^^^^^^^^^5|^^i^p^^^^^^^^L'#7^^l^ o ^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^aii'll\\\lni^V*^ ^^^^^^^^^B^P^bb//^^^^3h^ K x'^^^S^39BB59^BBiiiiil9^^: ^\\ ^IH^B^^^^r^^HHI^^%5^^v«' ^ ^i k-^ ^^;^^^M»iiSf^^^^^^^i^^i^^^^^ ^%. ^^^^^^ T^k ^^^HBH^^^^a /i*^^^^ "fd^^^mr ^^^'^- ^^---^JHfc ^d^ / ' iks^^^^Sm /v^^^^^^^^^T / ' rm^^SS^^^m / 1 /KmhS^^^^'^ / ' [tm^^^^^ \ m ♦ J ■* FAMILY TOURIST. 503 his friends. If the victim was a slave purchased for sacri- fice, the proprietor carried off the body from the altar for the same purpose. The most celebrated sacrifice among the Mexicans was that called by the Spaniards the gladiatorial. Only prison- ers who were renowned for their bravery were permitted to die by it. The prisoner was placed on a large round stone, in figure like a millstone. He was armed with a shield and a short sword, and tied by one foot. A Mexican officer or soldier, better accoutred in arms, mounted to combat with him. Usually a dreadful contest succeeded. If the prisoner was vanquished, he was carried, dead or alive, to the altar of the common sacrifices, where his heart was taken out, while the victor was applauded by the assembly, and rewarded by the king with some military honor. If the prisoner succeed- ed in conquering six different combatants, he was granted his life, set at liberty, and returned with glory to his native country. The number of human victims which were annually sacri- ficed on the altars of Mexico, and in different places of the empire, is said to have amounted to 20,000. Some writers affirm that this number were sacrificed in the capital alone. For many years the most bloody wars, the most inhuman sacrifices and cannibal feasts, had disgraced the city and em- pire, and had long cried to Heaven for its avenging justice upon the authors of these most awful crimes. In Cortes we seem to see the unconscious minister of the Divine wrath upon the guilty Montezuma, his officers and priests. Not that Cortes' can be justified in the violent methods to which he resorted ; he obviously had no intention of fulfilling the Divine will, and become the minisiter of Heaven's ven- geance; but however guilty he may have been, we cannot fail to see that the retributions of the infinite God were just upon a king and people who were laden with such guilt. Cortes and his companions, according to the Abbe Clavi- gero, discovered among the Mexicans various games and feats, which were practised by way of amusement, and at the same time to give agility to their limbs, and accustom them to the fatigues of war. We shall notice but two which are thus de- scribed by the above historian. " The exhibition of the fliers, which was made on great 504 FAMILY TOURIST. festivals, and particularly in secular years, was, though of less public benefit, more celebrated than all others. They sought in the woods for an extremely lofty tree, which, af- ter stripping it of its branches and bark, they brought to the city and placed in the centre of some large square. They cased the front of the tree in a wooden cylinder, which, on account of some resemblance in its shape, the Spaniards called a mortar. From this cylinder hung some strong ropes which served to support a square frame. In the space be- tween the cylinder and the frame, they fixed four other thick ropes, which they twisted as many times round the tree as there were revolutions to be made by the fliers. These ropes were drawn through four holes, made in the middle of the four planks of which the frame consisted. The four principal fliers, disguised like eagles, herons, and other birds, mounted the tree with great agility, by means of a rope which was laced about it from the ground up to the frame ; from the frame they mounted one at a time succes- sively upon the cylinder, and having danced there a little, they tied themselves round with the ends of the ropes, which were drawn through the holes of the frame, and launch- ing with a spring from it, began their flight with their wings expanded. The action of their bodies put the frame and cylinder in motion ; the frame, by its revolutions, gradually untwisted the cords by which the fliers swung ; so that as the ropes lengthened, they made so much the greater circles in their flight. Whilst these four were flying, a fifth danced upon the cylinder, beating a little drum, or waving a flag, without the smallest apprehension of the danger he was in of being precipitated from such a height. The others who were upon the frame, (there having been ten or twelve per- sons generally who mounted,) as soon as they saw the fliers in their last revolution, precipitated themselves, in order to reach the ground at the same time, amid the acclamations of the populace. Those who precipitated themselves in this manner by the ropes, that they might make a still greater display of their agility, frequently passed from one rope to another, at that part where, on account of the little dis- tance there was between them, it was possible for them to do so. The exercises also which, in some countries, are called the powers of Hercules, were extremely common among J K I FAMILY TOURIST. 509 them. One man began to dance; another, placed upright on his shoulders, accompanied him in his movements ; while a third, standing upright on the head of the second, danced and displayed other instances of agility. They placed also a beam upon the shoulders of two dancers, while a third danced upon the end of it. The first Spaniards, who were witnesses of these and other exhibitions of the Mexicans, were so much astonished at their agility, that they suspected some supernatural power assisted them, forgetting to make a due allowance for the progress of human genius, and assist- ed by application and labor. Although Montezuma had in effect surrendered the city, and also his dominions, into the hands of Cortes, as has al- ready been noticed, the latter began to feel that his situa- tion was perilous. A single turn of circumstances might expose both himself and his followers to ruin. His only means of securing the advantage, which he had obtained, seemed to lie in obtaining possession of the person of Montezuma- This measure, however, startled the more timid of his followers; but their objections were soon over- ruled by the more pressing considerations of necessity. A pretext for this act of hostility soon presented itself Mes- sengers arrived from Vera Cruz, where Cortes had left a small garrison, informing Cortes, that Qualpopoca, one of Montezuma's generals, had attacked it, and had mortally wounded the commander of the garrison with seven of his men. On receiving this intelligence, mortifying and alarming to Cortes, the latter, accompanied by several of his officers, sought an interview with Montezuma- Thirty chosen men followed, not in regular order, but sauntering at some dis- tance, as if they had no object but curiosity. The remain- der of his troops were ordered under arms, re^ady to sally out on the first alarm. On being admitted to the presence of Montezuma, the Mexican attendants retiring as usual, Cor- tes informed the monarch of the assauJt upon the garrison, and demanded an explanation. Montezuma asserted his own innocence, and as a proof of it gave orders instantly to bring Q,ualpopoca and his accomplices, prisoners to Mexi- co. Cortes replied that it would be more convincing proof of the monarch's innocence, if he would remove from his pal- ace, and take u,p his residence for a time in the Spanish >n 510 FAMILY TOURIST. quarters. To this strange proposal, Montezuma at first, through indignation, could hardly reply, but at length he haughtily answered, " That persons of his rank were not ac- customed voluntarily to give up themselves as prisoners ; and were he mean enough to do so, his subjects would not permit such an affront to be offered to their sovereign ! " Cortes, unwilling to employ force, endeavored alternately to soothe and to intimidate him. The altercation became warm, and having continued above three hours, Velasquiz de Leon, an impetuous and gallant young jnan, exclaimed with impatience, " Why waste more time in vain ? Let us either seize him instantly, or stab him to the heart." The threatening voice and fierce gestures, with which these words were uttered, struck Montezuma. The Spaniards, he was sensible had now proceeded so far, as left him no hope that they would recede. His own danger was imminent, the neces- sity unavoidable. He saw both, and abandoning himself to his fate, complied with their request. His officers were called. He communicated to them his resolution. Though astonished and afflicted, they presumed not to question the will of their master, but carried him in silent pomp, all bathed in tears, to the Spanish quarters. When it was known that the strangers were conveying away the emperor, the people broke out with the wildest transports of grief and rage, threatening the Spaniards with immediate destruction, as the punishment justly due to their impious audacity. But as soon as Montezuma appeared, with a seem- ing gayety of countenance, and waved his hand, the tumult was hushed ; and upon his declaring it to be of his own choice, that he went to reside for some time among his new friends, the multitude, taught to revere every intimation of their sove- reign's pleasure, quietly dispersed. Thus was a powerful prince seized by a few strangers in the midst of li;s capital, at noonday, and carried off as a prisoner, without opposition, or bloodshed. History con- tains nothing parallel to this event, either with respect to the temerity of the attempt, or the success of the execu- tion. Montezuma was received in the Spanish quarters with all the ceremonious respect which Cortes had promised. He was attended by his own domestics, and served with his usual state. His principal officers had free access to him, and he carried on every function of government, as if he FAMILY TOURIST. 511 had been at perfect liberty. The Spaniards, however, watched him with the scrupulous vigilance, which was natural in guarding so important a prize, endeavoring at the same time to soothe and reconcile him to his situation, by every external demonstration as regards attachment. But from captive princes the hour of humiliation and suffering is never far distant. Clualpopoca, his son, and five of the prin- cipal officers who served under him, were brought prisoners to the capital, in consequence of the orders which Montezu- ma had issued. The emperor gave them up to Cortes, that he might inquire into the nature of their crimes, and deter- mine their punishment. They were formally tried by a Span- ish court-martial ; and, though they had acted no other part than what became loyal subjects and brave men, in obeying the orders of their lawful sovereign, and in opposing the in- vaders of their country, they were condemned to be burnt alive. The execution of such atrocious deeds is seldom long suspended. The unhappy victims were instantly led forth. The pile on which they were laid, was composed of the weapons collected in the royal magazine for the public defence. Just before Clualpopoca was led out to suffer, Cortes entered the apartment of Montezuma, followed by some of his officers, and a soldier carrying a pair of fetters ; and ap- proaching the monarch with a stern countenance, told him, that as the persons who were now to undergo the punish- ment which they merited, had charged him as the cause of the outrage committed, it was necessary that he likewise should make atonement for that guilt ; then turning away abruptly, without waiting for a reply, commanded the sol- diers to clap the fetters on his legs. The orders were in- stantly executed. The disconsolate monarch, trained up with an idea that his person was sacred and inviolable, and considering this profanation of it as the prelude of immediate death, broke out into loud lamentations and complaints. His attendants, speechless with horror, fell at his feet, bathing them with tears ; and bearing up the fetters in their hands, endeavored with officious tenderness to lighten their pressure. Nor did their grief and despondency a^ate, until Cortes returned from the execution, and, with a cheerful countenance ordered the fetters to be taken off. As Mon- tezuma's spirits had sunk with unmanly dejection, they now MONTEZUMA CHAINED BV ORDER OP COETEZ. RETREAT OF CORTEZ. FAMILY TOURIST. 513 rose into indecent joy ; and with an unbecoming transition, he passed at once from the anguish of despair to transports of gratitude and expressions of fondness towards his de- liverer. The spirit of Montezuma was now not only overawed, but subdued. During six months that Cortes remained in Mex- ico, the monarch continued in the Spanish quarters, with an appearance of satisfaction and even tranquillity. His min- isters and officers atter/ded him as usual. The affairs of the government were conducted in his name. But Cortes was the real ruJer of the empire, and he took every precaution to strengthen and fortify his power. One thing, however, was wanting to complete his security. He wished to have such a command of the lake, as might insure a retreat, should the Mexicans suddenly arm themselves against him, and break down the bridges or causeways, in order to enclose him in the city. In order to obtain this, without giving disgust to the em- peror or his court, Cortes artfully influenced the curiosity of the Indians with accounts of the Spanish shipping, and those floating palaces that moved with such velocity on the water, without the assistance of oars; and when he found that the monarch himself was extremely desirous of seeing such a novelty, he gave him to understand, that nothing was wanting to his gratification besides a few necessaries from Vera Cruz, for that he had workmen in his army capable of building such vessels. The bait took with Montezuma; and he gave immediate orders that all his people should as- sist Cortes in whatever he should direct concerning the shipping. By this means, in a few days, two brigantines were got ready, full rigged and equipped ; and Montezuma was invited on board, to make the first trial of their sailing, of which he could form no idea. Accordingly he embarked for this purpose, and gave orders for a great hunting upon the water, in order that all his people might be diverted with the novelty presented by the Spaniards. On the day ap- pointed, the royal equipage was ready early in the morning ; and the lake was covered with a multitude of boats and ca- noes loaded with people. The Mexicans had augmented the number of their rowers on board the royal barges, with an intention to disgrace the Spanish vessels, which they re- garded as clumsy^ unwieldy, and heavy. But they were sooa undeceived ; a fresh gale starting up, the brigantines hoisted 33 514 FAMILY TOURIST. sail, to the utter astonishment of all the spectators, and soon left all the canoes behind ; while the monarch exulted in the victory of the Spaniards, without once considering that now he had effectually riveted his own chains. Cortes having obtained this important point, next insisted that Montezuma should acknowledge himself a vassal to the crown of Castile. With this requisition, humiliating as it was, Montezuma complied. But when Cortes attenipt- ed to alter the religion of the monarch, and his people, and began to throw down the idols in the great temple, the priests took up arms, and the whole city, at their instigation, rose in defence of their gods. In order to appease the tu- mult, Cortes was obliged to desist from the attempt, and soon after was informed by the emperor that his gods demanded that he and his followers should instantly depart from the empire. Several other circumstances united to render the situation of Cortes critical and dangerous, and it was judged advisa- ble both by himself and his officers, to retire from the city. This he now did, leaving a hundred and fifty men as a gar- rison to guard the capital, and the captive emperor. Soon after the departure of Cortes, Alvarado, the commander of the Spanish garrison, attacked the inhabitants, during one of their solemn festivals, in the very court of their great temple, and massacred great numbers. This atrocious outrage raised the whole population against them — their two brigantines were seized and destroyed — their magazine of provisions was reduced to ashes, and several of the Span- ish soldiers were killed and wounded. Messengers were immediately despatched to Cortes, who, at the head of his Spaniards and an auxiliary force of two thousand Flasca- laus, returned to the capital. The haughty conduct of Cor- tes on his return, so exasperated the Mexicans, that they re- newed the assault on the Spaniards with undaunted courage and implacable ferocity. At every discharge of the Span- ish artillery, multitudes of the Mexicans fell ; but at length Cortes was obliged to retreat, and, moreover, was himself wounded in the hand. On renewing the assault the next morning, the Mexicans were grieved and astonished to behold their captive sovereign advancing towards them, and to hear him exhorting them to cease from hostilities. A sullen murmur of disapproba- FAMILY TOURIST. 515 tion succeeded to his discourse, which at length broke out into the most furious rage : flights of arrows and volleys of stones were poured on the ramparts ; and before the Spanish soldiers appointed to guard Montezuma had time to cover him with their shields, he was wounded with two arrows, and St stone which struck him on the temple brought him to the ground. On seeing ^their monarch fall, the Mexicans, horror struck, fled with precipitation. Montezuma, scorning to survive this last humiliation, tore from his wounds the bandages which the Spaniards had applied to them, and with Indian constancy refused all nourishment, till death speedily terminated his sufferings. The death of their captive rendered a retreat on the part of the Spaniards, a measure indispensable. From this time, for the following six months, the tide of fortune appeared to turn against Cortes. His retreat was rendered painful and hazardous by the exasperated Mexicans, who in every possible manner annoyed him, and on several oc- casions nearly succeeded in the utter destruction of him- self and followers. In December, however, his prospects brightened. Accessions had been made to his numbers, so that he still mustered 550 infantry, of whom four score were armed with muskets or crossbows, 40 horsemen, and nine fieldpieces. At the head of these, together with 10,000 Indians, he once more took up his march towards Mexico. On the death of Montezuma, the Mexicans had raised his brother Quetlavaca to the throne, under whose direction those spirited measures were adopted, which had issued in the expulsion of the Spaniards. Under his direction, the capital and kingdom were put in a state of defence; but in the midst of his sagacious arrangements, duetlavaca was cut off" by the smallpox. In his stead, the Mexicans elected Guati- mozin, (duauhtemotzin,) his nephew, and the son-in-law of Montezuma, who, by his bravery, sufficiently justified their choice. On entering the Mexican territories, Cortes proceeded to Tezcuco, the second city in the empire, situated on the banks of the lake, about twenty miles from Tenochtitlan. Here he established his head quarters, and proceeded to attack successively several of the towns situated round the FAMILY TOURIST. 517 lake, compelling them to submit to the Spanish crown, or reducing them to ruins. In tlie mean while, several brig- antines were preparing with the ultimate design of making an attack upon the capital itself. Siege at length was laid to the place, and on the third of July a general assault was made with a view to take the city by storm. In this day's action, however, Cortes was out-manoeuvred by the Mexicans, and the rout of the Spaniards was complete. While en- deavoring to save his men, Cortes himself was laid hold of by some of the Mexicans, who were hurrying him off in tri- umph, when two of his officers rescued him at the expense of their own lives ; but he received several dangerous wounds, before he could break loose. The situation of Cortes was, for a time, dispiriting ; but, at length, for reasons not all explained, Indians to the number of many thousands flocked to his standard, and signally increased his force. In the mean while, the stores which Guatimozin had laid up, were exhausted by the mul- titudes, who had crowded into the capital to defend their sovereign, and the temples of their gods ; and the brigan- tines rendered it almost impossible to convey to the be- sieged any supply. Infected distempers now attacked the crowded and famished population, and filled up the meas- ure of their sufferings. Yet still, the haughty spirit of the Mexican monarch rejected with scorn every overture of peace ; and every inch of ground was disputed with the in- vaders, till three-fourths of the city had been laid in ruins. Not before then, was Guatimozin persuaded to attempt his escape. To facilitate this measure, they endeavored to amuse Cortes with overtures of submission; but Sandoval had orders to watch every movement of the enemy. Ob- serving some Ifirge canoes rowing across the lake with ex- traordinary rapidity, he instantly gave the signal to chase, and the swift sailing brigantine soon overtook them, and was preparing to fire, when at once the rowers dropped their oars, while all on board, with loud cries, conjured him to forbear, as the emperor was there. The Spaniards eagerly seized their prize, who preserved a dignified composure, and, when con- ducted to Cortes, manifested in his deportment, neither the sullen fierceness of a barbarian, nor the dejection of the sup- pliant. The historians have put into his mouth on this oc- casion, a speech breathing the Roman heroism : " I have 518 FAMILY TOURIST. done what became a monarch. I have defended my people to the last extremity. Nothing now remains but to die. Take this dagger, (laying his hand on one which Cortes wore,) plant it in my breast, and put an end to a life, which can no longer be of use." As soon as the fate of their monarch was known, the resistance of the Mexicans ceased, and on the thirtieth of August, after a siege of seventy-five days, Cortes took possession of what remained of Tenochtitlan. But little booty was found amid the ruins of the city. Under a sus- picion that Guatimozin had large treasures concealed, Cortes subjected the captive monarch and his chief favor- ite to torture for the purpose of forcing from them a dis- closure. Overcome by the agony, the minister is said to have besought his master for permission to reveal the se- cret. Guatimozin sternly replied : ** Am I reposing on a bed ofjloioers?" And by this reproach, the favorite in silence expired. Guatimozin was released from the torture, but soon after, on a pretended charge of having secretly conspired to excite a revolt, he was hung upon a tree, and, according to Humboldt, was hung by his feet to lengthen out his torments. Cortes took immediate measures to rebuild the capital, on a magnificent plan, and by the year 1524, such was the con- course of native assistants employed by him, that the new city numbered 30,000 inhabitants. Having completed our account of the ancient Mexico, with such historical incidents relating to it as are most in- teresting, we shall proceed to introduce our fellow travellers to the modern Mexico. Tenochtitlan was built, as has already been mentioned, on a group of islands, in the midst of a lake. The present city occupies nearly the same place with the ancient ; yet, owing to the diminution of the lake Tezcuco, its centre is nearly 15,000 feet distant from that lake. The surround- ing lakes appear to have been on the decrease, long before the arrival of the Spaniards; but since that period the waters have dried up more rapidly, owing to several causes, but chiefly to a deep cut or drain, by which the waters which for- merly flowed into the lake Tezcuco have been directed to another course. 4 INTERIOR OP A MEXICAN HOUSE. i FAMILY TOURIST. 521 " Mexico," says Humboldt, " is undoubtedly one of the finest cities ever built by Europeans in either hemisphere. With the exception of Petersburg, Berlin, Philadelphia, and some quarters of Westminster, there does not exist a city of the same extent, which can l)e compared with the capital of New Spain, for the uniform level of the ground on which it stands, for the regularity and breadth of the streets, and the extent of the public places. The architec- ture is generally of a very pure style ; and there are even edifices of very beautiful structure. The exterior of the houses is not loaded with ornament. Two sorts of hewn stone are used, which give to the Mexican buildings an air of solidity, and sometimes of magnificence. There are none of those wooden balconies and galleries to be seen, which disfigure so much all the European cities in botii the Indies. The ballustrades and gates are all of Biscay iron, ornament- ed with bronze ; and the houses, instead of roofs, have ter- races, like those in Italy, and other southern countries However, it must be agreed, that it is much less from the grandeur and beauty of the public buildings, than from the breadth and straightness of its streets, and from its uniform regularity, its extent, and its position, that the capital at- tracts the admiration of Europeans." Many of the streets, Mr. Bullock states, are nearly two miles in length, perfectly level and straight, and with the ends terminating in a view of the mountains that surround the valley. The houses are, in general, of a uniform height, most of them having three stories, each from fifteen to twenty feet high. The fronts of most of the houses, like those of Puebla, are painted in distemper, white, crimson, brown, or light gre&n ; and, owing to the dryness of the atmosphere, they retain their beauty unimpaired many years. Some have inscriptions upon them taken from scripture, or stanzas ad- dressed to the Virgin. Numbers of houses are entirely covered with glazed porcelain, in a variety of elegant designs and patterns, often with subjects from sacred history, giving the whole a rich and mosaic-like appearance. The walls of the great staircases are frequently covered in the same man- ner, and mixed with a profusion of gilding, which, in con- trast with the blue and white porcelain, has really a splendid effect. The walls of several of the churches are finished in the same manner. The Plaza Major ^ or grand square, is one of the first that 522 FAMILY TOURIST. is to be seen in any metropolis. The east side is occupied by the cathedral ; the north, by the splendid palace of the viceroy ; the south, by a fine row of houses, in the centre of which is the palace of the Marquess de Valle, (Cortes,) now called the Casa del Estado ; and the west has a range of buildings, with a piazza in front, consisting of many good shops, public offices, granaries, &lc. About the centre of the square is a colossal equestrian statue of Charles IV., on a pedestal of Mexican marble ; said to be the finest specimen of casting in the new world. The Cathedral, which stands on the ruins of the great teocalli, or temple of the god Mexitli, is a somewhat hetero- geneous edifice. The front is very singular. One part of it is low, and of bad Gothic architecture ; the other part, which is of recent construction, is in the Italian style, and has much symmetry and beauty. Its two handsome towers are ornamented with pilasters and statues. ** The interior is imposing, — larger, loftier, and more magnificent than the cathedral of Puebla. The distribution is the same, but the great altar not quite so rich. The dome is bold, and is painted with great taste. The sanctuaries contain some tol- erable paintings, and are neatly ornamented. On the whole, this church would do credit to any city in Europe." It is about 500 feet in length. " On entering," says Mr. Bullock, " I felt something like disappointment, notwithstanding the extent and magnificence of the interior. The centre is nearly filled by the ponderous erections, which entirely ob- struct its otherwise fine appearance, and the high altar is, as well as that in the cathedral of Puebla, too large for the place it occupies. Like most of the churches in this country, it is loaded with a profusion of massive carved and gilt orna- ments, pictures, and painted statues. Many of the smaller paintings appeared to be of value, and works of the old Spanish and Italian masters ; but they are so placed, and in such an obscure light, that it is not possible to judge de- cisively of their merit. There are in the apartments ad- joining the cathedral, allegorical and sacred subjects, pic- tures of a prodigious size, and of considerable skill in their composition and design, though few of them are executed by masters held in estimation in Europe.* " The high altar and its appendages are enclosed by a * Notes on Mexico. GROUP ON THE STONE OF SACRIFICES. FAMILY TOURIST. 525 massive railing, of great extent, of cast metal, said to have been founded in China, from models sent from Mexico. The figures which ornament it are very numerous, but of poor execution and design. The metal, resembling brass, is said to be of such value, on account of the gold it contains, that a silversmith of Mexico is said to have made an offer to the bishop to construct a new rail of solid silver, of the same weight, in exchange for it. *' Divine service is celebrated here with great magnifi- cence. Mass is regularly said every half hour, from daylight till one o'clock, exclusive of the high mass, and other occa- sional masses. In no place are religious ceremonies ob- served with greater pomp, or splendor. The procession which 1 saw from this cathedral, far exceeded, in order and regularity, in the grandeur of the vestments, in the costliness and value of the sacred ornaments, and in gold and silver, any thing I ever witnessed. The processions of Rome, or any other city of Europe, sufler much in the comparison." Within the enclosure of the cathedral, (which is of stone pillars and chains,) and sunk in the earth, so that the surface alone is visible, is the remarkable stone called the Stone of Sacrifices. It was found, together with a great number of idols, and other remains of Aztec sculpture, in December, 1790, in digging twenty or thirty feet deep, in order to level the great square. It is of porphyry, about nine feet broad, or twenty-five in circumference, of a cylindrical form. In the centre is a head in relief, surrounded by twenty groups of two figures each, all represented in the same attitude ; and one of the figures is always the same, — a warrior with his right hand resting on the helmet of a man, who is offering him flov/ers in token of submission. The other figure, sup- posed to be a vanquished warrior, wears the dress of the na- tion to which he belongs, and behind him is a hieroglyphic, denoting the conquered province. In the upper surface of the stone, there is a groove of some depth, which is thought to have been designed to let the blood of the victims run off. The Palace, or Government house, is described by Mr. Bullock as a truly magnificent building. " It is nearly square; its front measuring several hundred feet. In its in- terior are four large square courts, round which most of the public oflices are distributed, together with the prison, the mint, the barracks, and the botanic garden." The mint, 526 FAMILY TOURIST. " the largest and richest in the whole world," and the house of separation of the gold and silver, of the ingots and aurif- erous silver, are among the chief objects of interest to a stranger. The works of the mint consist of ten sets of roll- ers, moved by sixty mules, to press out the bars to the re- quired size : fifty-two circular cutters ; nine adjusting ta- bles ; twenty milling-machines and stamping-presses ; and five mills for amalgamating the filings and sweepings. Each stamping-press is said to be capable of coining upwards of 15,000 dollars in ten hours, so that they are able to manu- facture daily from 14 to 15,000 marcs of silver. The silver produced in all the mines of Europe together would not suf- fice, Humboldt states, to employ the mint of Mexico more than fifteen days. The operations, however, are performed in a very awkward manner, and the machinery is very imper- fect. *' At present (1823) about 200 workmen are employ- ed; but when the mines were in full operation, 400 men were engaged, and 80,000 dollars per diem were coined here, independently of what was done by the other mints."* Humboldt has given a table of the annual coinage from 1690 to 1803 inclusive, from which it appears, that the total amount of gold and silver which passed through the mint of Mexico, within that period, (114 years,) was 1,353,452,020 piastres, equal to c£284,224,924 sterling. Another table, furnished by the author of " Notes on Mexico," giving an account of the coinage of gold, and silver, and copper, from 1802 to 1821 inclusive, presents a total of 303,319,928 dollars. The Botanical Garden, which occupies one of the courts of the Viceroy's palace is very small, but it is extremely rich in rare and interesting productions. ** Though situ- ated," says Mr. Bullock, ** in the centre of a large and pop- ulous city, every vegetable production seems in perfect health and vigor. It affords to the stranger a most delightful re- treat from the midday sun ; to the botanist, or admirer of the works of nature, a treat not to be met with elsewhere in New Spain, or perhaps in the world. It is handsomely laid out in the Spanish fashion, with flagged walks, bordered with elegant large pots of flowers. The walks are rendered cool by the creeping plants that are trained over them. They * Humboldt. FAMILY TOURIST. 527 diverge from a large stone basin in the centre, constantly supplied by a fountain with water, which, in small rivulets, spreads itself over every part of this little paradise, imparting freshness and life to thousands of elegant plants and flowers, unknown to the eye of the European, but which here, in a climate of eternal spring, in the open air, bloom and send forth their fragrance without the assistance of man, and pro- duce a very different appearance from the dwarfish, sickly exotics of our hothouses, which, with every possible care and attention, with difficulty linger a few years, without repro- ducing their species. Apples, pears, peaches, quinces, and other European fruits flourish here, in company with bananas, avocatas, and the most delicious sapotas I ever tasted. The celebrated hand-tree, which has excited so much attention among botanists, is in great perfection here." To describe all the public buildings in Mexico, would re- quire a separate publication. An American gentleman counted one hundred and five cupolas, spires and domes, within the limits of the city; and there are said to be fifty- six churches, besides the'cathedrai.* " The convents are thirty-eight in number ; twenty-three of monks, and fifteen of nuns. The Franciscan convent is an immense establish- ment, with an annual income of c£21,000, arising principally from alms. Its church is a fine one, and, as well as the nu- merous apartments, courts, and cloisters, of the monastery, which form a perfect labyrinth, is covered with large paint- ings, describing the miracles and life of the saint. The church of San Domingo, which is attached to the Dominican monastery, is splendidly ornamented. The capitals of the columns and the sanctuaries in the interior are richly gilded, and the whole has an aspect of magnificence. The convent is of great extent, and contains a numerous collection of pictures and statues. In the paved yard, or court, in front of the church, we were shown a large flat stone, with a square hole in its centre, in which, my informant told me, was fixed the stake to which the victims of the Inquisition were formerly fastened, previously to their being burnt. The tribunal was, till its abolition by the ex-emperor, in 1820, under the jurisdiction of the Dominicans." * Notes on Mexico. 528 * FAMILY TOURIST. " The Palace of the Inquisition is on the opposite side of the street, and near the place of execution. In this house, persons accused of ecclesiastical crimes, were confined. I had been told, previously to my arrival in Mexico, of its hor- rible subterraneous cells, in which the wretched captives were imprisoned ; but this must evidently have been an ex- aggeration, as no subterranean places ever existed in the city j of Mexico, nor ever can exist, as whenever the ground is ex- cavated, even for a few feet, water instantly springs up. In ithe great square, while I was digging for the purpose of taking a cast of the sacrificial stone, at only three feet, we were obliged to employ persons constantly to lade out the j water. This palace is very elegant, and exhibits little or no I appearance of the purposes for which it was intended. It was occupied as a polytechnical school at the time I was in the city, but was then on sale. *'In#front of the churches, and in the neighborhood of them," adds this traveller, " we saw an unusual number of .beggars ; and they openly exposed their disgusting sores and deformities, to excite our compassion. No city in Italy con- tains so many miserable beggars, and no town in the world so many blind. This is, I think, to be attributed to constant exposure, want, and the excessive use of ardent spirits. Many are blind from the effects of the smallpox, which be- fore the introduction of vaccination, raged frequently in this country, and was a fatal disease. The Hospital of Jesus, or fie Los Naturales, founded by Cortes, deserves to rank among the most interesting objects in the capital. It is for the maintenance of children and old people, and now unites two separate foundations. " This establishment," says Humboldt, " in which both order and cleanliness may be seen, but little industry, has a revenue of 250,000 francs (=£10,470 sterling.) In one of the rooms are several family portraits, among which, one of the great cap- tain himself Here, too, is shown '* the identical embroid- ered standard under which he wrested the empire from the unfortunate Montezuma ;" also a massive mahogany table which belonged to Cortes. In the chapel, a strong iron-bound chest is exhibited, containing the bones of the conqueror of New Spain. Mr. Bullock was allowed to inspect them, and FAMILY TOURIST. 529 he attentively examined, he says, the cranium ; but all he was enabled to infer from it, was, that the person of Cortes must have been small. Mr. Bullock gives a deplorable account of the present state of the arts in Mexico. *' Not one landscape or archi- tectural painter," he says, '* remains in this great city ; and the only few artists are those who copy religious subjects for the churches, and some who attempt portraits, but they are de- plorably bad. The principal employment for the pencil seems to be in the decorations of coach bodies, and the heads of wooden bedsteads ; and in the metropolis, a ^ew pictures of the Infant Saviour, the Virgin, Magdalen, St. Joseph, St. Anthony, or St. Cuthbert, are the only produc- tions of modern painters which are to be met with. Of the myriads of pictures with which the churches, convents, cloisters, &/C. &c. are crowded, I saw few worth the expense of removing. The churches and cathedrals may, amongst the great numbers with which they are encumbered, have some good ones, and I am inclined to think they have ; but the quantity of light admitted into these superb temples is too little, even in the brightest day, to render it practicable to discover their merits. They are lost to the world in the sacred gloom that pervades the place. The public, too, are prevented from a near approach by clumsy railings ; but from what information I was able to obtain by peeping through, it appeared to me that some of the finest produc- tions of the Italian and Spanish schools may be here buried in oblivion." We must not omit to notice the University and the public library, although both the edifice and the collection are pro- nounced by Humboldt to be unworthy of so great and an- cient an establishment. The university was founded in 1551. The building is very spacious, and the institution is said to be well endowed : there have been as many as 200 students at one time, but there were in 1832 very few. Besides the university, there are inferior and several large schools under the direction of the regular clergy. ** Most of the people in the cities," says the American Traveller, " can read and write. I would not be understood as including the leperos ; but I have frequently remarked men clothed in the garb of extreme poverty, reading the 34 5^ FAMILY TOURIST. gazettes in the street. Of these tiiere are. three published every other day in the week, which afe sold for twelve and a half cents apiece ; and pamphlets and loose sheets are hawked about at a reasonable rate. There are several book- sellers' shops, which are but scantily supplied with books. The booksellers have hitherto labored under all the disadvan- tages of the prohibitory system of the Roman Catholic church, but are now endeavoring to furnish themselves with the best modern works. The few books to be found in the shops are extravagantly dear. There are several valuable private libraries ; and many creoIe gentlemen, who have visited Europe, have a taste both for literature and the fine arts. This is certainly more rare among those who have never been out of their own country. The means of educa- tion are more limited under the colonial system, and liberal studies were discouraged. The Latin language, law, theol- ogy, and philosophy, were taught in the colleges, and only so much of the latter as the clergy thought might be taught with safety. To give some idea of the influence of this class ^ in the city of Mexico, I will merely observe, that there are five hundred and fifty secular, and sixteen hundred and forty- six regular clergy. Humboldt says, that, in the twenty-three convents of monks in the capital, there are twelve hundred individuals, of whom five hundred and eighty are priests and choristers ; and, in the fifteen convents of nuns, there are two thousand one hundred individuals, of whom about nine hundred are professed nuns." The children of the nobility and wealthy inhabitants are principally taught at home. The places of public instruc- tion in the greatest repute, are the Scniinario and San Ilde- fonza. Lancasterian schools were established in the capital by the emperor ; and his ex-majesty assured Mr. Bullock, that it was his intention to extend them throughout the provinces. ** There are now," says this traveller, ** three or four daily papers (1823;) but they contain very little infor- mation ; they are only just beginning to insert advertise- ments gratis, in the same manner as they were in England at the commencement of our newspapers." The Almeda, or public promenade, situated on the north side of the city, did not appear to this traveller worthy of the other establishments. It is laid out in paved walks, di- verging from different centres, with fountains and statues" in id- ■i FAMILY TOURIST. ' 533 very bad taste and worse execution." The roads are wide enough to admit the passage of carriages, and it is much frequented on Sundays and festivals. There is a fountain in the centre supplied with water from the great aqueduct lead- ing from Sante Fe to the city. The water is carried along in trenches, so as to water the plants and trees, and is then discharged into the lake. This aqueduct, which passes close by the Ahneda, is 33,464 feet in length. It is sup- ported on arches of brick and stone, plastered over. The springs of Santa Fe, are near the chain of mountains that separate the valley of Mexico from the Lerma and Toluca. Another aqueduct, 10,826 feet in length, conducts the water of Chapoltepec to the city. The arches of this aqueduct, 904 in number, are nine feet six inches apart ; the columns are four feet thick, and the width is about six feet six inches. The column of water is two feet three inches wide, and two feet deep. There is another drive or ride called the Pas'eo Nucvo, a broad road, raised about three feet above the meadow land that surrounds the city, and planted on both sides with a species of willow, " a tall, stiff, conical tree, resembling the Lorabardy poplar." It is about two miles long, and ter- minates suddenly near a bridge and gate, through which passes the canal of Chalco. The American writer describes it as he saw it, crowded with carriages ; " some whirling rapidly along, and others drawn up round the open circle in the middle of the road, where ladies amuse themselves for hours, examining the equipages that roll by, and nodding, smiling, and shaking their fans, at their acquaintances as they pass. This constitutes the afternoon's amusement of the wealthy. The bodies of their coaches are large, but of very good form, and well painted; a little too fine, as will be thought, when I add, that Guido's Aurora frequently adorns the middle pannel. The carriage is very clumsy ; from the axle of the fore, to that of the hind wheel, the dis- tance is not less than twelve feet ; and there is moreover, a projection of two or three feet before and behind, on which are fastened the leathers that suspend the coach. They are very easy vehicles to ride in.'" Humboldt represents the city of Mexico as distinguished for its excellent police. " The streets, for the most part, 634 FAMILY TOURIST. GUANAXUATO. have very broad pavements; and they are clean and well lighted. These advantages are the fruits of the activity of the Count de Revillagigedo, who found the capital extremely dirty." If in this respect, however, the police is good, in our usual sense of the term it is far otherwise. '* The por- ter of our house," says the American citizen, ** seeing me go out in the evening, when I first arrived, without being armed, remonstrated on vvliat he was pleased to call my rashness ; and on inquiry I found that it was deemed imprudent to do so. I was told that robberies and assassinations were frequent, and that not fewer than 1200 assassinations had been com- mitted since the entrance of the revolutionary army into the capital. On looking over the journals of the first /wn^rt, I perceive that the.se disorders were a frequent subject of de- bate, and were attributed to the soldiery. I could not learn that any of them had been detected and punished. The city, notwithstanding, is lighted, and guarded by watchmen ; the Jiamps are furnished with reverberators, and many of the streets are better lighted than those of New York or Phil- adelphia." The population of the capital, in 1802, was estimated by I;Iumboldt at 137,000 souls ; of whom 2,500 were Euro- peans; 65,000 Creoles ; 26,500 mestizoes, (many of them almost as white as the preceding classes ;) 10,000 mulattoes; and 33,000 copper-colored natives. Of this number, nearly 3,000 were clergy, monks, and nuns. A subsequent census made the population amount to 160,000 souls. GUANAXUATO. This city is situated 140 miles north-west of Mexico. It was founded by the Spaniards, in 1543, and was invested with the privileges of a city in 1741. Although it stands nearly 7,000 feet above the sea, it is entirely screened from view by the windings of a narrow defile, which leads into the recesses of the mountain ; and when the traveller at length finds himself introduced into the city, he has no idea of its extent, one part being so hidden from another, that,viewed from the streets, it appears to be a small town. It is only by as- FAMILY TOURIST. 535 GUANAXUATO. cending the heights, on the opposite side, that a view is gained of the whole valley, broken into ravines, along the sides of which the town is built. Surveyed from this point, the novelty of its situation strikes the stranger with aston- ishment. In some places it is seen, spreading out into the form of an amphitheatre ; in others stretching along a narrow ridge ; while the ranges of habitations, accommodated to the broken ground, present the most fantastic groups. The streets are narrow, crooked, and winding, running across open spaces, which cannot be called squares, for tliey are irregular and of indescribable forms, most of them filled with market stalls. They are spacious, and well built of hewn stone, but the fronts are painted with the gayest colors : light green is the favorite, but some are painted white, green, and red, which, at the time the author of Notes on Mexico visited Guanaxuato,( 1822) were the national colors of Mexico. According to Humboldt, the population of the city was 41,000 ; in the suburbs and mines surrounding it, 29,6D0 : total, 70,600. But from a census taken in May, 1822, the inhabitants of the city appear to have amounted only to 15,379, and the total population only to 35,733 ; being a diminution of one half. Guanaxuato is chiefly celebrated for its gold and silver mines, being the most productive in the world. The first mine began to be worked in 1548, but for a considerable time they attracted but little attention. From 1676 to 1803, they produced gold and silver to the value of 12,720,061 lbs. troy. In 1803, there were employed on the works 5,000 workmen, 1,896 grinding-mills, and 14,618 mules. There have been years so productive, that the net profit of the two proprietors of the single mine of Valenciana amounted to the sura of .£250,000 sterling. When the proprietor began to work the vein of Guanaxuato above the ravine of San Xavier, goats were feeding on the very hill which ten years after- wards was covered with a town of 7 or 8,000 inhabitants. The inhabitants of the city are represented as lively, in- telligent, and well informed, besides being extremely hospita- ble and friendly. In common, however, with the inhabitants of most mining districts, they are passionately fond of gambling. The author whom we have already quoted, re- presents the commandant of the city as a great amateur of cockfighting ; and he remarks that he was not a little an- noyed one morning by the continual crowing of more than a ^ # 536 FAMILY TOURIST. GUANAXUATO. hundred cocks, the property of this worthy person, which, tied by one leg, were arranged along the pavement on both sides of the street : they were to be exhibited at the ensuing Christmas. '* In all the towns and villages of Mexico," he says ** cockfighting is the favorite diversion of the people. Rich and poor, men and women, frequent the pits, and sometimes stake all they are worth on the issue of a battle fought by two cocks armed with shashers." Guanaxuato is liable to two serious inconveniences from its peculiarity of situation. During the rainy season, it is OX|)osed to injury from the violent torrents that rush from the !nountains down the barranca, or ravine, in which the city stands, in their passage to ti»e plain of Celaya. Large sums have been expended on works to restrain these torrents within a channel, notwithstanding which, accidents happen almost every year. On the other hand, the only water in the city, is that which is contained in the cisterns belonging to the wealthy inhabitants. About two miles from the town, however, there are deep ravines, which, by means of dams, are made to serve as reservoirs : the water is brought into the city on the backs of asses, and sold at six cents a load. GUATEMALA GUATEMALA. The country of which Guatemala is the capital, was con- quered by Pedro de Alvarado, an officer who accompanied Cortes into New Spain, and who was sent by the latter to take possession of Guatemala, and receive the subjection of the native kings. Alvarado left Mexico on the 13th of Nov. 1523, accompanied by 300 Spaniards, and a powerful body of Indian auxiliaries. The conquest, though less difficult than that of Mexico, was not effected without considerable bloodshed. The conquest may be dated from May, 1524, at which time a decisive victory was obtained. In November, 1527, a city was commenced by Alvarado, de- signed as the capital of the new government. It was situated upon the skirt of the mountain called the Volcan de Agua, about three leagues from the present city. This continued to be the principal town till 1541, when it was overwhelmed by a mountain torrent, which destroyed most of the buildings, and a greater part of the inhabitants, among whom was the widow of Alvarado. After this calamity, the principal sur- vivors resolved to remove the capital about a league farther, where it would be more secure from inundations from the neighboring hills. Here they founded the city called Old Guatemala^ or La Antigua, on the 22d of October, 1541, and immediately proceeded to erect convents, hospitals, churches, a university, and other public buildings. This city stood in a delightful valley, shut in by mountains and hills of perpetual verdure, and encompassed by meadows and lands, which supplied pasturage to large herds of cattle. Two rivers ran through the valley, and supplied the gardens and meadows, the farms and country houses with every con- venience for irrigation. The climate was delightful, and a perpetual spring presented its varied and perpetual bounties. But this city was destined ta» successive calamities more disastrous, perhaps, than is recorded of any other city on the globe. FAMILY TOURIST. 539 GUATEMALA. In 1558, an epidemic disorder, attended with a violent bleeding at the nose, swept away great numbers of the in- habitants. Four earthquakes, each of which seriously damaged many of the principal buildings, occurred between 1565 and 1581. On the 27th of December, of this latter year, the population was again alarmed by the volcano, which be- gan to emit fire ; and so great was the quantity of ashes thrown out, and spread in the air, that the sun was entirely obscured, and artificial light was necessary in the city at mid- day. Processions were formed to implore the Divine inter- cession ; people confessed themselves aloud in the streets, being persuaded they were on the point of suffering some awful visitation of Providence. A northerly wind, however, at last relieved them from their fears, by dispersing the ashes towards the Pacific ocean, and again allowing them to view the splendor of the sun. On the 14th of January, 1582, the mountain vomited fire with great force for 24 hours succes- sively. " The years 1585-6 were dreadful in the extreme. On January 16th, of the former, earthquakes were felt, and they continued through that and the following year so fre- quently, that not an interval of eight days elapsed, during the whole period, without a shock more or less violent. Fire issued incessantly, for months together, from the moun- tain, and greatly increased the general consternation. The most disastrous of these eruptions took place on the 23d of December, 1586, when the major part of the city again be- came a heap of ruins, burying under them many of the un- fortunate inhabitants : the earth shook with such violence that the tops of the high ridges were torn off, and deep chasms formed in various parts of the level ground ! " * From this time to 1651, the city was visited with pestilence and earthquakes, which destroyed great numbers. On the 18th of February, 1651, about one o'clock, afternoon, a most extraordinary subterranean noise was heard, and imme- diately followed by three violent shocks, at very short inter- vals from each other, which threw down many buildings, and damaged others ; the tiles from the roofs of the houses were dispersed in all directions, like light straws by a gust of wind; the bells of the churches were rung by the vibrations, masses of rock were detached from the mountains; and even the wild beasts were so terrified, that, losing their natural instinct, they quitted their retreats, and sought shelter from * Modern Traveller. 540 FAMILY TOURIST. GDATEMALA. the habitations of men. Among these, a lion of great size and fierceness entered the city, on the southern side, and advanced into the middle of it : he tore down a paper fixed against one of the consistorial houses, and retreated by the streets on the north side. These shocks were repeated fre- quently until the 13th of April. • •' The year 16SG brought with it another dreadful epidem- ic, which, in three months, swept away a tenth part of the inhabitants. Some of them died suddenly ; others expired under the most acute pains of the head, breast, and bowels. No remedy was discovered, that could check its-destructive progress, although many of the deceased were" opened, to endeavor by that means, to come at the cause of the disor- der. So great was the number of the infected, that there was not a sufficient number of priests to administer to them the religious rites. The bells were no longer tolled for the dead, individually, and the corpses were buried en masse in a common grave. From the capital, the pestilence spread to the neighboring villages, and thence to the more remote ones, causing dreadful havoc, particularly among the most robust inhabitants. ** Again, the year 1717 was memorable : on the night of August 27th, the mountain began to emit flames, attended by a continued subterranean rumbling noise. On the night of the 2Sth, the eruption increased to great violence, and very much alarmed the inhabitants. The images of saints were carried in procession, public prayers were put up, day after day; but the terrifying eruption still continued, and was followed by frequent shocks, at intervals, for more than four months. At last, on the night of September 29th, the fate of Guatemala appeared to be decided, and inevitable destruction was apprehended to be at hand. Great was the ruin among the public edifices ; many of the houses were thrown down, and nearly all that remained were dreadfully injured, but the greatest devastation was seen in the church- es. The inhabitants, from what they actually saw, and from what their terrors suggested to them, expected the total sub- version of the place; and nearly all sought refuge in the vil- lages adjacent. After this disaster, they solicited permission of the government to remove to any other spot that might be judged less exposed to the effects of the volcano ; but, by the time the council of the Indies transmitted a license for the removal, they had recovered from the panic, returned to their FAMILY TOURIST. 541 GUATEMALA. dilapidated dwellings, had repaired a great part of the city, and no longer thought of making the transfer. *' But at length the day which was to seal the doom of this ill-fated spot arrived, — the 13th of December, 1773. As early as the month of May, some few slight shocks were per- ceived ; and on the 11th of June a very violent one took place. Its duration was considerable; many houses and several churches were much injured : during the whole of the night, the shocks were repeated at short intervals, and for some days afterwards, with less frequency. About four o'clock, on the afternoon of July 29th, a tremendous vibra- tion was felt, and shortly after began the dreadful convul- sion that decided the fate of the unfortunate city. It is dif- ficult, even for those who were witnesses of this terrible ca- tastrophe, to describe its duration, or the variety of its undu- lation, so entirely did terror and the apprehension of imme- diate annihilation, absorb all powers of reflection. For sev- eral days these shocks continued, and sometimes in such quick succession, that many took place in the short space of fifteen minutes. On the 7th of September there was another, which threw down most of the buildings that were damaged on the 29th of July ; and on the 13th of December, one still more violent terminated the work of destruction." It was now that the inhabitants, wearied with rebuilding, resolved upon removing their situation from the volcanoes, the prolific source of all their miseries. After several ex- aminations a part of the Valley of Mexico, ten leagues from the site of their ruined city, was fixed upon, and here rose the present, or Ncio Guatemala, situated in latitude 14° 37' north, and longitude 90° 30' west — 90 miles from the Atlantic; 26 from the Pacific ; and 400 from the city of Mexico. *' The valley is watered," says Mr. Dunn, in his " Guatema- la," " by several streams and lakes, which conduce to its fer- tility, and the city is surrounded by numerous small villages, which regularly supply its market with the various fruits and vegetables of the country. In point of situation it is cer- tainly inferior to the old city. The scenery is not so roman- tic, nor are the lands immediately adjoining so well culti- vated, yet still it is rich enough in natural beauties to bear, in this respect, comparison with almost any other city in the world. *' Owing to the style in which the houses are built, it oc- cupies a very considerable portion of ground, and appears to 542 I'AMILY TOURIST. OUAtEMALA. an European eye, when viewed from a little distance, much more populous and extensive than it really is. It contains about sixty manazanes, or squares, of houses, formed by the intersection of streets at right angles, which vary in extent from 150 to 350 yards in front, and these are arranged so as to form one large square. On each side of the city, as the suburbs have increased, other houses have been erected, without much regard to uniformity. The streets are mostly broad, but wretchedly paved, with a considerable declivity on each side, which forms a gutter in the middle, so that after a heavy shower of rain, they are almost impassable from the sudden stream of water ; at other times the sharp-pointed and ill-arranged pebbles e.xtort groans from the unhappy suf- ferer, who, in light shoes, is doomed to undergo the misera- ble penance of passing over them. ** In walking through the city, the first thought that strikes a stranger, is, that Guatemala is one of the dullest places he ever entered. This melancholy appearance is occasioned by the way in which the houses are built. Consisting of only one story, and occupying a great deal of ground, they present to the street only a series of whitewashed walls and red tiled roofs, with here and there a window, carefully guarded by large bars of iron, and a pair of massy folding doors, studded on the outside with heavy nails, thus giving to it, at the best of times, more of the appearance of a de- serted than an inhabited city. •* The plaza, or market place, is a square of about 150 yards each way, with a fountain in the middle, and besides the daily market is occupied by numerous temporary shops or stalls, and surrounded by buildings, offices, and shops. Projecting piazzas form a covered walk on three sides, un- der which trifling articles are exposed for sale. The public buildings are numerous, and consist of an university, five convents, four nunneries, a cathedral, four parish churches, and fifteen other churches or chapels of minor importance ; besides a treasury, mint, and other government offices. Most of these are in a good style of architecture, and some of them judiciously decorated. In comparison with the churches of Puebla and Mexico, they may possess few at- tractions, but remembering the circumstances under which they were built, they do credit to the taste of those who su- perintended their erection. " That which chiefly distinguishes Guatemala from the FAMILY TOURIST. 543 GUATEMALA. Other cities of the New World, is its numerous and beautiful aqueducts and pilas for the regular distribution of water all over the metropolis. From a fine spring, which rises in the mountains, at one league and a half south-east of the city, the stream is conducted by means of pipes into no less than twelve public reservoirs, from which it is again carried into every private house, regularly supplying, sometimes one, and oftentimes two or more pilas or stone baths with excellent water. This aqueduct must have cost an immensity of labor to complete, being brought in some places over valleys, upon ranges of arches, and in others under ground by means of tunnels. " The public fountains and reservoirs are many of them of superior workmanship, and ornament the streets in which they are placed. Most of these have rows of troughs con- nected with them, in which those of the lower classes, who have not water in their houses, wash their linen. It 'is amusing to see sometimes thirty or forty women busily em- ployed in this manner, and most industriously rubbing the piece of cloth they wish to clean, against a stone, a plan which is universally pursued, although manifestly to the speedy destruction of the article undergoing the operation. But like many other good housewives, the Gautemalian ladies have their prejudices, and will not be persuaded that hot water is preferable to cold, and would remove the necessity of such rough treatment. " The houses of the respectable citizens are well built, and commodiously arranged. A description of one will give an idea of the rest. Let us enter, then, at that great folding- door, looking like an inn gate, with blank walls on each side. We open it, and immediately find ourselves in a large square court-yard, in the middle of which is an orange-tree in full bloom. All around it is a covered walk or piazza, raised about a foot from the ground, the roof supported by wooden pillars. Under this piazza are seven or eight doors, leading into different apartments, each one having an interior com- munication with the rest, and all of course on the ground floor, stairs being almost unknown in Guatemala. The first room will probably be a common chamber, the next a sala or drawingroom, furnished with ten or a dozen antique chairs, an old-fashioned settee, with a slip of mat before it for a car- pet, and two small dressing-tables, placed at an immense dis- tance from one another, each holding the image of a saint 544 FAMILY TOURIST. GUATEMALA . carefully enclosed in glass. Three or four pictures will adorn the clean whitewashed walls, and two lamps, cased in silver, will be hanging from a roof in which all the native beams are to be seen, with here and there a straggling cob- web. The floor, like that of all the rest of the rooms, will be paved with red tiles, its cleanliness depending upon the civili- zation of its owner. ** From hence we pass into a third apartment, probably the chief bed-chamber, serving also for a daily sitting-room, in which to receive visiters. It will contain a handsome bed, a large mahogany wardrobe, a few chairs, and a cup- board with glass doors, in which may be seen carefully ar- ranged all the stock of china, from the blue wash-hand- ba- sin down to the diminutive coffee-cup, till lately a more valu- ble property than a similar service of silver. By the side of the bed will hang an image of the Saviour on the cross, un- der a little scarlet canopy, and on a small table in anotlier corner will be placed St. Joseph, or the Virgin. The two next rooms will have little furniture besides a bed, a chair, and an image. We shall therefore pass on into the comedor or dining-room, which will contain only one large oak table (a fixture) and seven or eight common wooden chairs. Next to this will be the cocina, in one corner a large baking oven of an open shape, and in the middle of the room a mass of solid brick work, three or four feel high, containing six or seven cavities for small charcoal fires, and conveniences for preparing the thousand different stews which are compound- ed in a Spanish kitchen. To the right of this, will be an in- ner yard with its pila or cistern of water, and further on, the stables, with a second for the use of the cattle. The remain- ing apartments will be occupied according to the property or family of the owner, and this is a fair description of a respect- able house, letting for a rent equal to about .£80 a year, Eng- lish money, m the city of New Guatemala." The immoderate use of tobacco by both sexes is thus noticed by Mr. Dunn. '* In private or in public — alone or in socie- ty, the Guatemalian must have his cigar, and the lady her ci- garrito* His proudest accomplishment is to strike a light * A diminntive cigar, made by rolling a small portion of tobacco in the leaf of maize : ten of these are esteemed equal to a common cigar, called for the sake of distinction, purros. FAMILY TOURIST. 545 GUATEMALA. with his pocket match, neatly cased in silver, and present his lighted cigar to her genteelly, and she in return permits hira to spit in every corner of her room, without molestation. A gentleman consumes daily from fifteen to twenty purros, and a Hdy of moderate pretensions to celebrity, fifty cigarritos. No business can be transacted, no bargain made without ex- changing the cigar, and both in the streets and public places, of amusement, the ladies are to be seen smoking as com- posedly as in their own houses." The following amusing account is given by the same au- thor, of the occupations of a domestic man during one day. "At six he rises, ahd if it be one of their numerous feast days, accompanies his wife to mass, at which, rich and poor, master and servants, indiscriminately kneel without distinction of rank Or place. Returning about seven, they take chocolate, which answers to our breakfast, with this ex- ception, that it is not made a social meal. Each one enters the corridor at the hour most agreeable to himself, and is then supplied with his cup of chocolate, made very thick and sweet, which, with a small loaf of bread, an egg, a little fried meat, and a glass of clear spring water, serves him till dinner. " At this hour, during the warmer months, the habit of bathing, for which. the houses afford so many conveniences,, is very general, but in any other way the inhabitants appear to have the greatest aversion to the application of water. For weeks together the most respectable inhabitants never wash their hands, faces, or teeth, and the slightest sickness serves as a pretext for delaying the operation as well as that of shaving, frequently for months ; so that you have only to look at a gentleman's beard to know how long he has had a cold, or to a lady's face to discover when she last fancied herself indisposed. " From ten to twelve are the usual hours for morning calls, and receiving visits. These possess in general the same characteristics as in other parts of the world. Friends meet as lovingly, talk as scandalously, hate each other as cordially, and lie as gracefully here, as in the most polished cities of civilized Europe. The only points of difference are, that the ladies shout out their observations in the high- est rule of the gamut, becloud each other's beauties with the fumes of tobacco, and part with an embrace as cordial as the majority of modern English kiss. These parties generally meet in the ladies' bedroom, the gentlemen dressed * a la 35 546 FAMILY TOURIST. GUATEMALA. "♦ ; ■■ : : Ingiesa,' with coats cut any thing but anatomically, and the f ladies in black silk, with lace mantilla for the head, splendid- ly-worked silk stockings, and shoes almost diminutive enough for the Empress of China. " Modesty and prudery are here understood to be synony- mous, and subjects are freely discussed in mixed parties, to which common delicacy would seem to forbid the slightest allusion. " At one they dine on soup, rice, vegetables, and meat of various kinds, cooked in as many different ways, with dulces or sweetmeats for a dessert, of which about 200 sorts are pre- pared. Fish frequently appears towards the close of the meal, and fruit is introduced before the cloth is drawn. Scarcely any wine is drank. In many of the most respectable families it does not even make its appearance on the table. The whole concludes with a recitation miscalled a thanksgiving. " From the corridor each individual adjourns to his bed- ,room, to take the siesta and digest his dinner. So universal is the practice, that from two to three the streets are deserted. Old and young, masters and servants, are alike reclining on beds and sofas. The very domestic animals at this hour are to be seen stretching themselves in the sun, and, par- taking of the infection, 'join the general troop of sleep.' Between three and four, things begin to revive, and first one and then another, yawning, rubs his eyes, and strolls to the clock to see how time has passed during his slumbers. To- wards four the corridor again becomes frequented for choco- late, after which the occupations of the day are once more resumed. *' Let us then take a walk into the street and see what is passing there. The daily market is about over, and contains only a few stragglers, buying at a cheaper rate the refuse of the day's sales ; ten or a dozen half naked Indians are basking in the sun ; three or four soldiers are reclining against the pillars 9f the piazzas humming a revolutionary air ; and a lit- tle further on are two or three devoted Catholics, most de- voutly kneeling before the image of a saint, and apparently r in a state of the most perfect abstraction. In a little while the tinkling of a bell is heard, notifying the approach of the Vaticum. Instantly high and low, poor and rich, are on their knees ; till, as its feeble sound dies in the distance, one by one they rise and pursue their way, ** The costume of the street varies little from that of the house. The ladies who in the morning are to be seen only FAMILY TOURIST. 547 GUATEMALA.. in black, now parade the streets in dashing silk gowns, and without any covering for the head, while the fashionable beaux lounge by their sides in printed cotton jackets and Spanish cloaks, with one end carelessly thrown over the right shoulder. The shops, although generally well supplied with goods, possess no attractions. All are without windows, and nothing is displayed ; the open doorway beiag half cov- ered with cloth to keep out the sun. '' Returning to our temporary home, as the evening sets in, we find the gentlemen just come back from an excursion to the suburbs, on their pacing mules or horses ; each rider seated on a saddle rising three or four inches before and be- hind, and armed with an enormous pair of silver spurs. Be- fore the animal is a large skin of some shaggy coated animal, hanging down to the heavy Spanish box stirrup, or still heavier or indescribable one of iron, over which lies the long ta- per end of the bridle, made of narrow slips of hide twisted into a cord, and so long as to serve the purposes of a whip. To this is affixed an enormous bit, under which the poor beast writhes, and is effectually subdued. " By about seven o'clock the last gleam of twilight has disappeared, and the servants enter with the lights, reciting most devoutly the * Bendito,' which may be thus translated: ' Blessed and praised be the holy sacrament of the altar for- ever and ever.' In another hour the sala has assumed its evening character ; cloaks and swords occupy the corner of the room — a small table at the farther end is surrounded by a party busily employed at * monte,' (a game of cards,) amidst clouds of smoke, — and at the other end some lady, regardless of the noisy tongues of the gambler, is playing a popular air on a wretched marimba, or still worse piano, accompanying it with her voice. The miserable light yield- ed by two thin, long-wicked tallow candles, in massive silver candlesticks, throws a gloom over the apartment, strangely in contrast with the light-hearted gayety of its occupants. Formal parties are rare ; friends drop in towards the evening without ceremony, amuse themselves for an hour or two, and retire generally without taking any kind of refreshment. " About ten o'clock the different members of the family sit down to a supper, differing little from the dinner, eat heartily of its various dishes, and with stomachs loaded to a degree that would make most people tremble for fear of apoplexy, retire to bed, and in half an hour are all soundly asleep. In the more religious families, recitations of about a quarter of 548 FAMILY TOURIST, GUATEMALA. an hour in length, and mostly to the Virgin, are practised on those evenings when there are no visiters. *' Marrying and giving in marriage here, as in other coun- tries, is distinguished by peculiar customs. When the con- sent of parents has been obtained, if the lover have no pre- vious establishment, the parents of the lady place in it, at their own expense, a handsome bed, and plentiful supply of household linen. This having been done, the intended bridegroom, on the day previous to the celebration of the nuptials, sends to his future wife, dresses, jewels and orna- ments, in proportion to his wealth. The ceremony is gener- ally performed before daylight on the following morning, and ail attendant expenses are paid by the parents of the bride. The newly married couple then adjourn to the house of the lady's father, where they reside for fifteen or twenty days. " The other rites of the Church are conducted in the same way as in other Catholic countries. Funerals are very expen- sive, owing not only to the number of individuals who take part in the ceremony, but also to the splendid dresses in which bodies are interred. The wealthy throw away consider- able sums in the indulgence of foolish vanity, and not unfre- quently expend a sum equal to ^50 sterling upon the inter- ment of a new-born infant. *• The most splendid funeral I witnessed in Guatemala," continues Mr. Dunn, *' was that of a rich Canonigo. The friars of the different convents, two by two, led the proces- sion, one bearing a massy silver cross, and the others lighted wax candles, the canonigos and the doctors following in their robes. After the bier, walked the priests and curas, two by two, the chief of the state, the friends of the late canon, and the principal military officers. Between the house of the deceased and the place of interment, a distance of about 500 yards, were arranged at equal distances in the street, four large tables covered with black cloth, and hold- ing six immense wax candles in massy silver candlestjcks. On each of these, the body, extended upon a splendid bier and clothed in the richest robes, was placed. The proces- sion formed around it, a mass was sung, and holy water thrown upon the body by one of the doctors, after which the whole moved on to the next resting place, where the same formalities were observed. On its arrival at the cathedral, the body was placed in the middle aisle, the members of the procession ranged themselves on either side, with their light- ed tapers, — crowds of spectators knelt in front, and other FAMILY TOURIST. 549 GUATEMALA. crowds stood in silence behind, as with one consent, every voice began to sing the solemn mass. This imposing cere- mony lasted for some hours, after which the corpse was depos- ited in one of the vaults below the cathedral. " The lower orders bury in the ' Santo Campo,' or conse- crated ground, behind the cathedral, where many simple me- morials to the dead have been erected. After the funeral, an ' almoneda,' something like an auction, takes place of the goods of the deceased. The various articles of furniture are arranged in the room, and ticketed with a small paper, on which is written the lowest number of dollars for which the article can be disposed of An Indian is then placed atthe window near the street, proclaiming with a loud voice the al- moneda within. The public then enter to view the goods, and any one choosing an article at the affixed price is per- mitted to take it, after it has been publicly exposed to the of- fers of a higher bidder. If after three days, any of the arti- cles remain unsold, they are reticketed at two thirds of the former price." According to Mr. Dunn, the state of society in Guatemala is wretched in the extreme. *' The pure and simple sweets of domestic life, with its thousand tendernesses, and its gentle affections, are here exchanged for the feverish joys of a dissi- pated hour ; and the peaceful home of love is converted into a theatre of mutual accusations and recriminations. " Among the lower orders this loose and vicious life leads to excesses, which, unrestrained by a vigilant police, produce the most melancholy consequences. The men generally car- ry a large knife stuck in the belt against the back, and the women a similar one, fastened in the garter of the stocking. These on every trifling occasion they draw, and the result is often fatal. Not a day passes in which some one or other does not stain his hands in the blood of a fellow-creature. On feast days and on Sundays, the average number killed is from four to five. From the number admitted into the hos- pital of St. Juan de Dios, it appears that in the year 1827, near 1,500 were stabbed in drunken quarrels, of whom from 3 to 400 died. Of these, probably fifty or sixty were assassi- nated secretly, without having any opportunity of defence. " The police, if such a thing can be said to exist, takes notice of those events, and it would seem fabulous to relate, were it not confirmed by the most respectable testimony, that 650 FAMILY TOURIST. GUATEMALA. there is at liberty in Guatemala, at the present moment, more than one, of whom it is known that they have murdered several individuals. The respectable inhabitants defend them- selves by carrying swords or pocket pistols in the evening, and are rarely molested ; while the lower orders avenge the death of their relatives, by taking away the life of the murder- er, the first convenient opportunity. ** A circumstance of this kind occurred while I was re- siding at Guatemala, very near to the house in which I lived. About four o'clock in the afternoon, a poor man was ob- served lying dead in the street, who had evidently been mur- dered. For some time, no notice was taken of him ; at length he was carried by some passers by to the hospital, and it was immediately known that he had been killed by a shoe- maker, who resided near, and whose brother had fallen some months ago, by the hand of the deceased. This man had now absented himself, but no means were used for his appre- hension. A few shoulders were shrugged, a few 'que basil' mas' (what a pity !) uttered, and there the n)atter ended. The shoemaker returned in a few days, resumed his occupa- tions, and remains still undisturbed, unless some other has in turn, passed him to his final account. ** The only offences noticed are political ones, and in these cases the soldiers act as civil officers. Of their suitability, one melancholy instance fell under my observation. A lieu- tenant of infantry, and eight soldiers, were despatched to take a man prisoner, who had committed some offence against the State. They entered the room in which he was sitting alone, about nine o'clock, in the evening. He immediately blew out the candle, and fired a pistol at the officer, whom he wounded. The eight soldiers report that their muskets missed fire : it is only known that in the confusion the pris- oner escaped, and has not since been heard of. A suspicion having arisen a few days afterwards, that he was concealed in Guatemala, a second detachment was sent to capture him. The party mistook a discharged postman, who was in the house, for their prisoner : the poor fellow resisted with a sword, and was immediately killed. Not content with pass- ing five or six bullets through him, they pierced him with their bayonets, in order to assure themselves of his death, and for this feat the leader of the detachment was raised from a lieutenant to the rank of a captain. After this, no further search was made for the real delinquent, and in two or three days the whole affair was forgotten." SOUTH AMERICA BRAZIL ST. SEBASTIAN, OR RIO DE JANEIRO. The city of St. Sebastian, now called, Rio, or Rio de Jan- eiro, the capital of the empire of Brazil, is situated on the western shore of the great bay from which it takes its name. This bay was discovered on the 1st of January, 1531, by Martin Alphonso de Souza, who, supposing that the fine ex- panse of water was only the estuary of some great river, like the mouth of the Amazon, or Oronoko, called it Rio de Jan- eiro, or River of January. This very improper name the bay and river retain, and also the city itself. For many years, this fine harbor remained unnoticed, but in the year 1558, Nicholas Villegaynon, a Frenchman, was employed by the leaders of the Hugonots in France, to take charge of a colony of their persecuted people, assigned to settle at Rio. Two clergymen of that persuasion were se- lected at Guiana, with fourteen students in divinity, to act as pastors for the present, and supply future congregations, as they should be wanted. There was, therefore, every reason to hope that the reformation would take root here, and in process of time fill the south, as well as the north of the new world, with a Protestant people. But Villegaynon seems to have been utterly unworthy of his trust. He commenced a persecution against these unfortunate men, who had left their own country for conscience sake, till he drove many of them from this place also. Some requested permission to re- turn to Europe, and he provided a vessel so badly found, that they refused to embark, and were persecuted to death on the island. Meanwhile the Portuguese, jealous of this encroachment, and alarmed at the progress of these strangers of the new faith, sent an armament from Bahia to dispossess them. Unable to make an effectual resistance, the colonists were 554 FAMILY TOURIST. ST. SEBASTIAN, OR RIO DE JANEIRO. driven from their settlement, and their fortress was taken, and demolished. In 1567, Catharine, who governed the kingdom of Spain as regent during the minority of Sebastian, directed a city to be built on the spot, where it now stands, and to be called St. Sebastian. In 1808, the royal family of Portugal, being obliged to abandon Europe, in consequence of the invasion of their country, took up their residence at Rio, where they con- tinued till 1821. This circumstance conferred on the city great advantages, and contributed more than all other causes to it? growth and prosperity. The harbor of Rio is one of the most capacious, com modious, and beautiful in the world. The immediate back ground of the city, is formed by beautiful green hills, cov ered with woods, and interspersed with villas and convents while the foreground is enlivened by the vessels of all nations The bay contains nearly a hundred islands. From either shore rise lofty and well-clad mountains, terminating, in some places, in abrupt precipices of the wildest and most romantic forms. At their base, white cottages and houses are scat- tered amid patches of cultivation, and narrow valleys of orange-trees wind among the mountains. Every little emi- nence has its church or its port ; and innumerable boats flit- ting about the bay, and mingling with the shipping, add ani- mation and interest to the scene. The air is soft, the sky generally cloudless, and every breeze bears over the calm waters the fragrance of the orange and the lemon. Such is the glowing language in which modern travellers describe the first appearance of the Brazilian capital. Far more has been done for this beautiful portion of the new world by nature, than by man. The style of architec- ture in Rio is, in general, mean, resembling that of the old part of Lisbon; and though this town has always ranked as the most important in Brazil, or as second only to Bahia, at the time that the latter was the seat of government, yet, it is only since the emigration of the court, that it has assumed the character of a European city. Some idea of what Rio was, may be gathered from the improvements, which are mentioned by Mr. Luccock, as having taken place at the pe- riod of his second visit to the capital in 1813, in the course of the preceding five years. The city had been greatly en- FAMILY TOURIST. 555 ST. SEBASTIAN, OR RIO DE JANEIRO. larged ; the old streets greatly improved in cleanliness, and the houses in neatness ; the roads cleared and widened ; and vil- las and gardens had begun to adorn the vicinity. " An in- crease of domestic comfort," he adds, '* had arisen from the establishment of a market for cattle without the city, and of several markets for vegetables and fruit within it ; from a more abundant and regular supply of fish, and the more free use of mutton; from greater care with respect to the quality of meat, and the cleanliness of the places where it was slaughter- ed and exposed for sale. Craftsmen of different descriptions had made their appearance ; among them, so many smiths, that it was no longer difficult to get a horse shod. Mills for grinding corn had been much improved, and bread was come more into use. Charcoal was manufactured, and, for cook- ing, introduced into the houses. Nuisances were more read- ily removed, and even scavengers were now and then seen in the streets." Among the nuisances which had been removed, were the gloomy projections from the upper windows, caUed jealousies, which have given way, by the king's command, for open bal- conies. These jealousies were raised on platforms of stone, two and a half feet broad, and extended to the top of the window. They were formed of lattice work of a fanciful pattern, divided into pannels, or compartments, some of which were fitted up with hinges at the top, so as to form a sort of flap, which when opened a little way, allowed persons in the balcony to look down into the street, without being seen them- selves, They gave to the fronts of the houses a dull, heavy and suspicious appearance. The ostensible motive for their removal was to improve the appearance of the city ; the real cause was said to be an apprehension that, sooner or later, these jealousies might become ambuscades for assassins, who un- seen and unsuspected, might thence discharge the fatal bullet. To pursue the description of the capital : the streets, which are straight and narrow, are paved with granite, and are now provided with a raised pavement for the fc^ot pas- sengers ; but they are very sparingly lighted, and hardly more than a few hours in the night, by the lamps placed be- fore the images of the Virgin. The houses, which are gen- erally of two stories, and low and narrow in proportion to their depth, are, for the most part, built of blocks of granite: the upper story, however, is often of wood. The thresholds, door posts, lintels, and window frames, are Of massy granite, or feltspar, brought from Bahia, in a state ready for use. 556 FAMILY TOURIST. ST. SEBASTIAN, OR RIO D£ JANEIRO. The roofs are universally covered with semitubular tiles. The lower story is commonly occupied by the shop and warehouse ; the second, (and third, if there be one,) by the family apartments, to which there are long and narrow pas- sages taken from the ground floor, and communicating with the street. In the outskirts of the town the streets are un- paved, and the houses are of only one floor, low, small, and dirty, with the doors and windows of lattice-work, opening outward to the annoyance of passengers. The rents of houses are nearly as high as they are in London.* The houses are all numbered, says Walsh, in a more con- venient manner than ours. The odd numbers are marked oa the right hand side, and the even on the left : the passen- ger being always supposed to have his face towards the palace. This greatly abridges inquiry, as you always know the side of the street on which the house you want is to be found. Formerly, the only light afforded to passengers at night pro- ceeded from the tapers burning before the shrines of saints at the corners of streets. Lamps, however, are now sufficient- ly numerous, and the town is as well provided as most cities on the continent of Europe. Among the annoyances, observes this same traveller, which teaze a stranger in the streets of Rio, is the everlast- ing creaking of carts. The wheels are heavy blocks of wood, fi.xed to the e.xtremities of a thick axle, and they turn both together The extensive friction of the large revolving surface, which is never greased, against the shafts of the ma- chine carrying a heavy load, not only increases the difficulty of draught, but causes a creaking sound, quite intolerable to unused ears. Every proprietor of a vehicle, offending in this way, is liable to a fine of six milreis ; but they will not prevent by any precaution, for they say the bullocks will not draw kindly without the noise they are accustomed to ; and as this is a general prejudice, no one will exact the fine, except the emperor himself, who is anxious to put an end to the ab- surd nuisance. He always stops the creaking cart, levies the penalty, and puts the amount into his pocket. t Churches and convents are almost the only public buildings in Rio, that deserve notice. Among the former, those of Da Candelaria, S. Francisco, and Sta-Paula, are in the best * Notes on Rio de Janeiro, &c., by John Lttccock. • t Walsh's Brazil. i FAMILY TOURIST. 557 ST. SEBASTIAN, OR RIO DE JANEIRO. Style of architecture ; but that of Nossa Senhora da Gloria is the most striking from its situation. *' The cathedral," says Mr. Luccock, " in point of rank the first religious edifice in Rio, is situated on a lofty and pleasant hill, south of the town. It occupies a spot cele- brated in the history of Brazil, and is very properly dedi- cated to St. Sebastian. The church, which seems to have been erected at two different periods, is a low, plain, sub- stantial building, of an oblong form, with two small turrets, but without windows. The entrance is from the east, and fronts the altar. Within, the walls are whitewashed, unor- namented, and dirty. The altar, also, is as plain as the church ; and the whole evinces that it has profited little by any predilection of the great or wealthy. The orchestra is at the east end, and is awkwardly crowded towards the ceil- ing. Around are traces of considerable foundations much overgrown with brushwood." None of the churches have either any fine paintings or works of sess increases, so that the mules, and even the foot traveller, can proceed only by crossing obliquely from side to side; and even that is attended with difficulty after rain or heavy dews, on account of the smooth round stones with which the road is paved. But the great and enlivening change ex- perienced in the state of the atmosphere, removes all diffi- culties. Never, within the tropics, had I before breathed so pure and so cool an air. Instead of the stifling heat of the coast, where the slightest exertion was attended with profuse perspiration, I walked fast for joy, and thought my- self in England. It was four o'clock in the afternoon when I left La Guayra, and it was now become dark, when I reached La Venta, (the inn,) a poor house, but well known upon the road as being about half way between Caraccas and the Port. It is situated at the height of about 3,600 English feet above the level of the sea, at which elevation the heat is never oppressive. Here, having supped and drunk large draughts of delicious cold water, I repaired to sleep, unmolested by heat or mosquitoes. Being still warm with my walk and my supper, I cared little that the frame on which I lay down was unprovided with a single article of covering ; but, about midnight I awoke, shivering with cold, and astonished at a sensation so unexpected. At three o'clock, it being a fine moonlight morning, we resumed our journey, having still a considerable distance to ascend, although the worst of the road was now past. In an hour, we had passed the highest point of the road, and proceeded along an uneven ridge of two or three miles before begin- ning to descend towards the valley of Caraccas. On the summit of the highest hill above the road is a fort, which completes the military defences on the side of La Guayra. This fort is visible only from certain points somewhat dis- tant, as we wind close round the base of the hill on which it stands without seeing any vestiges of it. When we had 584 FAMILY TOURIST. CARACCA8. passed the ridge, and were descending towards Caraccas, the day began to dawn. Never had I seen a more inter- esting prospect. A valley upwards of twenty miles in lenffth, enclosed by lofty mountains, unfolded itself by de- grees to my eyes. A small river, which runs through the whole length of it, was marked by a line of mist along the bottom of the valley ; while the large white clouds, which here and there lingered on the sides of the hills, began to be tinged with the first beams of light. Beneath my feet was the town of Caraccas, although only its church towers were visible, rising above the liglit mist in which it lay buried. Presently the bells, began to chime, and I heard all their changes distinctly, although, following the windings of the road, I had still four miles to descend, whilst, in a straight line, the distance did not appear more than one. At the foot of the hill is a gate, where a guard and officers are stationed, to examine the permits for merchandi.se, and sometimes the passports of strangers. Within this is an open space, before reaching the town, which we entered about six o'clock. After passing the first row of houses, I was struck with the neatness and regularity of most of the streets, which were well paved, and far superior to any thing I had yet seen in the West Indies. In the principal posada, (inn,) kept by a Genoese, 1 found every accommodation that could be reasonably expected. And, indeed, for some days, the constant sensation of refreshing coolness in the mornings and evenings, as well as throughout the night, was of itself a luxury which seemed to have all the charms of novelty, and left no room for petty complaints. Caraccas, or as it is called at length, Santiago de Leon de Caraccas, is situated in latitude 10° 36' north; longi- tude 67° 4' west ; at an elevation of nearly 2,500 feet above the level of the sea, at the entrance of the plain of Chacao, which extends above twenty miles east and west, and varies from six to seven in breadth. It is watered by the river Guayra. The ground on which the town is built slopes regularly down to the Guayra, which bounds it on the south ; the custom-house being 400 and the Plaza Mayor nearly 200 feet above the bed of the river. The de- clivity is not so rapid as to prevent carriages from going about the town, but the inhabitants make little use of them. The city is built in the Spanish fashion ; the streets, which are in general a hundred yards wide, crossing at right FAMILY TOURIST. 585 CARACCAS. angles, divide the whole town into square portions called quadras, which here and there are left to form open squares. The Plaza Mayor has the cathedral on the east side, the college on the south, and the prison on the west ; but it is disfigured by ranges of low shops, which form a sort of inner square. Here is held the fruit, vegetable, and fish market, where the banana, the pineapple, and the sapa- dillo, are mingled with the apple, the pear, and the potatoe, the product of every zone, with the fish peculiar to the tropical seas. Caraccas contains eight churches, three convents, two nunneries, three hospitals, and a theatre that will contain from 20 to 25,000 persons. The pit, in which the seats for the men are separate from those allotted to the female part of the audience, is left uncovered, and there may be seen at once the actors and the stars. Nothing, as may be supposed, can be more contemptible than the performances. The cathedral is heavily built and badly planned ; it is 250 feet long by 75 broad, and its walls are 36 feet high. Four ranges of columns, six in each range, without beauty or proportion, support the roof; but, to compensate for the inelegance of the architecture, the brick steeple contained the only public clock in the city. The most splendid church, in point of the richness of its ornaments, was that of Alta Gracia, built at the expense of the people of color, as that of La Candelaria was by the Islenos from the Canaries. The church of the Dom- inicans boast of a curious ** historical picture," represent- ing the Virgin suckling the sainted founder of their order, a grey-beard monk, to whom a physician had prescribed woman's milk for a violent pain in his breast. Besides the two nunneries of Conception and Carmel, there is a much more useful institution for the education of young fe- males, belonging to the congregation of Las Educandas. The college, the only public institution for the education of young men, was founded by the Archbishop of Antonio Gonzales d'Acuna, so lately as 1778, and was erected into a universi- ty, by permission of the Pope, in 1792. In this university, reading and writing are first taught. Three Latin professors teach enough of that language to enable their scholars to read mass and study Dunn Scotus. A professor of medicine lectures on anatomy, &-c., by aid of a skeleton and some preparations in wax. Four professors are occupied in teach- ing theology, and one the canon law. One is charged with the exposition of the Roman law, the Castilian laws, the 586 FAMILY TObRlST. CARACCAS. code of the Indies, and " all other laws ; " and finally, there is a professor of vocal church music. ** The routine of education," says Mr. Semple, '* is such as may be supposed to have been in Spain two hundred years ago; a few com- mon Latin authors, catechisms, and the Lives of Saints, being the chief studies." In 1807, the population amounted to 47,228 persons, of all colors ; of whom, according to M. Dupons, ** the whites formed nearly one-fourth, the slaves a third, the Indians a twentieth, and the freed persons the rest." M. Humboldt, however, states that, of 45,000 persons, which the be^^t-in- formed inhabitants believed it to contain in 1800, 18,000 were whites, and 27,000 persons of color. The census of 1778 had made the number amount to nearly 32,000. Since then, it had continued to increase; and in ISIO, the city contained, according to M. Lavaysse, 50,000 souls; the population of the whole province being 49(5,772. Such was about the number, when, by the great earthquake of the 26th of March, 1812, 12,000 inhabitants were buried under the ruins of their houses ; and the political commotions which succeeded that catastrophe have reduced the number of inhabitants to less than 20,000 souls. More than half the town is now in ruins. *' The houses of Caraccas," says a recent traveller, ** once so rich in the costliness of their furniture and decorations, can now barely boast of the com- monest articles of convenience ; and it is with the utmost difficulty that a table, chair, or bedstead, can at present be procured. That part which is nearest the mountain, presents a continued mass of ruins. For the full space of a mile, the streets are overgrown with weeds, and are entire- ly uninhabited." ** On approaching the guard-house of the barrier, to pay the toll exacted from travellers, I was struck," says another writer, *' with the wretchedness of tits appearance, the filth which surrounded it, and the squalid ficrures of the sol- diery, whose small stature, dirty, ragged clothing, half pol- ished muskets, and lack of shoes and stockings, afforded the most convincing proofs of the exhausted and miserable state to which the intestine war had reduced this fine coun- try. From this barrier, the road lies along the ridge to the entrance of the town, where the first objects that attracted my attention was a church on my left, which had been shat- tered by the earthquake. The walls only of the nave stood erect, although split in some places, and partly concealed FAMILY TOURIST. 587 by the wild vegetation, which, in this country, seems ever ready to take advantage of the desertion of any spot to recover it from human usurpation. The central tower had not entirely fallen, but stood deeply rent from the top, in a leaning position, threatening destruction to all within its reach. Many similar scenes of dilapidation characterized this part of the town, roofless and shattered walls, leaning with various degrees of inclination, being met with at every step. A little further on, symptoms of renovation appear, in a few houses which are building ; and at length, on reaching the southern part, few traces of the calamity are seen, the houses generally remaining entire, with merely occasional flaws in the walls. These are chiefly built of sun-dried clay or mud (tapia) beaten down between wood- en frames. The roofs are of tile, and the walls white- washed." In 1812, this city by an awful convulsion, was over- whelmed. As early as December, 1811, a shock had been felt at Caraccas ; but the inhabitants rested from that time in security till the 7th and 8th of February, 1812, when the earth was day and night in perpetual oscillation. A great drought prevailed at this period, throughout the prov- ince. Not a drop of rain had fallen at Caraccas, or for ninety leagues round, during the five months which preceded the destruction of the capital. The 26th of March, the fatal day, was remarkably hot, the air was calm, the sky uncloud- ed. It was Holy Thursday, and a great part of the popula- tion was assembled in the churches. Nothing seemed to pre- sage the calamities of the day. At seven minutes after four in the afternoon, the first shock was felt ; it was sufficiently powerful to make the bells of the churches toll ; it lasted five or six seconds, during which time the ground was in a con- tinual undulating movement, and seemed to heave up like a boiling liquid. The danger was thought to be past, when a tremendous subterranean noise was heard, resembling the roll- ing of thunder, but louder, and of longer continuance than that heard within the tropics in time of storms. This noise preceded a perpendicular motion of three or four seconds, followed by an undulatory movement somewhat longer. The shocks were in opposite directions, from north to south, and from east to west. Nothing could resist the movement from beneath upward, and the undulations crossing each other. The town of Caraccas was entirely overthrown. Thousands of the inhabitants, (between 9 and 10,000,) 588 FAMILY TOURIST. CARACCA8. were buried under the ruins of the houses and churches. The procession had not yet set out, but the crowd was so great in the churches, that nearly 3 or 4,000 persons were crushed by the fall of their vaulted roofs. The explosion was stronger towards the north, in that part of the town situate nearest the mountain of Avila and the Silla. The churches of La Trinidad and Alta Gracia, which were more than 150 feet high, and the naves of which were supported by pillars of twelve or fifteen feet in diameter, left a mass of ruins scarcely exceeding five or six feet in elevation. The sinking of the ruins has been so considerable, that there now scarcely remain any vestiges of pillars or columns. The barracks, called El Quartet de San Carlos, situate fur- ther north of the church of the Trinity, on the road from the custom-house de la PasLora, almost entirely disappeared. A regiment of troops of the line, that was assembled under arms, ready to join the procession, was, with the exception of a few men, buried under the ruins of this great edifice. Nine-tenths of the fine town of Caraccas were entirely de- stroyed. The walls of the houses that were not thrown down as those of the street San Juan, near the Capuchin Hos- pital, were cracked in such a manner, that it was impossible to run the risk of inhabiting them. The effects of the earthquake were somewhat less violent in the western and southern parts of the city, between the principal square and the ravine of Caraguata. There the cathedral, supported by enormous buttresses, remains standing. Estimating at 9 or 10,000 the number of the dead in the city of Caraccas, we do not include those unhappy persons who, dangerously wounded, perished several months after for want of food, and proper care. The night of Holy Thursday presented the most distressing scene of desolation and sorrow. A thick cloud of dust, which, rising above the ruins darkened the sky like a fog, had settled on the ground. No shock was felt, and never was a night more calm or more serene. The moon, nearly full, illuminated the rounded domes of the Silla, and the aspect of the sky formed a perfect contrast to that of the earth, covered with the dead, and heaped with ruins. Mothers were seen bearing in their arms their chil- dren, whom they hoped to recall to life. Desolate families wandered through the city, seeking a brother, a husband, a friend of whose fate they were ignorant, and whom they believed to be lost in the crowd. The people pressed along the streets, which could no more be recognized but by long FAMILY TOURIST. 599 CARACCAS. lines of ruins. All the calamities experienced in the areat catastrophe of Lisbon, Messina, Lima, and Riobamba, were renewed on the fatal day of the 26th of March, 1812. The wounded, buried under the ruins, implored by their cries, the helps of the passers-by, and nearly two thousand were dug out. Never was pity displayed in a more affecting manner ; never had it been seen more ingenuously active, than in the efforts employed to save the miserable victims whose groans reached the ear. Implements for digging and clearing away the ruins were entirely wanting ; and the peo- ple were obliged to use their bare hands to disinter the living. The wounded, as well as the sick, who had escaped from the hospitals, were laid on the banks of the small river Guayra. They found no shelter but the foliage of trees. Beds, linen to dress the wounds, instruments of surgery, medicines, and objects of the most urgent necessity were buried under the ruins. Every thing, even food, was want- ed during the first days. Water became alike scarce in the interior of the city. The commotion of the earth had choked up the springs that supplied them ; and it be- came necessary, in order to have water, to go down to the river Guayra, which was considerably swelled ; and then, vessels to convey the water were wanting. There remained a duty to be fulfilled toward the dead, enjoined at once by piety and thp dread of infection. It being impossible to in- ter so many thousand corpses, half buried under the ruins, Commissaries were appointed to burn the bodies; and, for this purpose, funeral piles were erected between the heaps of ruins. This ceremony lasted several days. Amid so many public calamities, the people devoted themselves to those religious duties which they thought were the most fit- ted to appease the wrath of Heaven. Some, assembling in procession, sung funeral hymns; others in a state of distrac- tion, confessed themselves aloud in the streets. In this town was now repeated what had been remarked in the province ofQ,uito, after the tremendous earthquake of 1797; a number of marriages were contracted by persons, who had neglected for many years to sanction their union by the sa- cerdotal benediction. Children found parents by whom they had never till then been acknowledged ; restitutions were promised by persons, who had never been accused of fraud j and families who had long been enemies, were drawn to- gether by the tie of common calamity. If this feeling seemed to calm the passions of some, and open the heart 590 FAMILY TOURIST. CARACCAS. to pity, it had a contrary effect on others, rendering them more rigid and inhuman. In great calamities, vulgar minds preserve less goodness than strength. Misfortune acts in the same manner as the pursuits of literature and the study of nature, their happy influence is felt only by a few, giving more ardor to sentiment, more elevation to the thoughts, and more benevolence to the disposition. This catastrophe, which spread desolation over the city, and buried thousands in less than a minute beneath the earth, was not confined to Caraccas. Several considerable towns and villages shared in the calamity. In La Guayra the num- ber of the dead exceeded 4,000. The shock was felt in the kingdom of New Grenada, as far as Santa Fe de Bogota, 180 leagues from Caraccas. Fifteen or eighteen hours after the great catastrophe, the ground remained tranquil. The night, as we have already observed, was fine and calm, and the commotions did not re-commence till after the 27th. They were then attended with a very loud and long-continued sul>- terranean noise, (bramido.) The inhabitants of Caraccas wandered into the country ; but the villages and farms having suffered as much as the town, they could find no shelter till they were beyond the mountains of Los Teques, in the val- leys of Aragua, and in the Llanos or Savannas. No less than fifteen oscillations were often felt in one day. On the 5th of April, there was almost as violent an earthquake as that which overthrew the capital. During several hours, the ground was in a state of perpetual undulation. From the beginning of 1811, to 1813, the west area, lying between the parallels of 5° and 3G° N., and the meridians of 29° and 89^ W., was shaken by almost simultaneous commotions, the effect of subterranean fires. On the 30th of January, a sub-marine volcano appeared near the island of St. Michael, one of the Azores, where the sea was sixty fathoms deep. This new islet was at first nothing more than a shoal. On the 15th of January, an eruption, which last- ed six days, enlarged its extent, and elevated it to the height of fifty fathoms above the sea. This new land, of which formal possession was taken in the name of the British Government, was 900 toises in diameter. It received the name of Sarbrina Island, — a name not less ominous than ap- propriate : Sarbrina has again descended *' to Amphitrite's bow- er." — the island has been again swallowed up by the ocean.* * Humboldt. FAMILY TOURIST. 591 NEW VALENCIA. NEW VALENCIA. This city stands about three miles west of the lake of Valencia, a beautiful sheet of water, 1,300 feet above the level of the sea, and extended 30 miles long, and about 12 broad. It is said to resemble Loch Lomond in the num- ber of small islands scattered over its bosom, amounting to twenty-seven. But the mountains around it have not the wild and rugged character of those which border the Scot- tish lake. The city of New Valencia is twelve years older than Caraccas, having been founded in the year 1555, by Alonzo Diaz Morena, as a station on which to advance on the valley of Caraccas. It was at first dependent on Burburata, which is now nothing more than a place of embarkation for mules. Its advantageous position, as a centre of communication be- tween Puerto Cabello and the inland towns, has raised it into a place of considerable importance. At the time of Hum- boldt's visit, the population was only between 6,000 and 7,000 souls ; but, in 1810, it amounted to upwards of 10,000, *' The inhabitants," says M. Lavaysse, " are nearly all Cre- oles the descendants of ancient Biscayan and Canary fami- lies. There is great industry and comfort in this town. It is as large as a European town of 24,000 souls, because the greater part of the houses have only a ground floor, and many of them have gardens. Fifty years ago, its inhabitants passed for the most indolent in the country. They pretend- ed to be descended from the ancient conquerors, and could not conceive it possible for them to exercise any other function than the military profession, or to cultivate the land, without degrading themselves. Thus, they lived in the most abject misery, on a singularly fertile soil. Their ideas have since completely changed ; they have applied themselves to agriculture and commerce, and the grounds in the neigh- borhood,, are well cultivated. Valencia is the centre of a considerable trade between Caraccas and Puerto Cabello." Humboldt states, that, when he was there, many of the whites, especially of the poorer sort, would forsake their houses, and pass the greater part of the year in their little plantations of indigo and cotton, where they might venture to work with their own hands : " which, according to the in- veterate prejudices of that country, would be a disgrace to them in town." The industry of the inhabitants was begin- ' 4 592 FAMILY TOURIST. NEW VALENCIA. ning to awake, and the cultivatiou of cotton had considerably augmented, since Puerto Cabello had been opened, as a puerto mayor, to vessels direct from the mother country. There is nothing striking, according to Mr, Seniple, in the appearance of the town. Some of the streets, he says, are tolerably well built, but the houses are mostly low and irregular, and the principal church, which stands on the eastern side of the great square, is by no means equal to that of La Victoria, either iti its size or its proportions. The streets are very broad ; the dimensions of the plaza mayor are "excessive; " and, the houses being low, the dispropor- tion between the population and the space which the town occupies, is still greater than at Caraccas. The author of Letters from Colombia thus describes the appearance which it presented in 1821), at the time that it was the head-quar- ters of the patriot army investing Puerto Cabello. There were then about two thousand troops in the town, among whom were most of the English who had survived the several campaigns. ** The entrance to the town is by a good bridge of three arches, built of stone and brick, and described as the best by far of any in the Republic. The Glorieia at- tached to it, is a large Circular seat, enclosing an area where the inhabitants meet in the evening for dancing and festivity. This is, in fact, the only public promenade. Of the few benefits bestowed on the country by the Spaniards, this is one. The bridge and Glorieia were erected by Morales, not many years since. The town contains many large houses, the best of which are occupied by the military : a greater number are in ruins, presenting a further memento of the ravages committed by the earthquake. The population is not proportioned to its present size. In this, as well as in respect to its resources, the prolonged and harassing war has left behind it most melancholy memorials." It has been regretted, and "perhaps justly," Humboldt says, " that Valencia was not made the capital, instead of Caraccas, under the colonial government. Its situation, in a plain, on the banks of a lake, recalls to mind the position of Mexico. When we reflect on the easy communication, which the valleys of Aragua furnish with ^Llanos, and the rivers that flow into the Oronoco, and recognize the possibil- ity of opening an inland navigation, by the Rio Pao qjid the Portuguesa, as far as the mouths of the Oronoco, the Cassi- quire and the Amazon, — it will appear, that the capital of the FAMILY TOURIST. 593 PUERTO CABELLO. vast provinces of Venezuela would have been better placed near the fine harbor of Puerto Cabello, beneath a pure and serene sky, than near the unsheltered road of La Guayra, in a temperate, but constantly foggy valley. Situated near the king- dom of New Grenada, and between the fertile corn lands of La Victoria and Barquesimeto, the city of Valencia ought to have prospered ; but notwithstanding these advantages, it has been unable to maintain the contest with Caraccas, which, during two centuries, has drawn away a great number of its inhabi- tants." ** The advantages of the situation have one drawback, however, in the incredible number of ants which infest the spot where Valencia is placed. Their excavations resem- ble subterraneous canals, which, in the rainy season, are filled with water, and become very dangerous to the buildings, by occasioning a sinking of the ground. To set against this, there is an opening (abra) in the cordillera of the coast in the meridian of Valencia, by which a cooling sea-breeze pen- etrates into the valley every evening : the breeze rises regu- larly two or three hours after sunset." PUERTO CABELLO. Puerto Cabello is, next to Carthagena, the most important fortified place on this coast. It stands in latitude 10° 28' north ; longitude 69° 10' west. The town is quite modern. The port, Humboldt says, is one of the finest in the world; art has had scarcely any thing to add to the advantages which the nature of the spot' presents. It is thus described by the English traveller : " Puerto Cabello stands upon a small neck of land, which has been cut through, and thus formed into an artificial island. A bridge crosses this cut, and affords entrance to the original city, which is small, but tolerably well built and fortified. The harbor is formed by a low island to the north-wesf, and banks covered with mangrove trees, which shelter it on every side. It is deep and capa- cious. An excellent wharf, faced with stone, allows vessels of a large burden being laid close alongside of it ; and as they can be easily and securely fastened to the shore, anchors are here seldom necessary. To this circumstance, in which 594 FAMILY TOURIST. PUERTO CAB£LLO. it resembles the harbor of Curacoa, Puerto Cabello is said to owe its name, as implying that vessels may there be secured by a single hair. The inland is strongly fortified ; and the batteries, being low and mounted with heavy cannon, are ca- pable of making a good defence. Towards the land, the works are not so strong, and the whole is within reach of bomb shot from the first heights to the southward of the town ; some of which are fortified. " This harbor and La Guayra form a striking contrast. Here vessels lie, as in a small smooth lake, while the waves break high upon the outside of the island and along the shore. In return for this, the worm makes great ravages in the bot- tom of such ships as are not coppered. In no part of the world is it more destructive ; and a small vessel, left unattended, in a very few months, would founder at her moorings from this cause alone. ** The plain in which Puerto Cabello stands, is bounded on the south by mountains, and on the north by the sea, and is nowhere more than two miles in breadth. To the west, a small river descends from the mountains, and empties itself into the sea. To the south-east of the town, the flats are annual- ly flooded by the rain : and the exhalations from them are very probably the cause of the destructive fevers which so frequently rage here in the summer and autumn months. Few strangers can then visit this port with impunity, or at least without great danger ; and there have been instances of vessels losing the greater part of their crews in a very short time. This, however, has not prevented the rapid increase of the place, which w^is originally confined within the works upon the small peninsula, out of which no houses were for some time allowed to be built. At first, low huts were erect- ed, under the express condition of being demolished in case of an enemy's approach ; and in a long interval of years, during which no hostile force appeared, these huts were grad- ually enlarged and increased. The suburbs now exceed the town in population and extent, but still retain their low and mean appearance, and are subject to the original stipulations in case of danger. A great proportion of the houses have no upper story ; and the population being almost entirely col- ored, the stranger is more apt to consider the whole as a large Indian village, than as part of a European settlement. *' About a league to the westward of Puerto Cabello is the small bay of Burburata, used as a port previously to the es- tablishment of the former. The road to it leads across the FAMILY TOURIST. 595 CARTHAGENA. marshy plain of Puerto Cabell o, to the sides of the hills, along which it winds for some time, until it again crosses a sandy flat, and brings us to the opening of the valley of Burburata. The bottom of this valley is level, or very gently sloped to- wards the sea, and consists of a deep, rich mould, every where covered with banana trees, mimosas, triplaris, and plantations of sugar, coffee, and cocoa. The latter are easily distinguished by the tall erithrynas which shade the cacao theo broma, and are covered with clusters of red flowers. As they rise with a straight stem, they permit a free circula- tion of air beneath, while their tufted tops effectually exclude the scorching rays of the sun. Houses and clusters of huts are scattered about among the trees, and a kind of church marks what may be considered as the centre of the village of Burburata. A small stream serves to irrigate the numer- ous plantations. The population is entirely a colored race, in which is a great proportion of Indian blood. The air of the valley is moist and hot, and snakes abound in the lux- uriant herbage which every where covers the soil. One of these crossed my path, and another, large and yellow, with dark spots, lay basking beneath a bush, into which he glided on my approach. Mountains, covered with wood, enclose this fertile flat on every side, except a small opening towards the sea. Here, lower down, was formerly the principal port on the coast. Vessels drawing ten or twelve feet of water can anchor in a bight near the shore : the bottom is a fine white sand ; and Burburata is still the chief port from which the mules, horses, and cattle of Venezuela, are exported to Jamaica and other islands of the West Indies." CARTHAGENA. In November, 1822, M. G. Mollien, a French traveller, already known to the public by his travels in the interior of Africa, landed at Carthagena. The port is a magnificent one. The bay is one of the largest and best on the whole coast, extending two leagues and a half from north to south ; it has capital anchorage, though the many shallows at the entrance require a careful steerage, and being completely land-locked, is so smooth, that vessels ride here as on a river. 596 FAMILY TOURIST. CARTHAGENA. The bay abounds with fish and excellent turtles. Sharks are so numerous as to render bathing highly dangerous, and they have been known to attack even boats. The Indian name of the place was Calamari, which signifies, we are told by Alcedo, the land of cray fish. The city is built on a small peninsula, originally a sandy island, but now connected with the continent by an artificial neck of land. It has a suburb, called Xiximani, almost as large as the city, built on another island, and communicating with it by means of a wooden bridge. Both the city .ind the suburbs are surrounded with strong fortifications of freestone. At a short distance from the town, on the main land, is a hill commanding these fortifications, on which is a strong fort. This em- inence, which is about 150 feet high, communicates on the east with a range of more elevated hills, terminating in a summit 550 feet above the sea, on which stands the Augus- tinian monastery of Nuestra Senhora de la Popa. The height of La Popa is not fortified, which, says Capt. Coch- rane, is unaccountable, as it has several times been the cause of the fall of Carthagena, without almost a single shot being fired. The Colombians have now some idea of fortifying it. I found lying there a large brass eighteen pounder,that had been brought by Morillo, and the remains of a fascine and mud battery, erected by Bolivar, when he attacked Cartha- gena. Had Admiral Vernon landed a few cannon, and had them dragged here by a body of seamen, he must have cap- tured the place, as the possessors of this point will always be masters of the city. On the summit, at the western extremi- ty, is the August in convent of Nuestra Senhora de la Popa^ which was formerly very rich. I saw the room where Boli- var was sitting during the siege, when a shot entering at the window, shattered the shutter, passed over his head, struck the wall, bounded back, and then, striking the side wall, bounced out at another window, without doing Bolivar any injury. The monastery is now almost in ruins, and is ten- anted by one solitary friar, who occasionally makes a little money by letting one or two rooms to people who wish to enjoy cooler air than that of the town, which would be in- sufierable were it not for an almost constant sea breeze. • The town produces by no means a pleasing impression, in contrast with the cheerful seaports of the United States, from which the French traveller had recently sailed. Car- I FAMILY TOURIST. 597 CARTHAGENA. thagena,in fact, he says, presents the melancholy aspect of a cloister. Long galleries, short and clumsy columns, streets narrow and dark, from the too great projection of the ter- races, which almost prevent the admission of daylight ; the greater part of the houses dirty, full of smoke, poverty stricken, and sheltering beings still more filthy, black, and miserable : such is the picture at first presented by a city adorned with the name of the rival of Rome. However, on entering the houses, their construction, singular at first sight, appears afterwards to be well contrived, the object being to admit the circulation of fresh air. The rooms are nothing but immense vestibules, in which the cool air, un- fortunately so rare, might be respired with the utmost de- light, were it not for the stings of thousands of insects, and for the bats, whose bites are not only more painful, but are even said to be venomous. A table, half a dozen wooden chairs, a mat bed, a large jar, and two candlesticks, general- ly compose the whole stock of furniture of these habitations, which are built of brick, and covered in with tiles. Two sieges which Carthagena has undergone, have ruined the re- sources of a majority of its inhabitants. Carthagena is very strong, and of vast extent. Nine thousand men, at least, would be required to defend it at all points. The immense cisterns contained within its walls, are justly objects of admiration ; and the water preserved in them is excellent. Carthagena is, therefore, rather a forti- fied than a commercial town, and will entirely cease to be the latter, when it is no longer the entrepot of Panama. At a distance of 200 leagues from the equator, its temperature is hot and unhealthy, and the yellow fever makes frequent ravages there. The population of Carthagena, about 18,000 souls, is, for the most part, composed of people of color, the greater proportion of whom are sailors or fishermen. Many keep shops for the sale of mercery or eatables, others follow useful trades : they display a nascent industry, which, to prosper, requires, perhaps, only encouragement and emula- tion. Their shell works are beautiful. They are skilful jew- ellers, good carpenters, excellent shoemakers, tolerable tai- lors, indifferent joiners, blacksmiths rather than whitesmiths, masons destitute of all ideas of proportion, and bad painters, but impassioned musicians. The dangers of the sea, and an industry often praised and always well paid, have inspired the people of color with a pride which often gives occasion for complaint. Their petulance and vivacity form a singular 598 FAMILY TOURIST. CARTHAGENA. contrast with the indifference and mildness of those who are called whites; so that,notwithstanding their idleness, they ap- pear active and laborious. The contraband trade is ex- clusively confined to them, and the heartiness with which they engage in it, is a reproach to those whose duty it is to put a stop to the illicit traffic. The women of color, the offspring of negresses and white men, are tall, and much more agreeable than the mulattoes of our Antilles, who are generally too corpulent : daughters of the Indians and negroes, their physiognomy possesses greater delicacy and expression. If, on the one hand, the races become more enervated under the tropics as they be- come fairer, on the other, their personal appearance is im- proved. Thus it is, that the female mulattoes are very in- ferior in beauty to the whites, and lose much when seen near them, which oflen happens with the Spaniards, in whose churches there are no privileged places, as in those of the United States. With the Spaniards, all pray to God in com- mon, without regard to color ; and an insurrection would doubtless be the consequence, should the following notice be officially affixed to the church doors : To-day instruction for raen of color. Carthagena was founded by Pedro de Heredia, in 1533. It was made an episcopal city in 1534. Owing to its fine situation, it soon attracted the attention of foreigners, par- ticularly the French. It was sacked by a Corsican pirate in 1544. In 1583, Sir Francis Drake, after pillaging it, set it on fire, but it was rescued from the flames by a ransom of 120,000 ducats, paid him by the neighboring colonies. It was invaded and pillaged a third time, by the French, in 1697. In the year 1741, it was invested by the English, un- der Admiral Vernon and Sir Charles Ogle, who succeeded in destroying the forts ; but, owing, as it is said, to a misunder- standing between the naval and military commanders, and a mortality among the troops, the enterprise was precipitately abandoned with considerable loss. It has suffered much in the revolutionary contest. The climate is very hot, especial- ly during the rainy season, which lasts from May to Novem- ber, and is attended by a continued succession of tempests and thunder-storms. The streets have then the appearance of rivers, and all the cisterns and tanks are filled, to which the inhabitants are indebted for their only supply of sweet water. From December to April, the weather is fine, and FAMILY TOURIST. 599 CHUQ,UISACA. the heat is tempered by north-east winds. The black vomit is almost as fatal here to strangers as at Vera Cruz. The in- habitants are very subject to leprosy. Bats are so numerous that they cover the streets in an evening, in clouds, and there is not a house in which these nocturnal visiters are not found. Beetles, centipedes, scorpions, niguas, and mor- cielagos, are among the insect annoyances of the place ; be- sides which, Alcedo mentions the culcbrilla, which breeds under the skin, causing a swellingf, which often terminates in gangrene, and produces convulsions. Merchandise is very liable to be destroyed by the moth. The inhabitants have in general a very unhealthy appearance, and yet there are said to be many instances of longevity. It stands in lat- itude 10° 26' north; longitude 75° 26' west. BOLIVIA CHUQUISACA. Chuquisaca is the capital of Bolivia. It was formerly called La Plata, (the silver river,) or Charcas, being the cap- ital of Los Charcas, an extensive province, comprehending all the south-east part of Peru. According to Alcedo, it stands in latitude 19° 31' south ; 290 leagues from Cuzco. The population is variously estimated. According to Mr. Miller, it contains 18,000 souls. It was founded in 1539, by one of Pizarro's captains. It stands in a small plain, sur- rounded with eminences, which defend it from the inclemen- cy of the winds. The climate is mild, but, during the win- ter, dreadful tempests are not unusual, and the rains of long continuance. The city is supplied with water from several public fountains by means of aqueducts. The best houses are only one story in height, but roomy, with delightful gar- dens. There is a large and handsome cathedral, adorned 600 FAMILY TOURIST. with fine furniture and some beautiful paintings; there are also, besides another parochial church, five monastic estab- lishments, all spacious buildings with splendid churches, a conventual hospital, three nunneries, and a 'royal university. Latitude, 19° 30' south. Longitude, 66° 46' west. POTOSI. Potosi is situated about 15,000 feet above the level of the sea, in the province of Porco, in lat. 19° 51', and Ion. 60° 31' of Cadiz. Upon the accidental discovery of its mineral riches in 1545,* it became a mine station, but was at length made a town, and afterwards the capital of the intendency. In 1611, Potosi contained 150,000 inhabitants, a great part of whom were miners. In 1825, owing to the check given to the working of the mines, and the shocks sustained by the wealthy establishments during the Revolution, the popu- lation is said to have been reduced to 8,000. The traveller, on approaching Potosi, from whatever side he may come, emerges from deep mountain ravines, and dis- covers the town at the foot of the celebrated argentiferous Cerro, which is a conical hill about three leagues in circum- ference at the base. Its summit is more than 2,000 feet above the town, and consequently 17,000 feet above the level of the sea. It appears to be of volcanic origin, and its sides are marked with spots of various hues, such as dark green, orange, grey and red. Above 5,000 mine mouths or levels have been opened on the mountain. Of these, only fifty or sixty are now worked. The rest are stopped up, are inun- dated, or have fallen in. The upper portion of the mountain is so completely honey-combed, that it may be considered as nearly worked out. The lower part, above one third of the cone, has hardly been touched, in consequence of the num- ber of springs which impede the workings. * The story told respecting their discovery, is, that an Indian, who was pursuing some wild goats up the mountains, on coming to a very Bteep part, laid hold of a small shrub, to assist him to climb up ; the shrub gave way from its roots, and discovered a mass of fine silver among the clods. FAMILY TOURIST. gQl The surrounding country is also metalliferous. Silver of great fineness abounds in a hill called Guayna Potosi, (Young Potosi,) close to the Cerro, but which cannot be worked, on ticcount of numerous springs being met with at no great dis- tance from the surface. The ore is pulverized in mills, worked with overshot wheels, turned by streamlets conduct- ed from lakes or pools in the mountains, from one to ten miles distance from the city. The most considerable of these lakes are formed by dams built across the ravines. The water is sparingly let out by a sluice in the daytime, but never at night, and sometimes not oftener than twice a week, according to the supply. Some of the larger pools are fed by tributary ones, situated in higher recesses of the same mountains. People are constantly employed as lake keep- ers, to attend to the sluices, and to repair damages. In very dry seasons, it has happened, that a scarcity of water has caused the mills to stand still. This inconvenience might be obviated, if the channels were paved, and the lakes prop- erly cleaned out. The town of Potosi is built on uneven ground. It has a spacious square in the centre. The government house, the town house, and the jail, under the same roof, occupy one side ; the treasury, and government officers another ; a con- vent and an unfinished church the third ; and private resi- dences the fourth. Extensive suburbs, once tenanted by In- dians and miners, are now without an inhabitant, and the vestiges of the streets are all that remain. Among the most remarkable public edifices is the mint, substantially built of stone, upon a plan admirably adapted to the purposes for which it was designed. It cost 1,148,000 dollars, including the machinery. It contains spacious apart- ments for the superintendent and a few of the principal officers.* The climate of Potosi is disagreeable. The rays of the sun are scorchingly hot at noon, while in the shade, and at * The first mint was built in 1572; the present edifice in 1751. Up to the latter date, the money coined at Potosi consisted of flat, angular pieces of silver or gold, bearing the Spanish arms, and a figure denoting their value. They are often called Buccaneer dollars, and are the " pieces of eight," frequently mentioned in the history of those marine freebooters. The annual coinage has, in the most productive years, amounted to five millions of dollars in silver, and 36,800 doubloons in gold. 602 FAMILY TOURIST. night, the air is piercingly cold. The country for three leagues around is so completely barren, that a blade of vegeta- tion is not to be seen, with the exception of a plant called quinuali, which is a remedy against the puna, (difficulty of respiration.) The market of Potosi is one of the best supplied in South America, though some articles of great consumption are furnished from very distant provinces. Wine, brandy, and oil are brought from the Puertoa Intirmedios, and flour from Cochabamba. Mules, asses, and llamas are the only means of transport. The necessaries, as well as the luxuries of life are exorbitantly dear. Formerly, many Indian families took up their abode in huts and caves near the mines on the Cerro, and descended to the town only on a Saturday night, to receive their wages, and to purchase a weekly supply of provisions. Many of these often remained to squander their earnings in dissipation, drunkenness, or gambling ; and passed great part of the night playing the guitar, and singing at the doors of the tippling shops. A singular custom, which probably originated in the in- dulgence of early mine owners still prevails. Between Satur- day night and Monday morning, the Cerro literally becomes the property of such persons as choose to work upon their own account. During that time, the boldest master would not venture to visit his own mines. They who thus take pos- session are called caxchas, and generally sell the produce of Sunday to their own masters. Independently of the ore thus abstracted, the caxchas did considerable mischief by neglect- ing the proper precautions as they excavated. If they met with a more than usually rich vein in the course of the week, it was passed over, and cunningly reserved for the following Sunday. Very strong measures were therefore taken to abolish the custom ; but every effort proved unsuccessful. The caxchas defended their privilege by force of arms, and by hurling down large stones upon their assailants. So watchful are they, that it once happened that fifteen or twen- ty llamas, richly laden with silver ore, were seized on the de- scent, because they had left the mine after the hour at which the caxcha privilege cbmmenced. Neither llamas nor drivers were ever heard of again. Although Potosi was the last town in Peru that became independent^ it was the first to raise a monument to its liber- ators ; for, previously to Bolivar's arrival in 1825, an obelisk, sixty feet high, was erected in the principal square. FAMILY TOURIST. 603 Besides the preceding cities there are others which in this connection may be briefly noticed. La Paz, situated in lat. 16° 29' S. is distant from Potosi 350 miles by the road, and contains, according to Holmes, 20,000 inhabitants. It lies in a ravine, so deep, narrow, and steep, that it is quite concealed from the view of the travel- ler, till he arrives almost directly over it. He sees, of a sud- den, as lie is proceeding, a vast gulf at his feet, in the bot- tom of which appears a town very regularly built, as it seems, with packs of cards. " The coup d'aiil of La Paz conveys precisely this idea ; the red tiled roofs and white fronts of the houses answering admirably for hearts and diamonds, whilst the smoked roofs and dingy mud walls of the Indian ranchos answer equally well for spades and clubs. Through this fairy town may be faintly seen, winding with occasional interruptions, a silver thread, marked with specks of frothy white, which, upon approaching, proves to be a mountain torrent, leaping from rock to rock, and sweeping through the valley. In casting an eye farther round, you perceive squares and patches of every shade of greefn and yellow ; fruit and vegetables, and crops of every kind, in all their stages, from the act of sowing to that of gathering in, trees bearing fruit, and at the same time putting forth buds and blossoms, and the whole scene teeming with luxuriance and beauty. Yet, on raising the eyes from the lap of this fruitful Eden, they rest on the widest contrast in the realms of na- ture. Naked and arid rocks rise in mural precipices around ; high above these, mountains beaten by furious tempests frown in all the blackness of sterility ; higher still, the tops of others, reposing in the regions of eternal snow, glisten with undiminished splendor in the presence of a tropical sun. After a descent of three miles, you reach the bottom of the ravine ; and instead of finding La Paz built on a flat, as you supposed from the summit overhanging the abyss, you find it really built on hills with some of its streets extremely steep. The torrent which waters the ravine is a head branch of the mighty Beni, or main stream of the Maranon ; and in falls of rain, forces along huge masses of rock, with large grains of gold. It is the great emporium of Peru, as all the merchandise from the Pacific is conveyed thither, then car- ried off by merchants, great and small, to the towns and vil- lages in the interior. 604 FAMILY TOURIST. OROPEZA ORURO. Oropeza, or Cockabamba, is the capital of the rich and fertile district of Cochabamba, and is so called from the gold found in its vicinity. It lies in a fertile valley, near the source of the Rio Grande, the head branch of the Ma- deira. The district being the very granary of Bolivia, this city drives a great trade in grain, fruits and vegetables; and contains 17,000 inhabitants, amongst which are many rich and noble families. Oruro was once a place of note, with 8,000 inhabitants, but now reduced to less than one half, from the destruction of the tin and silver mines in its vicinity, which formerly supported a brisk and extensive commerce, but now nearly e.xtinct from want of those resources, which were absorbed by the all-consuming evils of civil war. The tin mines were long famous, and those of silver were once among the most productive in Peru. But, of late years, being aban- doned, they have filled with water, which they have neither ma- chinery to employ, nor money for applying any other method to carry it off". Here were many families of enormous wealth. Rodriguez, the late head of one of these, was propri- etor of a famous silver mine in the vicinity, so productive, that he discarded from his house all articles of glass, delft, or crockery ware, and replaced them by others made from the silver of his mine. Utensils of the most common use, as well as those of luxury and ornament, such as pier-tables in the principal apartments, frames of pictures and of mirrors, footstools, pots, and pans, were all of silver. Said a native to Semple, who was there in 1827, — " Do you see that trough in the courtyard ?" (pointing to a very large stone trough for watering mules and other animals,) — " I do assure you that Rodriguez had two of much larger size for the same pur- pose, of pure and solid silver ; and before the revolution, there were three or four houses in Oruro, that could boast of having quite as much." Oruro is 180 miles north of Potosi, in a barren and level plain, bounded west by the snow-cov- ered Andes.* * Goodrich's Universal Geography. PERU. LIMA. Lima, the capital of Peru, was founded by Pizarro, in 1535. It is situated on the western coast, about two leagues from the ocean, and 30 from the Cordilleras : lati- tude, 12° 2' south ; longitude, 76° 58' west. It stands in the midst of the spacious and delightful valley of Rimac, the name of an idol formerly worshipped by the Peruvians, and supposed to have been corrupted by the Spanish pronuncia- tion into Lima. A river of the same name passes close by the city on the north, watering the valley by numerous ca- nals, and falling into the sea near Callao. This latter is the port of Lima. On approaching the anchorage at Callao, the numerous spires and domes of Lima are seen to the left of the town of Callao, giving to the city an air decidedly orien- tal. The prospect, at sunset, Mr. Miller tells us, is particu- larly interesting ; for when twilight has already thrown the landscape of the plain into deep shade, the domes of the city are still gilded by the departing sun ; and when these are also become shrouded in darkness, the peaks of the mountains continue for some time to be illumined by his lingering beams. Callao was itself formerly a city, and a place of some beauty. But at present the houses make but an indifferent appearance, being only about twenty feet high, divided into two stories, with mud walls and flat roofs. The ground floors form a row of small shops, open in front, and the up- per stories an uncouth corridor. The slightness of their construction is sufficiently explained by two circumstances ; the frequency of earthquakes, and rain being unknown. The city of Callao (for such was the title conferred upon it in 1671) was entirely destroyed by the earthquake of 1746, which laid three-fourths of the capital in ruins. By that terrible convulsion, upwards of 3,000 people are said to have perished at Callao alone. The city stood at a short distance to the southward of the present town; and on a calm day, the FAMILY TOURIST. go? ruins may yet be seen under water, at that part of the bay called the 3Iar Braba, (rough sea,) where a sentry is placed on the beach, for the purpose of taking charge of any treas- ure that may be washed ashore, which not unfrequently hap- pens. In Alcedo's Dictionary, it is stated, that, of 3,000 inhabitants, only one man was left to record the dreadful ca- tastrophe. Mr. Stevenson, however, became acquainted with an old mulatto, who was one of the three or four who were saved. He told me (says Mr. S.) that he was sitting on some timber, which had been landed from a ship in the bay, at the time that, the great wave of the sea rolled in, and buried the city ; and that he was carried, clinging to the log, near to the chapel, a distance of three miles. The island of San Loren- zo is said to have been separated from the main land by this convulsion. It is between two and three miles in circuit, the soil mere sand and black rock. ^ From Callao to Lima is six miles, and a good road. But two miles, however, of this road has been finished as it was begun. Commencing at a noble gateway at the entrance of the city, it has a double row of lofty willows on each side, shading the footwalk. A small stream of water runs by each walk, irrigating the willows, and nourishing num- berless weeds and flowers. This promenade is also fur- nished with stone benches every hujidred yards : and at about every mile is a large circle formed of walls of brick and stone, four feet high, with stone seats around it, for carriages to turn in with greater ease than on the road. It was the in- tention of the Viceroy to carry the road down to Callao in the same style ; but only the carriage road is finished, which has a parapet of brick on each side to keep together the ma- terials. Half way between the port and the city stands a very neatly built chapel, with a small cloister attached to it, dedicated to our Lady of Mount Carmel, the protectress of seamen. Near it, is a house at which are sold good brandy and wine, which is the more frequented of the two. On approaching the city, the soil improves; large vegetable gardens and fields of lucern and maize are seen ; and close to the city walls are extensive orchards of tropical fruits, all irrigated by canals from the river Rimac. The gateway is a tripple arch of brick, stuccoed, with cornices, mouldings, and pillars of stone. The dilapidated insignia of the crown 608 FAMILY TOURIST. of Spain, over the gate, now serve as an emblem of the fall of its empire. Immediately on passing the gateway, the stranger is struck with the contrast which the interior of the city presents to the grandeur of the approach and distant view. He finds himself in a long, dirty street of low houses, with small shops, having their goods placed on tables at the doors, — no glass win-, dows, no display of articles of commerce, — the people of all colors, from the black African to the white and florid Biscayan. In some parts of the city, however, are to be seen a number of smart shops, exhibiting a rich display of French silks and jewelry, and British goods of every description. The Eng- lish costume is now quite prevalent in Lima, mingled with the French ; while the fair Limenas have a dress peculiar to themselves. Everywhere, the streets are full of bustle; and when a church procession or soirx; other object of interest draws together the various classes of the population, in some of the public squares, the groups which are formed, present altogether a motley and e.xtraordinary appearance, well de- scribed by Mr. Mathison. ** Priests, in rich sacerdotal vest- ments; friars, of various orders, Franciscan, Benedictine, Dominican, and others, many of whose portly persons and ruddy countenances belie the austerity of their profession ; men dressed up as nuns, with black veils and masks, selling little waxen images of the Virgin ; women of all classes, — some in shawls and hats, others with the showy saya (petti- coat) and black silk niantn, so put on as carefully to conceal the face and expose the person ; blacks and mulattoes, male and female; and Indians, whose squalid, hideous features bear no resemblance to the pictures which imagination is wont to draw of their ancestors, * the gentle children of the sun ; ' loaded mules and asses, with their attendant peons, just arrived from the port ; country Creoles of both sexes, on horseback, mounted and equipped alike; carriages (here termed valencins) made and painted in the Spanish fashion, and filled with smartly dressed ladies, their black servants and postilions, bedecked in the most tawdry liveries ; cavaliers of all nations, and patriot officers in gay uniforms, — some on foot, courting the attention of the fair beholders, others showing off the paces of their prancing steeds ; venders of ice and chica, (a favorite Peruvian drink ;) beggars, im- ploring alms in the name of the Virgin and all the saints of the FAMILY TOURIST. 609 Romish calendar ; — these, and other innumerable objects, during the procession, and for some hours afterwards, con- tribute to enliven and diversify the scene."* The great square of Lima is an elevation of 480 feet above the sea. The figure of the city is described by Alce- do as triangular. Mr. Stevenson says, it approaches to a semicircle, having the river for its diameter. It is two miles long, from east to west, and one and a quarter broad, from the bridge to the wall. It is, for the most part, divided into squares, (quadras J of which there are 157; and there are said to be 355 streets, all built at right angles, and generally about twenty-five feet wide. Those running east and west have a small stream of water flowing down them ; and the Rimac passes through a part of the town. On the other side of the river is the suburb of San Lazaro, which is inhabited by the less respectable part of the community. Lima is stated to contain nearly 4,000 houses, four large monasteries, with numerous dependent convental and collegiate establish- ments, fifteen nunneries, and four 6ea^cno5 ; and a population, probably of 50,000 souls. The city received from Pizarro the name of Los Keyes, or the city of Kings. It is surrounded (except towards the river) w^th a wall of sun-dried bricks, about ten feet thick at the bottom, and eight at the top, forming a beautiful prom- enade round two thirds of the city. Its average height is twelve feet, with a parapet of three feet. It is flanked with thirty-four bastions, but without embrasures. There are seven gates, and three posterns, which are closed every night at eleven, and opened at four, A. M. This wall of enclosure, rather than of defence, was built by the Viceroy, the Duke de la Palata, in 1685, and repaired in 1808. At the south- eastern extremity of the city is a small citadel, called Santa Catalina, in which are the artillery barracks and a military depot. The plnga mayor or principal square, has, on the eastern side, the cathedral, a very handsome pile ; to the north of which is the sagrario, or principal parish church, having a very beautiful fafade ; and adjoining it is the archiepiscopal palace, which surpasses in appearance every other building in the square. Green balconies run along the front, on Mathison's Visit to Brazil, Chili, and Peru, 39 610 FAMILY TOURIST. ♦each side of an arched gateway leading into the patia; but the lower part is disgraced with a row of small shops, the nearest one to the sagrario being a ^w//>fr/rt, (grog-shop.) Under the area of the cathedral, which is ten feet above the level of the square, there is also a range of shops. On the north side is the Viceroy's palace, the lower part of which is in like manner concealed by a range of shops and stalls; and over these runs a long gallery with tiers of seats for the accommodation of the inhabitants when there is any fete in the square. At the north-western corner is a gallery for the family of the Viceroy, which, on days of ceremony, was fitted up with green velvet hangings. The south side of the square is formed by a row of private houses, but with an arcade or piazza in front, occupied with the shops of dra- pers and mercers. On the north side is the cabildo, or town hall, a building very much in the Chinese style ; and under it is the city jail. In the centre of the square is a beautiful brass fountain, erected in 1653, the water of which is the best in Lima ; and at all hours of the day, water-carriers are busily employed in conveying it to all parts of the city. In this square is held the principal market. The interior of the cathedral is very rich. Thejvalls and floor are of good freestone, and the roof, which is beautiful- ly pannclled and carved in compartments, is supported by arches springing from a double row of neat square pillars of stone work. All these, on festivals, are covered with hang- ings of crimson velvet, fringed with the richest gold lace; but in Passion week, purple velvet hangings are substituted. The high altar has a most magnificent appearance. It is of the Corinthian order; the columns, cornices, and mouldings are cased with pure silver ; and over it is a celestial crown of silver gilt ; the sacrorium in the centre is richly orna- mented with chased silver-work. The custodium is of gold, delicately wrought, and enriched with a profusion of dia- monds and other precious stones : from the pedestal to the points of the rays, it measures seven feet, and is too heavy to be lifted by a person of ordinary strength. The front of the altar table is of embossed silver, very beautiful. The front of the choir is closed by tastefully wrought palisades of iron, gilt, with large gates of the same. The stalls are of carved cedar. There are two organs of fine tone, and the FAMILY TOURIST. qh choral music is very good. On grand festivals, the coup d'oeil is very imposing. The high altar is then illuminated with more than a thousand wax tapers. The large silver candel- abra, each weighing upwards of a hundred pounds, the su- perb silver branches and tamps, and the splendid service of plate on the left of the altar, have a most magnificent effect. The archbishop, in his costly pontifical robes, is seen kneeling under a canopy of crimson velvet, with a reclina- toryand cushions of the same material. A number of assist- ing priests, in their robes of ceremony, fill the presbytery ; next to which, leading towards the choir, are seats covered with velvet, on the left for the officers of state and the cor- poration, on the right for the judges, who attend in full cos- tume. In the centre, in front of the altar, a state chair covered with crimson velvet was appropriated to the Viceroy, when he attended in state, having on each side, three halber- diers of his body-guard ; while behind him stood his chaplain, chamberlain, groom, the captain of the body-guard, and four pages in waiting. Three times during mass, one of the aco- iites used to descend from the presbytery with a censer, and bow to the Viceroy, who stood up amid a cloud of smoke : the acolite bowed as he retired, and the Viceroy again knelt down. At the back of the high altar is a chapel dedicated to St. Francis Xavier, in which are effigies of two archbishops in white marble, kneeling. This chapel is the vault where the archbishops of Lima were formerly buried ; but it is now closed, and the bodies of the primates are at present carried to the Pantheon, the common burial-place, where the first corpse interred was that of Archbishop La Reguera, which was exhumed for the purpose. The interior of the sagrario is very splendid. The roof is lofty and beautifully pannelled, and in the centre is a cu- pola resting upon the four corners formed by the intersec- tion of the cross aisle. The part of the high altars are splen- didly carved, varnished and gilt. Great part of the high al- tar is cased with silver, and the cuslodium is of gold, richly set with diamonds and gems. The foot is incased with silver. The parish churches of Lima have nothing to recommend them to particular notice. Of the conventual churches, those belonging to the principal houses are remarkably rich. That of San Domingo, about 100 yards from the plapa mat/- dr, is truly magnificent, and its tower is the loftiest in the 612 FAMILY TOURIST. city. It is about 180 feet high, built chiefly of bajareque, (wood work and plaster.) The roof of the church is support- ed by a double row of light pillars, painted and gilt, the ceil- ing is divided into panncls by gilt mouldings, and the large central pannels exhibit some good paintings in fresco. The high altar is ornamented with Ionic columns varnished in imitation of marble, with gilt capitals and mouldings. At the foot of the presbytery, on the right, stands the silver al- tar of our Lady of the Rosary. This altar, Mr. Stephenson says, exceeds any other in Lima, both in richness and ef- fect. It is entirely covered with pure silver. Its elegant fluted columns, highly-finished embossed pedestals, capitals, and cornices, some of them doubly gilt, are superb. In the centre of the altar is the niche of the Madonna, of exquisite workmanship : the interior contains a transparent painting of a temple, the light being admitted to it by a window at the back of the altar. The efligy is gorgeously dressed ; the crown is a cluster of diamonds and other precious gems, and the drapery is of the richest brocades, laces, and em- broidery ; the rosary is a string of large pearls of the finest orient. Such is the abundance, or rather profusion, of drapery, that the same dress is never continued two days to- gether throughout the year. Before the niche, fifteen large wax tapers are continually burning in silver sockets ; and in a semicircle before the al- tar are suspended by massive silver chains, curiously wrought, fourteen large, heavy lamps, kept constantly lighted, with olive oil. Besides these, are, similarly suspended, eight fancifully wrought silver bird-cages, whose inmates, in thrill- ing notes, join the peeling tones of the organ and the sacred chants of divine worship. Four splendid silver chandeliers hang opposite the altar, each containing fifteen wax tapers; below are ranged six heavy silver candelabra, six feet high, and six tables cased in silver, each supporting a large silver branch with seven tapers ; also four urns of the same pre- cious metal, filled with perfumed spirits, which are always burning on festivals, and emit scents from the most costly drugs and spices ; the whole being surrounded with fuming pastillas, held by silver cherubim. On those days when the festivals of the Virgin Mary are celebrated, and particularly at the feast of the Rosary, the sumptuous appearance of this altar exceeds all description : at that time, during nine days, more than a thousand tapers blaze, and the chanting and music of the choir are uninterrupted. At the celebration FAMILY TOURIST. 613 of these feasts, many miracles are pretended to be wrought by the Madonna, and many absurd legends are related from the pulpit. On the left of the high altar stands one dedicated to Saint Rose ; it is highly ornamented, and has a large urn contain- ing an effigy of the saint, in a reclining posture, of white marble and good sculpture. On each side of the church are six altars, colored and varnished in imitation of different marbles, lapis lazuli, &c,, with gilt mouldings, cornices, and other embellishments. The choir is over the entrance at the principal porch ; it is capacious, and has two good organs. The music belonging to the church, is all painted on vellum by a lay brother of the order ; and some of the books are ably done. Three of the cloisters are very good ; the prin- cipal one is elegant ; it has two ranges of cells, and the pil- lars and arches are of stone, of fine workmanship. The lower part of the walls is covered with Dutch tiles, exhibiting sketches from the life of St. Dominick, &C. Above are large indifferently-executed paintings of the life and mira- cles of the tutelary saints : they are generally concealed by pannelled shutters, which are opened on holidays, and festi- vals. At the angles of this cloister are small altars, with busts and effigies, most of them in bad style. The lower cloisters are paved with freestone flags ; the upper ones with bricks. Some of the cells are richly furnished, and display more deli- cate attention to luxury than rigid observance of monastic austerity. The library contains a great number of books on theology and morality. On the wall of the stairs leading from the cloister to the choir is a fine painting of Christ in the sepulchre. The rents of this convent amount to about 89,000 dollars annually. Belonging to this order is the sanc- tuary of Saint Rose, she having been a heata or devotee of the order. In the small chapel are several relics of the saint.* VVe shall not attempt a minute description of the churches, chapels, convents and hospitals of Lima. They are quite numerous, and in some of the former there is great display of ornaments and paintings. Some of the latter are said to be beautiful. The University of Lima was founded in 1749, by a bull of Pius V. It is a handsome building, with several good halls * Stevenson's Twenty Years Residence in South America 614 FAMILY TOURIST. and an extensive library. Besides the university there are several colleges — the royal college of San Carlos, founded by the Jesuits for secular studies; the college Del Principe, where young Indian caciques arc educated for the church; the medical college of San Fernando, the college of San Toribio, an ecclesiastical seminary ; and a nautical academy in what was the palace of the Viceroy. The respective cos- tumes of the collegians are not a little singular. The dress of the students o{ San Carlos is a full suit of black, with ^a cocked hat and dress sword ; that of Del Principe is a full suit of green, with a crimson shoulder ribbon, and also a cocked hat; that o^ San Fernando is a full suit gf l^lue, with yellow buttons and collar trimmed with gold lace ; and that of San Toribio, an almond-colored gown, (called the opa,) very wide at the bottom, and made like m poncho, with a scarf of pale blue cloth, and a square bonnet of black cloth. The preceding description, for which we are indebted to the volumes of Mr. Stevenson, will give an idea of what Li- ma was in the days of its wealth and pride, when it was the richest city of South America. Tliis traveller arrived in that city, in 1811, during the viceroyalty of Abascal ; and during his stay there, the act of the Cortes was received, abolishing the Inquisition. A short time before, he had been cited before that dread tribunal for rashly engaging in a dispute with a Dominican friar ; he had now the op- portunity of paying a second visit, under very different circumstances, in company with some friends who had ob- tained the Viceroy's permission to explore the empty den of the monster. His account of the visit must not be sup- pressed. "The doors of the hall being opened, many entered, who were not invited, and seeing nothing in a posture of defence, the first victims to our fury were the tables and chairs : these were soon demolished ; after which some persons laid hold of the velvet curtains of the canopy, and dragged them so forcibly, that canopy and crucifix came down with a hor- rid crash. The crucifix was rescued from the ruins of in- quisitorial state, and its head was discovered to be movea- ble. A ladder was found to have been secreted behind the canopy, and thus the whole mystery of this miraculous im- age became explained : a man was concealed on the ladder by the curtains of the canopy, and by introducing his hand through a hole, he moved the head, so as to make it not con- sent or shake dissent. In how many instances may ap- FAMILY TOURIST. 6I5 peals to this imposture have caused an innocent man to own himself guilty of crimes he never dreamed of! Overawed by fear, and condemned as was believed by a miracle, false- hood would supply the place of truth ; and innocence, if timid, confess itself sinful. Every one was now exasperated with rage, and ' there are yet victims in the cells,' was uni- versally murmured. ' A search ! a search ! ' was the cry, and the door leading to the interior was quickly broken through. The next we found was called del seer cto : the word secret stimulated curiosity, and the door was instantly burst open. It led to the archives. Here were heaped upon shelves, papers containing the written cases of those who had been accused or tried ; and here I read the name of many a friend, who little imagined that his conduct had been scruti- nized by the holy tribunal, or that his name had been recorded in so awful a place. Some who were present, discovered their own names on the rack, and pocketed the papers. I put aside fifteen cases, and took them home with me ; but they were not of great importance. Four for blasphemy, bore a sentence, which was three months' seclusion in a con- vent, a general confession, and different penances — all se- cret. The others were accusations of friars, solicitantes in confessione, two of whom I knew, and, though some danger attended the disclosure, I told them afterwards what I had seen. Prohibited books in abundance were in the room, and many found future owners. To our great surprise, we met with a quantity of printed cotton handkerchiefs. These, alas ! had incurred the displeasure of the Inquisition, because a figure of religion, holding a chalice in one hand, and across in the other, was stamped in the centre ; placed there, perhaps, by some unwary manufacturer, who thought such a devout in- signia would insure purchasers, but who forgot the heinous- ness of blowing the nose or spitting upon the cross. To prevent such a crime, this religious tribunal had taken the wares by wholesale, omitting to pay their value to the owner, who might consider himself fortunate in not having his shop removed to the sacred house. Leaving this room, we forced our way into another, which, to our astonishment and in- dignation, was that of torture. In the centre stood a strong table, about eight feetlong and seven feet broad ; at one end of which was an iron collar, opening in the middle horizontal- ly, for the reception of the neck of the victim ; on each side of the collar were also thick straps with buckles, for inclosing the arms near to the body ; and on the sides of the table were 616 FAMILY TOURIST. leather straps with buckles for the wrists, connected with cords under the table, made fast to the axle of an horizontal wheel ; at the other end were two more straps for the ankles, with ropes similarly fixed to the wheels. Thus it was obvi- ous, that a human being might be extended on the table, and,*- by turning the wheel, might be stretched in both directions at the same time, without any risk of hanging ; for that ef- fect was prevented by the two straps under his arms close to the body ; but every joint might be dislocated. After we had discovered the diabolical use of this piece of machinery, every one shuddered, and involuntarily looked towards the door, as if apprehensive that it would close upon him. At first, curses were muttered, but they were soon changed into loud imprecations against the inventors and practisers of such torments ; and blessings were showered on the Cortes for having abolished this tribunal of arch tyranny. We next ex- amined a vertical pillory, placed against the wall ; it had one large and two smaller holes; on opening it, by lifting up the one half, we perceived apertures in the wall, and the pur- poses of the machine were soon ascertained. An offender having his neck and wrists secured in the holes of the pil- lory, and his head and hands hidden in the wall, could be flogged by the lay brothers of St. Dominick without being known by them ; and thus any accidental discovery was avoided. Scourges of different materials were hanging on the wall ; some of knotted cord, not a few of which were hardened with blood ; others were of wire chain, with points and rowels like those of spurs; these, too, were clotted with blood. We also found tormentors, made of netted wire, the points of every mesh projecting about one eighth of an inch inward, the outside being covered with leather, and having strings to tie them on. Some of these tormentors were of a sufficient size for the waist, others for the thighs, the legs, and arms. The walls were likewise adorned with shirts of horsehair, which could not be considered as a very comfort- able habit after a severe flagellation ; with human bones, having a string at each end, to gag those who made too free a use of their tongues ; and with nippers, made of cane, for the same purpose. These nippers consisted of two slips of cane, tied at the ends ; by opening in the middle when they were put into the mouth, and fastened behind the head, in the same manner as the bones, they pressed forcibly upon the tongue. In a drawer were a great many finger-screws; they were small semicircular pieces of iron, in the form of crescents, having a screw at one end, so that they could be fixed on the fingers, and screwed to any degree, even till the nails were crushed and the bones broken. On viewing these implements of torture, who could find an excuse for the mon- sters, who would use them to establish the faith which was taught, by precept and example, by the mild, the meek, the holy Jesus ! May he who would not curse them in the bit- terness of wrath, fall into their merciless hands ! The rack and the pillory were soon demolished ; for such was the fury of more than a hundred persons, who had gained admittance, that, had they been constructed of iron, they could not have resisted the violence and determination of the assailants. In one corner stood a wooden horse, painted white : it was con- ceived to be another instrument of torture, and was instantly broken to pieces ; but 1 was afterwards informed, that a vic- tim of the Inquisition, who had been burnt at the stake, was subsequently declared innocent of the charges preferred against him ; when, as an atonement for his death, his inno- cence was publicly announced, and his effigy dressed in white, and mounted on this horse, was paraded about the streets of Lima. Some said, that the individual suflTered in Spain, and that, by a decree of the inquisitor-general, this farce was performed in every part of the Spanish dominions, where a tribunal existed. We proceeded to the cells, but found them all open and empty : they were small, but not uncomfortable as places of confinement. Some had a small yard attached ; others more solitary, had none. The last person known to have been confined was a naval officer, an Andalusian, who was exiled in 1812, to Boca China." Lima has a general cemetery called the Pantheon, situated on the outside of the walls ; it is sufficiently large to contain all the dead bodies for six years without removal : when this becomes necessary, the bones are taken out of the niches, and placed in the osariums. Many of the rich families have purchased allotments for family vaults, having their names inscribed above. The building is a square inclosure, divided into several sections ; in the walls are niches, each sufficient to iiold a corpse ; and the divisions are also formed by double row§ of niches, built one above another, some of them eight stories high, the fronts being open. The walks are planted with many aromatics and evergreens. In the centre is a small chapel, or rather altar with a roof: its form is octagon- 618 FAMILY TOURIST. al, 80 that eight priests can celebrate mass at the same time. The corpse is put into the niche with the feet fore- most ; if in a coffin, which seldom happens, except among the richer classes, the lid is removed, and a quantity of un- slacked lime being thrown on each body, its decay is very rapid. For the conveyance of the dead, several hearses, of different descriptions, are provided, belonging to the Pan- theon : they are not perniittc